Brexit and After
Ed. By Kumiko Haba and Martin Holland
Contents
Introduction
I.
1.
Martin Holland, Kumiko Haba
1
Post Brexit: Politico-Economic Changes in the EU and the Global World
Brexit in the Time of Coronavirus
Martin Holland 10
2.
Post-Brexit and Post-Corona: the UK, the EU and Central East Europe:
“Illiberal Democracy” and the Influence of China
3.
Kumiko Haba 25
Asian Regional Cooperation: RCEP and CPTPP Strategy after Brexit
Sang Chul Park 53
4.
Recovery of the Sovereignty and Regional Integration in EU and Asia after Brexit
Hitomi Kimura 72
5.
Brexit and Trump: Genuine Anti-Globalisation Revolution or the Repetition of 1848
Binoy Kampmark and Petar Kurecic 88
II.
1.
Post-Brexit and European Integration
Post-Brexit European Integration
Bruno Dallago and Steven Rosefielde 107
2.
“Brexit Fissures”: Party politics and Territorial Politics Post-2017
Stephen Day 121
i
3.
Hopes and Fears in Pre-and Post-Brexit Britain
Sarah Harrison 137
4.
European Governance after the Brexit and the COVID-19 Shocks: A New Phase of Solidarity
and Integration in the EU from the Japanese Perspective
Koji Fukuda 151
5.
Brexit: Reasons and Domestic Consequences
Miguel Angel Vecino 164
III.
1.
Brexit and After: Influence on other Countries: Oceania, China, and India
Shifting Frames: Images of Brexit in NZ and Possible Consequences
Serena Kelly, Franzisca Doser and Natalia Chaban 172
2.
The Dynamics of China’s Trade Ties after a Brexit Announcement UK and EU
Judy Yo-Ming Wu 192
3.
Brexit and India: Challenges and Opportunities
Pradeep S. Chauhan 199
4.
The Influence of Brexit on the UK's Arms Trade Policy and Arms Embargo on China
Yongshu Li 209
Biography
225
ii
Introduction
BREXIT( a portmanteau of Britain and Exit from the EU) came about as a result the June 23,
2016 referendum. The result, to leave, sent shockwaves around the world. It would go on to
paralyze the parliamentary process for some three and a half years as well as manifest itself
amongst the UK electorate as the label ‘Leavers’ and ‘Remainer s’ was still very much on display
during the 2019 general election. In 2020 the Covid-19 pandemic has hit the UK particularly hard.
Official figures point to over 40 thousand deaths (the third highest total after the US and Brazil
as of June 13, 2020). Even Prime Minister Boris Johnson became infected and was unable to carry
out his official duties. No-one could have imagined such a dramatic combination of events in 2016.
One year after the Brexit referendum, the annual EUSA AP (European Union Studies
Association Asia Pacific) Conference was held in Tokyo. It brought together an international
gathering of EU researchers. Of course, the hot topic at that time was Brexit. P resentations
covering Britain’s withdrawal from the EU from various perspectives such as politics, economics
and law were made over the course of the two days . In the wake of the conference , many of the
participants asked about the possibility of outing together a numbe r of the papers as an edited
volume. This became possible after the suggestion was approved by the ExCom. meeting of the
EUSAJ (EU Society of Japan). As a result, with the help and support of numerous individuals, not
least Professor Martin Holland, and Professor Sang Chul Park, and the contributing authors, Brexit
and After was realized and finally published in 2020.
As is well known, just five months after the Brexit referendum, Donald Trump became the 45 t h
President of the United States. It was during the referendum and presidential election campaigns
that talk of populism became more widespread. Terms such as "Post Truth" and "anti-elite/antiestablishment” became commonplace. Furthermore, existential fears about the robustness of
"liberal democracy" and the sustainability of the European Union and European values were
regularly being exchanged in the media. However, despite its own difficulties the EU has and is,
in various guises and to various degrees, a point of reference for regional i ntegration projects and
initiatives around the world – albeit with a greater emphasis on economic rather than political
integration.
In Asia, the first two decades of the 21 s t century have been dominated by e conomic
development and a greater emphasis on Asian Regional co-operation. While not exactly a blueprint the EU story – that includes the “reconciliation of former enemies”, and the notion of “multiethnic co-existence”, have been a point of inspiration for many in this part of the globe. Such
1
ideas have fed into practices such as ASEAN Good Governance, economic cooperation among
Japan-China-Korea, South Asian Regional Cooperation (SAARC), the economic restructuring of
Regional Comprehensive Economic Partnership (RCEP) and the Trans-Pacific Partnership
Agreement( TTP) (reconstituted as the Comprehensive and Progressive Agreement for Trans Pacific Partnership following America’s withdrawal) .
In Asia, given that disputes and conflicts, still remain and the ideological cleavage between
socialism and capitalism cannot be ignored, some have placed greater emphasis on the pursuit of
economic interconnectedness a la EU. As a result of that, China ha s developed what it calls the
Belt and Road Initiative (BRI) that draws from the experiences of the EU, almost quarter of the
countries in the globe have wished to become part of this initiative. In addition, we can also point
to the multilateral Asian Infrastructure Investment Bank (AIIB) . Headquartered in Beijing, and
with a wide-ranging global membership it describes itself as having ‘ a mission to improve social
and economic outcomes in Asia.’ Elsewhere in Asia, many have speculated that the EU model
which sought democracy, freedom and reconciliation, peace and prosperity could provide lessons
for future relations between Japan and South Korea.
Yet in the last decade that model has been faced with its own existential crisis – personified
by Britain's withdrawal from the EU, a longside a wave of nationalism and populism increasing its
electoral presence across numerous member states ; not only Italy and Greece, but also France,
Germany, the Netherlands and Hungary. In such an environment Euroskepticism has become an
established element of the party-system and national debate – albeit to varying degrees.
Economically the EU has also faced serious economic disruption. Although the EU became the
world 's largest economic zone surpassing the United States , due to the deepening and widening
as a result of the 2004 and 2007 enlargements, the economically developed countries of the EU
failed to adequately help Southern and Eastern Europe members amid the Lehman Shock and the
Euro Crisis. As a result, it is perhaps not surprising that dissatisfaction rose sharply in the member
States most adversely effected.
After the end of the Cold War, with the aim of “Return to Europe", 11 countries in Central and
Eastern Europe joined the EU after going through a political, legal, and economic accession
process. Despite all of the positives and hopes, accession also had its costs not least in the
economic sphere that eventually provided fertile ground for populism and skepticism to emerge.
It was Russia that noticed this situation. Putin funded European populist s including UKIP and
Le Pen, and supported the growth of populism from the outside.
Russia was deeply dissatisfied
with being separated from the world by expell ing from the G8 after Ukrainian Maidan Revolution
in 2014, Russia's occupation of the Crimea , its transfer to Russia , and promoted the division of
2
the EU.
In contrast, China accelerated its BRI strategy to the west, avoiding conflicts between the
United States and China, expanding their influence toward the west in partnership with Russia and
Central Asia. In partnership with Britain, Germany and France, China promoted infrastructure
support, capital investment, expansion of IT companies and cyber cooperation to Asia, Central
Asia, Africa, and Europe. It also proceeded with a grand 100-year infrastructure development plan.
All of this contributed to divisions within the EU as the economic superpowers like Germany,
the UK and France focused on and emphasized the role of the international political economy with
the " EU as a global power" and failed to pay attention to those member states suffering from the
sovereign debt crisis, or those facing economic inequality after joining the EU. As a result,
attitudes in the smaller member states became more skeptical towards the European project.
In the meantime, the UK finally left the political institutions of the EU at the end of January
2020, after three-and-a-half-years of domestic political turmoil. Almost immediately after that
event, the region was hit by the COVID-19 pandemic. Having first taken hold in Italy it
subsequently spread across the region where it struck Spain, Belgium, and the UK particularly
hard. Its presence has brought back memories of the post-WWI Spanish flu pandemic that had a
devasting impact on life around the globe. The world has now been shaken by this disease for the
past six months. Not surprisingly having to deal with COVID -19, which has mercilessly inflicted
enormous social and economic costs on developed European countries , has diverted attention away
from the Brexit negotiations. Those negotiations are continuing though without perhaps the media
spotlight that they might have had . The UK remains scheduled to finish the transition period, with
or without a deal, on December 31, 2020.
This book, which brings together authors from across the world, including Europe, Asia and
the USA is intended to consider the meaning of Brexit : its impact on the EU, the UK, Asia and the
wider world four years after the June 2016 referendum.
Many of the contributors believe that the EU-27 can recover from the loss of the UK, but that
recovery will not be easy and will take time. As part of that process, the EU must overcome public
dissatisfaction, Euro-skepticism, domestic and ethnic disparities, and rebuild solidarity with
across the member states. Together these can give a renewed sense of momentum to the integration
process. As part of that process the EU’s present and future relationship with Asia will be crucial .
Building relationships with Asia will also be crucial for the U K as it seeks to secure free trade
deals across the globe. Maintaining the idea of a “global Europe” after Brexit, therefore, is not
simply about the EU and China’s relationship, it is also about whether the EU is able to ensure
3
stable multilateral relationships between the EU and Asia as a whole.
In light of the above, this book consists of three parts.
Part I.
Part II.
Post Brexit: Politico -Economic Changes in the EU and the Global World
Post Brexit and European Integration
Part III. Brexit and After: Influence on other Countries: Oceania, China, and India
A very brief synopsis of each chapter follows:
I, Post-Brexit, in the EU and the Global World consists of five papers.
I-1. Martin Holland, Brexit in the Time of Coronavirus is clearly analyzing the following things.
First, the UK and the EC/EU historical relationship after becoming an EC member over 47 years,
Euro-skepticism in the UK, and the role of the EU-27 after Brexit. In addition, in the latter half
of the chapter, the analysis of the interests in the EU in the Asian media (Japan, China, Indonesia)
is particularly revealing.
I-2. Kumiko Haba, Post-Brexit and Post-Corona: The UK, the EU, and Central East Europe :
“Illiberal Democracy” and the Influence of China analyzes a number of key issues: the historic
role of the UK in Central East Europe; EU-skepticism after the enlargement of the EU ; "Illiberal
Democracy”, which is predicated on a desire "not to leave the EU, but rather seek to reform it
from within"; and the expansion of Chinese role in the EU. The chapter stresses that Regional
cooperation between Asia and the EU leads the world after Brexit.
I-3. Sang Chul Park, Asian Regional Cooperation is analyzing Asian Regionalism symbolized
through detailed insights of the RCEP and the CPTPP. Especially after the global financial
crisis, Asia transformed from trade protectionism to the FTA as a result of bilateral and multilateral
relations. As the ‘third power ’ against the US and Europe Asia economic cooperation has been
attracting attention . RCEP and CPTPP members are considering the future development of FTAAP.
I-4. Hitomi Kimura, Recovery of the sovereignty and Regional Integration in EU and Asia
after Brexit is analyzing the relationship between sovereignty and regional integration, which is
the most important issue for the UK. Brexit was a choose about national sovereignty and
democracy or the continuation of economic integration. On the other hand, in Asia, ASEAN and
4
APEC have embraced economic integration based on retaining national sovereignty.
I-5. Binoy Kampmark and Petar Kurecic, Brexit and Trump: Genuine Anti -Globalization
Revolution or the Repetition of 1848 is analyzing that Brexit was chosen as a result of increasing
inequality, national anti-globalization, and nationalism. "Post Truth" urges a social transformation,
arguing that it will be a national revolution like the European 1848 revolution.
II. Post Brexit and European Integration analyzes economic, political, or structural domestic
relationships within the EU . This section also has five papers.
II-1. Bruno Dallago and Steven Rosefielde are researching the Post-Brexit European
integration process. The paper is analyzing whether the impact of Brexit would be less disruptive
than expected on the EU as a result of the EU’s capacity to constructively fill institutional
composition gaps. This reduces the system's vulnerability to asymmetric shocks.
II-2. Stephen Day's “Brexit Fissures”: Party Politics and Territorial Politics Post -2017 reveals
how Brexit-induced cracks have accompanied the process of actualizing the referendum result. In
so doing, he focuses on two main areas. First, the disruption t hat accompanied party politics during
the 36 months prior to the Conservative Party’s general election victory in December 201 9. Second,
he shows how Brexit has amplified demands for a second independence referendum in Scotland
and a ‘border poll’ in Northern Ireland.
II-3. Sarah Harrison, Hopes and Fears in Pre -and Post-Brexit Britain shows the complexity
of the referendum by analyzing a series of quantitative and qualitative data. The chapter reveals
unprecedented polarization and division within the electorate. She concludes that the conflicts,
isolation, and sense of uncertainty exist not only in the UK, but also in the US and across Europe.
The impact of COVID-19 increases those feelings of conflict, isolation, and uncertainty.
II-4. Koji Fukuda, European Governance after the Brexit, and the COVID-19 shocks seeks a
new phase of EU solidarity and integration from the following three points. The first is neo -liberal
globalization and European integra tion under the context of Brexit and Corona, the second
concerns the validity of the trickle-down hypothesis, and the third is the differentiation of various
EU frameworks. Analysis of these three indicates the direction of governance reform.
5
II-5. Miguel Angel Vecino’s Brexit: Reasons and Domestic Consequences argues that the
complexity of Brexit will prove to be an existential challenge for the EC/EU bigger than anything
since the 1950’s. The chapter focuses on 3 factors: 1) Britons never felt “European” in the way
that citizens of other continental EU member states did. 2) the UK ha d a historical problem with
Ulster and Scotland. 3) English, Northern Irish and Scottish voters saw the EU differently. Brexit
emerged as a result of such different real ities.
III. Brexit and After: Influence on other Countries: Oceania, China and India have four papers.
III-1. Serena Kelly, Franzisca Doser and Natalia Chaban, Shifting Frames: Images of Brexit
in NZ and Possible Consequences offers an interesting take on Brexit by analyzing changes in
the “emotional” framing to it. This is done by applying political psychology and communication
theory, to how Brexit was understood in NZ, one of the UK’s closest allies.
III-2. Judy Yo-Ming Wu, The Dynamics of China's Trade Ties after a Brexit Announcement
UK and EU argues that Brexit will definitely cast a shadow on the trade relations between China
and Britain. Although China has not yet decided which is better, between the EU or the UK, the
EU’s single market offers distinct advantages especially in light of the Brexit's uncertainty for the
UK and negative impact of COVID-19 on the global economy.
III-3. Pardeep S. Chauhan, Brexit and India: Challenges and Opportunities shows how Indian
companies plans to invest in the UK have been seriously affected by Brexit. Major investors like
TATA are already looking for alternatives. On the other hand, the UK has identified India as a key
partner post-Brexit. How India maintains good economic relation s between the EU and the UK is
likely to be related to the fate of the UK economy.
III-4. Yongshu Li, The Influence of Brexit on the UK’s Arms Trade Policy and Arms Embargo
on China, analyzes the impact of Brexit on the arms trade between the UK and China. The EU
continued to embargo China after Tiananmen, but the UK resumed arms trade with China after
1998, in a departure from the rest of the EU. After Brexit, the UK could significantly boost arms
trade with China. The paper gives analysis of the change o f arms trade between the UK and China.
6
Lastly, we are grateful for the assistance and encouragement of many people who have
encouraged us to undertake this project during the last few years.
We would like to thank all the participants who attended EUSA AP's Tokyo, Taipei, and
Shanghai Conferences. The opportunity to meet and share ideas from different insights and
perspectives is a very precious commodity. Hopefully, the spirit of those gather ings has been
carried over into this book. As the editors we have certainly learned a great deal from all of the
papers and would like to thank the authors for their contributions.
If this book, Brexit and After achieves any measure of informational success, it is all owed to
these excellent professors.
Let us hope it will not be too long before we are all able to meet in
person at the next EUSA-AP gathering.
We are incredibly grateful to Springer - particularly Mr. Yutaka Hirachi and Mr. Chandra
Asekaran Arjunan for agreeing to publish this book and bearing with us over the past year. The
book was initially scheduled for publication in 2019, but because of the delay to Brexit (which
was meant to take place on March 29, 2019) as a result of the on -going confrontation between the
UK parliament and the government we asked Springer if it was possible to defer for a while .
Immediately after that, COVID -19 outbreak and spread in Europe, the US and all over the world.
We would like to express our sincere gratitude to the Springer Publisher for understanding these
situations and waiting patiently for us to deliver the manuscript .
Finally, please allow us to say thanks to Dr. D u Shishin (Postdoc fellow) and Nicholas
Crenshaw (MA), both of whom dedicated a great deal of time and energy, especially in the final
stages, to get the manuscript ready for delivery. The fact that Brexit and After could be organized
in the midst of the COVID-19 crisis is due to their hard work. We sincerely appreciate both of
their endeavors. We would also like to express our gratitude to Professor Stephen Day, who gave
much appreciated assistance prior to submission. His comments were very valuable for our book.
Having gathered together a multi -disciplinary group of researchers whose backgrounds
encompass politics, economics and sociology w e hope that this book will provide a series of
stimulating insights and useful information for readers. As the EU and the UK move into a post Brexit world and look to forge deeper relationships with Asia, we believe Brexit and After is a
timely contribution to this debate.
7
General Secretary of EUSA AP
EUSA AP President of NZ Conference in 2020
Professor at Canterbury University
Martin Holland
EUSA AP President of Tokyo Conference in 2017
Professor at Aoyama Gakuin University
Kumiko Haba
8
I. Post Brexit: Politico-Economic Changes
in the EU and the Global World
9
Ⅰ―1
Brexit in the Time of Coronavirus
Martin Holland
[Abstract]
The departure of the UK from the EU has been a kaleidoscope of surprises – the initial shock
of the 2016 referendum, two unexpected elections, the rev olving door at 10 Downing Street, and
the succession of missed promised deadlines from 29 March 2019 until the final severance of
British EU membership on 31 January 2020. Informed commentators were united in their
expectation that the negotiations between the UK and the EU on the shape of the new bilateral
relationship would inevitably dominate public, media and political agendas for much of 2020. Yet,
barely one month after the UK’s departure, this seeming certainty was fundamentally compromised
by the covid19 pandemic. Indeed, it may prove to be the case that for the EU somethings are
currently more important and enduring - both politically and economically - than Brexit.
This chapter eschews a detailed account of the Brexit campaign that emerged at the 2014
European Parliament elections and culminated in the 23 June 2016 referendum outcome, preferring
a longer historical context as a partial explanation for Brexit. This historical perspective is
juxtaposed with a contemporary focus even if at the tim e of writing, the June 2020 extension
deadline decision remained pending - making predictions on the negotiation process somewhat
precarious.
Additionally, consideration is given to the consequences of the UK’s departure for
the EU27’s credibility, reputa tion and capacity in a global context. Finally, the chapter presents
unique data on the transformation in media reporting on the EU in Asia. From an extended period
after 2016 when the vast majority of Asia’s EU news was devoted to Brexit, in March 2020 th e
pandemic issue emerged as more newsworthy and of greater salience and has impacted on
perceptions and expectations of the EU. Brexit was no longer the headline story.
A History of Ambivalence.
Unanticipated surprises are something of a motif for the UK’s relationship with the European
integration process as a review of the past seventy years lays bare. A history of reluctance,
antagonism and scepticism have (with one exception) typically charact erised relations under the
nine UK Prime Ministers – irrespective of party - that have held office since 1973. Indeed, the
UK holds the rare distinction to have been the only state to be rejected twice for membership
10
(1963 and 1967), to have held two refer endums after joining (1975 and 2016) and as of 2020 the
first country to activate Article 50 of the Lisbon Treaty to formally end membership. The 2016
referendum result should not have come as such a surprise to anyone with an understanding of
this troubled history.
Albeit two or more generations ago, the UK’s initial scepticism towards post -war FrancoGerman reconciliation signalled a general British disbelief in the European integration process.
Had the UK accepted the invitation to participate in the founding meetings including that in
Messina in 1955, the trajectory of European integration would undoubtedly have been different
and a Brexit mentality less likely to emerge. A missed leadership opportunity and arguably the
greatest post-war mistaken policy choice by Britain.
With the benefit of hindsight, it appears that General de Gaulle was perceptive as well as
prescient in his reasoning behind vetoing the UK’s applications for membership in the 1960s. His
critique at that time that the UK lacked a r eal vocation and commitment to European integration
other than for commercial reasons has subsequently proved accurate. This antagonism
notwithstanding, Conservative Prime Minister Edward Health successfully secured British
membership in 1973, if with the dubious claim to have been given the “full -hearted consent” of
the British public by winning the 1970 UK General Election. This Europhoria was not fully shared
by his successor, Labour Prime Minister Harold Wilson, who – after renegotiating the terms on
British membership, became the first UK politician to use a referendum. A degree of national
amnesia seems to have affected the memory of the subsequent two -thirds majority in favour of
these new terms of membership.
The decade of Margaret Thatcher as UK ’s Conservative Party Prime Minister still casts the
longest shadow pertaining to Brexit some thirty years on. Demands for a UK financial contribution
rebate and her Bruges speech serve as appropriate bookends for the fractious 1980s decade,
notwithstanding the success normally associate with Britain’s support for the completion of the
“1992” Single Market project. Under her successor, John Major, the British Government did
finally force through the parliamentary ratification of the Maastricht Treaty, if at the cost of a
fundamental rupture within the Conservative Party which sowed the seeds for Brexit a quarter
century later.
The one real exception to this Eurosceptic narrative was articulated by Labour Party Prime
Minister Tony Blair who remains the on ly contemporary British politician to have endorsed, in
principle, British membership of the Eurozone and adoption of the common currency (once his
five economic tests were achieved - which they never were). With Blair ’s replacement by Gordon
Brown, a coherent pro-European Union agenda became less evident, and in 2010 David Cameron
became the country’s next Conservative Party Prime Minister, albeit of a coalition government.
11
Perhaps ironically, the results in Britain of the 2014 European Parliament election elevated
support for the UK Independence Party (UKIP) to previously unknown heights. Based on a turn out of 35.4%, UKIP topped the poll with 26.6% of the vote and relegated the Conservatives into
third place, an outcome that provoked Cameron to follow his ill-fated referendum strategy.
Despite conducting what was, in hindsight, a modest but successful renegotiation of Britain’s
terms of membership (related to immigration and the political commitment to “an ever closer
union”), as well as campaigning for a “Yes” vote in the referendum, the “No” victory effectively
undermined the 43-year legacy of his Conservative predecessor Edward Heath, and led to
Cameron’s own resignation. As the subsequent four years repeatedly illustrated, Brexit, however,
was far from done. Theresa May became the fifth Conservative Prime Minister since the UK first
joined, called an election in which she lost her majority, belatedly triggered Article 50 and after
15 months of fraught negotiations signed a 585 page withdrawal agreemen t with the EU: in July
2018 a White Paper on “The Future Relationship between the United Kingdom and the European
Union” was finally introduced. The tone was, however, strident, announcing:
… ending the days of sending vast sums of money to the EU every y ear. We will
take back control of our money, laws, and borders, and begin a new exciting
chapter in our nation’s history. 1
Despite this jingoism, the parliamentary legislation needed to ratify this agreement was
defeated on four occasions provoking Euro pean Council President Donald Tusk to utter his
memorably frank comment about that “ special place in hell" for "those who promoted Brexit
without even a sketch of a plan of how to carry it out safely" 2 . The original Brexit deadline of 29
March 2019 was missed culminating in May’s eventual resignation and ultimate replacement by
Boris Johnson by the summer of 2019.
Johnson too negotiated a (remarkably similar) Withdrawal Agreement with the EU, but faced
with a similar road-block to May, missed the new 31 October departure deadline. The deadlock
1
https://www.gov.uk/government/publicat ions/the-future-relationship-between-the-
united-kingdom-and-the-european-union/the-future-relationship-between-the-unitedkingdom-and-the-european-union-html-version
2
https://www.bbc.com/news/uk-politics-47143135
12
was only resolved after Johnson was able to engineer a snap -election and subsequently secure a
landslide majority at the December 2019 General Election with the promise to “get Brexit Done”.
Legally leaving – as the UK did on 31 s t January 2020 - has far from ended Brexit, however.
By the end of February 2020, Commission President von der Leyen announced optimistically
that the EU mandate stood “ready to build a close, ambitious partnership with the UK”. 3
Negotiations on this new relationship commenced in early March 2020 with fo rtnightly chief
negotiators meetings structured around the work of ten working groups. Perhaps in a sign of
goodwill, it was agreed the working language would be just English; however, pessimism had
surfaced by the end of the first round of negotiations (h eld face-to-face in Brussels and then
conducted virtually consequential to the pandemic). As reflected in the conclusion offered by the
EU’s chief negotiator, Michael Barnier:
To be completely frank with you … there are many divergences and they are very
serious divergences” … such as competition rules, fisheries and future oversight of
the UK- EU relationship. 4
The end of June 2020 was set as the deadline for deciding whether to extend the negotiation
period beyond the end of the year – something that legally required both the UK and the EU to
endorse. The UK, however, consistently and repeatedly asserted that it would not request any such
extension, opting not to use the legitimate excuse of the pandemic to force a delay.
A tweet from
the UK’s chief negotiator, David Frost, made this clear as late as mid -April 2020: Extending would
simply prolong negotiations, create even more uncertainty, leave us liable to pay more to the EU
in future, and keep us bound by evolving EU laws at a time when we need to control our own
affairs. In short, it is not in the UK's interest to extend. 5
The British assessment of progress after the third round of negotiations concluded (by video link) in mid-May 2020 were no more encouraging: again, according to David Frost,
we made very little progress towards agreement of the most significant
outstanding issues between us… The major obstacle … is the EU’s insistence
on including a set of novel and unbalanced proposals on the so -called “level
3
4
5
@vonderleyen#newbeginnings
(https://euobserver.com/brexit/147645
https://www.bbc.com/news/uk -politics-52313042
13
playing field”…
It is hard to understand why the EU insists on an ideological approach which makes
it more difficult to reach a mutually beneficial agreement. 6
If this position prevails, at the end of the transition period only the barest bones of a new
framework for relations will be in place beyond the minimum WTO provisions that apply to trade
between all countries and perhaps possible temporary sectoral arrangements. And worryingly,
whatever emerges will also have to go through the normal ratification processes including a
European Parliament Strasbourg plenary session (scheduled for November 2020).
As Barnier
noted, the EU would not agree a deal "at any price” fore -warning that there would be "complex,
demanding negotiations" 7 .
The only thing that seemed certain was that as of 1 January 2021 the current transition
conditions would cease to apply and the UK could claim to have regained its pre -1973 sovereignty.
For the EU, at this point the UK would assume the legal status of a no rmal third country.
The EU27 in today’s global context
Parallel to the vagaries of the Brexit negotiation process, simultaneously the EU27 have sought
to reassert their identity, deepen solidarity and reassure the world that Brexit would not reduce
the EU’s international capability.
Contrary to some media speculation, the EU27 remains of fundamental importance within the
current context of global disruption – whether created by Trump, Putin, Xi Jinping or covid19.
With the departure of the UK the col lective international weight of the EU has clearly changed.
The EU27 population was reduced to 434 million and the EU budget expected to fall by around
15%. And only France now reflected EU common interests on the UN Security Council as a
permanent member. Yet the EU still accounts for around 20% of global GDP, represents over 15%
of global two-way trade, ranks first for FDI and is by far the world’s leading ODA contributor.
France, Germany and Italy occupy three seats of the G7 as well as G20, with the la ter grants also
a seat to the EU. On balance, the predictions of a shrinking EU in the wake of Brexit have largely
been found wanting and EU solidarity has remained remarkably high since the 23 June 2016 UK
6
https://twitter.com/DavidGHFrost?ref_src=twsrc%5Egoogle%7Ctwcamp%5Eserp%7Ct
wgr%5Eauthor
7
https://www.bbc.com/news/uk -politics-51623444
14
referendum – future expansion in membership rathe r than other countries leaving the EU seems
more likely. In the most recently released Standard Eurobarometer, 70% of the surveyed Europeans
valued being citizens of the EU. 8 In addition, EU citizens showed more trust in the EU than in
their national government: 43% of the surveyed respondents trusted the EU, while the figure for
national governments and parliaments was just 34%.
From a contemporary strategic perspective, the EU refined and refocused its international role
with the publication of the 2016 European Union Global Strategy (EUGS). This 50-page
consensus-based document was developed over the 2015/16 period and consequently the UK was
involved in its formulation. The timing for release of the EUGS was noteworthy although
potentially unhelpful, occurring just four days after the Brexit referendum result! Remarkably
perhaps, the EUGS appeared largely unaltered by Brexit, other than a modified preamble from the
then High Representative Frederica Mogherini:
In challenging times, a strong Union i s one that thinks strategically, shares a vision and acts
together. This is even more true after the British referendum. 9
The EUGS sets out the EU’s self -perception of its international role – the term “global” refers
to both the all-of-the-world focus and to the comprehensive and conscious linking of different
policy sectors to increase the EU’s impact. Initiated under the former High Representative
Mogherini and continued subsequently by High Representative Josep Borrell, the EUGS
underlines the EU’s desire and intention to play an important international role in every forum.
Brexit seems not to have diminished this ambition even if the capabilities that the EU can now
call on may have inevitably changed.
This change in the EU’s image – from 28 to now 27 member states – by chance coincided with
EU’s normal quinquennial change in its leadership. By the end of 2019, leadership position
replacements had taken place in all five EU institutions - the Presidents of the Council, the
European Parliament, the Commission, the European Central Bank and the foreign policy High
Representative. For the first time since 1973, there was no UK member of the Commission, and
in part to dispel any lowering of expectations aro und the EU’s global role the incoming President
Ursula von der Leyen created the EU’s first so -called “Geo-political” Commission to underline
this new post-Brexit EU agenda.
8
Standard Eurobarometer 92 was conducted in November 2019 and published in
December 2019, full results are available at
https://ec.europa.eu/commfrontoffice/publicopinion/index.cfm/Survey/getSurveyDetail/
instruments/STANDARD/surveyKy/2255 (accessed on 4th June 2020)
9
EU Global Strategy , Luxembourg, European Union, 2016, p.3
15
Media Reporting of the EU
The findings from a series of international studies conducted since 2015 have consistently
shown that the international news media have enjoyed a diet of Euroscepticism and subsequent
Brexit in its framing of the European Union. 1 0 Historically, this media Brexit preoccupation has
been especially marked within the Asia -Pacific region. Consequently, the news coverage of the
post-Brexit transition negotiations that commenced in the first quarter of 2020 were expected to
continue to dominate the reporting of EU news. This trajectory came to an abrupt halt and the
media’s attention in the Asia -Pacific jettisoned their previous obsession with Brexit and
overwhelmingly refocused their analysis of the EU around covid19 rather than Brexit.
The accompanying data presented here comes from a Jean Mo nnet Network grant commenced in
2020 1 1 and is focused on how the media reports the EU in three countries – China, Japan and
Indonesia.
These have consistently and historically been the Asian countries where the EU has
been reported the most and serve as a good indicator of EU news framing. The data represents all
EU news stories reported in March 2020 in ten monitored newspapers (three each in China and
Indonesia, four in Japan). This short snapshot was chosen to coincide with the first round of the
Brexit transition negotiations and where media interest would be presumed to be high.
Comparable traditional press was chosen: for Japan this was Yomiuri Shimbun, Asahi Shimbun,
Nihon Keizai Shimbun, the Japan Times; for China People's Daily, Economic Daily, China Daily;
and for Indonesia Kompas, Bisnis Indonesia, The Jakarta Post. In the three Chinese newspapers
there were a total of 171 EU -related news stories, roughly two news items a day (a level similar
to previous studies over the last decade). For Japan, the total was 239, again replicating the usual
pattern historically found of around three news stories a day (see Figure 1). In contrast, Indonesia
seemed considerably less interested in EU news and recorded just a total o f 61 news items,
averaging at less than one story per publication per day for the month of March. 1 2
10
Holland, M and N. Chaban (Eds) Shaping the EU Global Strategy: partners and
perceptions , Palgrave, London, 2018 ; Holland, M. and N. Chaban, (Eds) Communicating
Europe in the Times of Crisis: Exter nal Perceptions of the European Union , PalgraveMcMillan, 2015
11
Renewal versus Global Disruption - Asia’s Expectations of the EU (EXPECT) : Jean
Monnet Project No. 611168 -EPP-1-2019-1-NZ-EPPJMO-NETWORK
12
Data used in all the Tables are from the EXPECT rese arch project’s as yet unpublished
findings.
16
Figure 1: EU News in three Asian countries in March 2020
China
180
Indonesia
Japan
160
No. of news item
140
120
100
80
60
40
20
0
Popular Daily 1 Popular Daily 2* Business Daily English-language
Daily
Table 1 Total EU News and covered topics in March 2020 for ten monitored newspapers in
China, Japan, Indonesia
China
Total EU news stories 171
Indonesia
Japan
61
239
Most frequent stories Covid-19
2nd
3rd
Refugee crisis
Post-Brexit
negotiation
Bilateral
trade Post-Brexit
issues
negotiation
Refugee crisis
Refugee crisis
4th
EU new climate bill
Data protection
EU new climate bill
5th
Enlargement
-
Data protection
As noted above, the first round of post -Brexit negotiations proper commenced in the first week
of March 2020 and intensified media interest was anticipated to reflect this next stage in the
process. Table 1 shows that the media across all three countries prioritised the emergence of
17
Covid19 in Europe in their EU reporting and although the level of overall EU news coverage
remained familiar, the focus of the repo rting on EU news underwent a remarkable transformation.
Over half of these EU news reports related to the pandemic, except in the Indonesia popular daily
Kompas (but Brexit was not a focus of attention in Kompas either).
The reporting of covid19 peaked in the third week (15 t h -21 s t ) of March, the period when the
outbreak of Covid-19 began to receive serious acknowledgement in Europe, especially in Italy.
There was a commensurate decline in the coverage of Brexit (see Tables 3 and Figures 3).
Table 2: EU-related news reporting on Covid -19 in Asian four popular dailies
Month of March:
1-7
8-15
16-21
22-31
People's Daily
1
6
11
7
Yomiuri Shimbun
6
16
20
9
Asahi Shimbun
2
5
16
4
Kompas
0
2
1
3
Figure 2: EU-related news reporting on Covid -19 in Asian popular dailies
25
Yomiuri Shimbun
No. of news item
20
15
Asahi Shimbun
10
People's Daily
5
Kompas
0
Week 1
Week 2
Week 3
Week 4
Week 5
Examples of these trends were most clearly evident in both Japanese mainstream dailies.
Historically, Japanese media has been more interested in reporting Brexit than its Asian
counterparts. It was still the case in the data of Mar ch 2020, yet, a shift of interest was obvious.
Of the total of 73 and 53 EU stories reported during March 2020 in the Yomiuri Shimbun and Asahi
18
Shimbun respectively, covid19 -related EU news accounted for 70% (51) and 51% (27) of these
stories. The comparable figures in China during the same period saw 60% (25 out of 42) of EU
news published in The People’s Daily focused on EU-covid19 stories. Indeed, if March is divided
at the mid-point, for every publication between two -thirds and 80% of their Covid19 EU n ews
was published in the last two weeks on the month.
Table 3: EU-related news which mentioned Brexit in selected Asian popular dailies
Month of March:
1-7
8-15
16-21
22-31
People's Daily
2
0
1
0
Yomiuri Shimbun
7
1
3
1
Asahi Shimbun
5
3
0
1
Kompas
0
0
0
1
Nihon Keizai Shimbun
17
12
5
7
Figure 3: EU-related news which mentioned Brexit in Japanese and Chinese popular dailies
8
7
Yomiuri Shimbun
No. of news item
6
5
4
Asahi Shimbun
3
2
People's Daily
1
0
Week 1
Week 2
Week 3
Week 4
Week 5
The dramatic change in direction for the Chinese and Japanese media emerges in early March
(Table 3). In both countries, EU -related stories on Brexit peaked in the first week of March
(coinciding with the first round of negotiations in Brussels) before fal ling off dramatically to low
19
single figures or even no Brexit stories for the remainder of the month. Overall, such Brexit news
accounted for just three stories in The People’s Daily (representing a mere 7% of the EU -related
news that month) 12 (16%) in th e Yomiuri Shimbun and 9 (17%) in the Asahi Shimbun. While all
three news articles in The People’s Daily focused on the lack of agreement between the EU and
the UK in the post-Brexit negotiation, only three out of the twelve pieces of news which mentioned
Brexit in Yomiuri Shimbun shared such interest. The other news items merely mentioned Brexit
on the sideline as a trivial backdrop. Similarly, only a single news item in Asahi Shimbun had
Brexit as the focus, the rest mentioned Brexit in one or even just ha lf a sentence. Lastly, even
given that the Indonesian media’s general interest in the EU was close to non -existent, there was
just a single Brexit-related story published that month.
The outlying exception to this was the business oriented daily Nihon Keizai Shimbun in Japan
and the English-language daily China Daily in China. In March 2020, 41 (out of 161) news articles
from Nihon Keizai Shimbun as well as nine articles (out of 79) from China Daily mentioned Brexit.
While these two newspapers showed a cle ar interest in Brexit compared to their counterparts,
Nihon Keizai Shimbun and China Daily still only devoted 6% and 8% of their EU -related coverage
on Brexit respectively in March 2020, whilst 43% and 53% of their EU -related coverage
respectively focused on Covid-19. In general, Brexit and its related trade issues, contrary to
expectation, seemed to no longer cast such a dominant shadow over the Asian media’s framing of
the EU.
The EU in Social Media
Arguably Brexit was a social media phenomenon par excellence, used by both the Leave and
Remain campaigns in 2016 and subsequently by a broad range of activists who contributed to the
subsequent 43 months of political debate in the UK. After January 2020, the role of social media
became an important element within the transitional negotiations process as understood within
the Asia-Pacific region. Mirroring the traditional media structure outlined above, the level of EU
news as well as the proportions devote d to post-Brexit issues and Covid19 EU -related news during
March 2020 is examined as used by 6 official social media platforms encompassing Twitter,
Facebook and Weibo (see Table 4). As shown in Figure 4, there was quite a wide variation in the
use of Social media platforms; the Ministries of Foreign Affairs in Indonesia and China were
active users, whereas the equivalent ministry and Japan almost never engaged in this form of
digital diplomacy. Conversely of the three EU delegations, the one based in Tokyo was by far the
most frequent user (on Twitter). Overall, China was the leading location for this type of public
diplomacy.
20
Table 4: Social Media Platforms monitored in China, Indonesia and Japan
China
Indonesia
Japan
Weibo account of
Facebook account of
Twitter account of
EU Delegation to China
EU Delegation to Indonesia
EU Delegation to Japan
EUinChina
EUinIndoniesia
EUinJapan
Weibo account of Europe
Desk China Ministry of
Foreign Affairs
中欧信使
Twitter account of Delegation Twitter account of
EuropeIII of Indonesia MFA
Mission of Japan to the EU
Direktorat Eropa 3 Kemlu RI
JapanMissionEU
Figure 4: Level of Social Media activity of the monitored account in three Asian countries,
March 2020
90
MFA
EU Delegation
80
70
no. of posts
60
50
40
30
20
10
0
China
Indonesia
Japan
Although the social media accounts run by Delegation for European affairs of China Ministry
of Foreign Affairs and Indonesia Ministry of Foreign Affairs were active in posting in March 2020,
their posts seldom featured the EU (Figure 5). The social media a ccounts which were run by the
EU delegations in third countries were the ones responsible in contributing to online appearance
21
of the Union.
What was striking was that of the 12 social media posts about the EU made by the MFAs in
China and Japan, not one concerned Brexit! Among the 110 posts which featured the EU from the
accounts of the three EU delegations, none mentioned Brexit either. Contrary to the absence of
interest in Brexit, Covid -19 was not unsurprisingly drawing increasing attention in Marc h 2020.
And as Table 5 illustrates, only China’s MFA released posts on the topic of the EU and the
pandemic (accounting for 10 of their 85 posts in March). The EU’s own Delegations certainly
became more vocal as the month progressed. Around half of all pos ts made by each of the three
regional EUDs in March profiled this topic (26 by the Tokyo EUD, 27 in Beijing and 9 in Jakarta).
Figure 5: Number of posts in monitored social media accounts that mentioned the EU, March
2020
60
MFA
EU Delegation
50
no. of posts
40
30
20
10
0
China
Indonesia
Japan
This data – both for the traditional and social media – poses question for the strategy of the
EU’s public diplomacy post -Brexit and during the pandemic. Counterintuitively, the traditional
media seemed to be the more receptive vehicle for profiling the EU, even if the focus shifted
dramatically from Brexit dominating the conversation to one where the visibility of the EU was
subsumed within the covid19 framework. It was almost as if a Brexit vaccine had been found
eradicating it from the public’s attention in Asia.
22
Table 5: Public D iplomacy social media posts on the EU and Covid19, March 2020
Month of March:
1-7
8-14
15-21
22-31
MFA China
0
2
6
2
MFA Indonesia
0
0
0
0
MFA Japan
0
0
0
0
EUD China
1
0
12
14
EUD Indonesia
0
0
3
6
EUD Japan
2
5
6
13
Economics Beyond Brexit
As other chapters in this collection discuss, the projections of the trade and economic
consequences of Brexit for the EU are numerous, varied and frequently pessimistic. These
analyses will remain at best speculative in the medium -term and of course funda mentally affected
by the terms agreed during the 2020 transition period. The possible contours of the EU27’s future
economic and trade identity can be traced partially through the EU negotiating mandate and the
points of disagreement alluded to already in this chapter.
The EU has argued for an overarching agreement, covering all aspects of future relations:
foreign policy, security co -operation, fish, trade, services, research, development and more. All
disputes would be referred to a single arbitration panel and the European Court of Justice would
have the final word on any aspects touching EU law. For the EU27, any final "agreement should
uphold common high standards, and corresponding high standards over time with Union standards
as a reference point". Specifically, this would apply "in the areas of state aid, competition, state owned enterprises, social and employment standards, environmental standards, climate change,
relevant tax matters and other regulatory measures and practices in these areas". 1 3 Conversely,
the UK’s ambition was significantly different 1 4 and was to secure a “comprehensive” free trade
13
Council Decision (EU, Euratom) 2020/266 of 25 February 2020 authorising
the opening of negotiations with the United Kingdom of Great Britain and
Northern Ireland for a new partnership agreement ST/5870/2020/INIT
14
The Future Relationship with the EU. The UK’s Approach to Negotiations ,
https://assets.publishing.service.gov.uk/government/uploads/system/uploads/a
ttachment_data/file/868874/The_Future_Relationship_with_the_EU.pdf
23
(CFTA) (similar to the EU -Canada FTA) with extra agreements (such as for fishing) negotiated
separately and governed by separate dispute resolution mechanisms. Importantly, as we have noted
above, the UK rejects the level -playing field” concerns of the EU over maintaining similar
standards for environmental, labour and state aid regulations.
As the 2020 negotiations approached mid -point, the litany of perceived issues remained
unresolved. In addition to the lack of a common consensus on the broad “level playing field”/
state aid conditions, sectoral challenges were extensive covering services, security and data
sharing, fishing, the application of a “reference point” and even – potentially – the re-litigation
of the Gibraltar issue. All that seemed certain was - whatever the outcome - a new trading regime
would be established, the EU’s Single Market freedoms protected, and parameters of EU -UK trade
changed. And yet, while Brexit was predicted to be the greatest single economic challenge to face
the EU this decade, the pandemic has no longer made this the case.
While in 2021 the EU27 will
remain the world’s biggest trader of goods and services and sec ond largest economy, the economic
impact of covid19 is expected to be significant and greater than Brexit. The European
Commission’s May 2020 forecast expected the Eurozone to contract by a record 7.75% in 2020
before growing by 6.25% in 2021. The EU -wide economy will be similarly affected initially
contracting by 7.5% before growing by around 6% in 2021. The sharpest declines were predicted
for Greece (9.7%), Italy (9.5%) and in Spain (9.4%), with this downturn estimated to likely be
significantly worse th an the 2009 crisis, when the EU economy contracted by 4.5%. An uneven
recovery among member states could also threaten the stability of the Euro. Public debt within
the Eurozone is expected to increase to 102.7% of GDP in 2020, up from 86% with the debt ra tio
for Eurozone’s third largest economy – Italy - particularly precarious at 158.9% predicted for
2020. As Commissioner Paolo Gentiloni noted on 6 May 2020, "It is now quite clear that the EU
has entered the deepest economic recession in its history."
15
It may prove to be the case that somethings are more important – and possibly more enduring
– than Brexit, a conclusion that was all but unthinkable before covid19. Just as Brexit in part was
a reaction against the free movement of people and the commitmen t to deeper integration across
a broader spectrum of policy domains, covid19 has presented brutal challenges to some of the
integration process’s most sacred principles. The open borders of Schengen, subsidiarity and
assigning responsibilities between the EU and its Member States and even the scale of the EU
budget and the concept of debt mutualisation. It may be difficult to disentangle the individual
impacts of Brexit and covid19, but together they herald a new experience for solidarity. Only time
will tell if this experience will enhance or diminish integration for the EU27.
15
https://ec.europa.eu/commission/presscorner/deta il/en/speech_20_822
24
Ⅰ-2
Post Brexit& Post Corona : the UK, the EU and Central East Europe:
“Illiberal Democracy” and the Influence of China
Kumiko Haba
[Abstract]
In this chapter, the author investigates and analyzes the effect of Brexit in the UK after
COVID-19, the expansion of China's influence in the Central-East-Southern half of the European
Union, and the emerging narrative of "Illiberal Democracy" from Hungary’s leader Victor Orbán
that is shaking western values in Central East Europe 1 .
In the UK, the birthplace of parliamentary democracy, the parliament rejected the Withdrawal
Agreement negotiated between the EU and Prime Minister May on three occasions. After the May
government resigned, the government of Boris Johnson in the wake of a general election victory
(December 2019) was able to secure a prompt exit from the EU at the end of January 2020.
However, the new economic relationship between the EU and the UK is yet to be reconstructed.
1
The author defines this region , Central East Europe, according to the definition of
Oscar Halecki.
Central East Europe lies in the Eastern part of Central Europe between
Germany and Russia, and the area’s nations are currently members of the EU.
Historically, this area was under the control of the Habsburg Empire, the German
Empire, or the Russian Empire.
Politically this region was influenced by democracy,
liberalism, socialism and independenc e, and continued to seek freedom and liberation
against the Soviet system.
It is also a region where the people refer to themselves as
“Central Europe” and insist on the unfairness of referring to them as “Eastern Europe”
during the end of the Cold War an d the period of negotiations for accession to the EU .
Historically, most of citizens of this region tried to embody European values rather than
European skepticism, but most of their life have been under the control of neighboring
big powers. Although they have been leading the European Revolution in 1989, after
joining the EU, they began insisting nationalism, populism, unique democracy and
economic development.
Oscar Halecki, Borderlands of Western civilization: A History
of East Central Europe,
Simon Publications, 1980.
in Integrating Europe , Kodansha Shinsho, 1994-2004.
Kumiko Haba, Nationality Question
Kumiko Haba, Enlarging Europe,
Searching Central Europe , Iwanami Publisher, 1998-2003.
25
Negotiations remain on-going at a time when COVID-19 continues to cause a large loss of life
and major economic disruption. It is a phenomenon not to be overlooked, that Asian Countries
controlled COVID -19 very well, including Australia and New Zealand, but especially Hong Kong ,
Taiwan and Vietnam.
How will the post-COVID-19 world change? The trend of international ‘power politics’ in the
early 21st century appears to be strengthening, Chinese influence is widening through the 16+1
and 17+1 policy and is making itself felt across half of the European Union. As a result of B rexit,
the future of Britain's political and economic clout remains uncertain.
Are we now truly witnessing a shift in the global order when the economic and medical reliance
and wider influence of Asian countries becomes a reality post-Brexit and once COVID-19 abates?
Introduction : Post Brexit :the UK, the EU, Central East Europe and China
This article analyzes and investigates the following three points on a historical basis and
geopolitical background from the viewpoint of international politics before and after Brexit.
1) the transformation of Power in Europe, and 2) the withdrawal of the United Kingdom (UK)
from the European Union (EU) and its effect, and 3) the decline of traditional European values,
in the face of the promotion of “Illiberal Democracy” and the influence of China. In so doing, it
focuses in on the following three parts.
a) The changing process of the relations among three parts of Europe: the UK, Europe and
Central East Europe, b) The transformation process of power relations of European integration,
and c) The expansion of China's influence to Europe (especially to the eastern and southern part
of Europe).
EU research can sometimes come across as being too Brussels-centric or focusing too much on
the United Kingdom, Germany, and France . However, as is well-known, the EU consisted of 28
countries (27 since the departure of the United Kingdom). Following the end of the Cold War the
bloc expanded eastwards on three occasion: 2004, 2007, and 2013 that brought 11 countries of the
former Eastern Europe (as well as Cyprus and Malta) into the organization. As a result, the EU
not only expanded geographically, it also expanded the reach of its value -system. This point must
not be neglected.
Enlargement also ensured that the EU became the world’s largest economic organization, not
least surpassing the United States’ in terms of GDP, prior to the 2010-12 Euro Crisis.
26
However, since the early 21 s t century, the flip-side of its economic strength has been an increase
in economic inequality and the reduction of social security and healthcare as a result of neoliberal “small government” policy.
Simultaneously, there was the economic growth of China and India. In particular, China's
growth and “Belt and Road strategy” has resulted in the 16 (countries in Central and Eastern
Europe) + 1(China) beginning to forge closer ties . This has witnessed China beginning to enter
the border region of Central East Europe within the EU as a result of infrastructure development,
investment, trade, and railway construction, and via its offer of medical and social security care
during the COVID-19 pandemic.
After the UK withdrawal from the EU, 11 of 27 countries are Central East Europe, and with the
participation of Serbia and Balkan countries in the future, geopolitically the EU will move further
east and south, not only geographically but also in terms of values and behavior.
If the influence of China and Russia increase s, will the traditional characteristics of the EU
(which had been forged by Western Europe) be changed greatly by developments in the east and
south?
Therefore, it will be necessary to reconsider that nearly half of the EU is constituted by the
countries of Central East and Southern Europe, n ot only considering that they are "poor and
backward" region, but we need to investigate and analyze the new structural position of the EU
greatly transforming from west to east and south , after the result of the withdrawal of the UK
from the EU.
As we will see in the latter half, China has expanded its influence on 16 -17
countries of the EU, including Greece 2 .
It might be possible that half of the EU member states will receive greater influence from China
and other Asian countries than from the EU headquarters in Brussels, in economics, trade,
investment, and infrastructure development . Could that also result in a competing set of values
within the geographical space of the EU ?
Such a possibility cannot be overlooked or neglected.
It is not a nightmare that the main powers of the EU may be replaced by China and Central
Europe or Central East Europe without realizing it.
2
Shunsuke Sato, "Trends toward China recognition of foreign countries and trend of
international order : Germany, Central and Eastern Europe and Belt and Road Initiative",
China Report , 34 Vol: 2019, JIIA. Repo. Institute of International Affairs.
27
<After Brexit and the Corona Crisis in Europe>
In spring (February to June) 2020, the dramatic impact of COVID -19 especially against five
major European countries (Spain, Italy, UK, France and Germany) and the US. This resulted in
the economic harm of developed countries in the EU and the USA, and opens the door for the
expansion of influence of China on the EU, especially to the eastern half of the EU, in Eastern
and Southern Europe in the long run. Coronavirus is not the reason for the process , but it has
strengthened and promoted such a tendency.
Another part of the reason is the impact of Brexit. In one part, it brought with it the ‘decline of
authority’ traditionally associated with the UK not least as a result of the impasse within the
House of Commons. The time and energy taken up by Brexit also impaired the UKs validity and
political leadership to solve the problems in the EU, and in the world as well. Such impairment
can also be witnessed with the USA as a result of the decisions of the Trump administration.
In addition, during the COVID -19 crisis in the US and Europe, the spread of the infection and
the number of fatalities in the UK has been extremely high ; even Prime Minister Boris Johnson
was infected. The government’s failure to adequately deal with the outbreak compared to other
countries has undoubtedly damaged the UK ’s standing in the world.
The policy failure not to be part of the EU's joint medical assistance (initially appearing to
insist on a herd-immunity strategy), and the decision not to be part of the EU respirator acquisition
program further damaged the UK’s reputation. As a result, of the decisions made in the United
States and Europe, Anglo -Saxon leadership has shown itself to be much less effective than one
might have expected.
On the other hand, COVID-19 infection rate after the dramatic expansion of China's rapid
measures and in South Korea, ASEAN countries, Taiwan, Hong Kong and New Zealand of
infection suppression has shown a superior set of leadership examples. Thus, what we are
witnessing is the flow "from the US an d Europe to Asia", was not only economic and information,
but also medical care, social order, and infection control.
The measures against Corona virus have also adopted a different strategy between Asia and the
US and Europe. The US and European system chose ‘lock-down’. On the other hand, the Asian
medical
social
system
emphasized
“self -restraint”,
suppression,
cleanliness,
Confucian
community and solidarity, etc. Corona infection ability and death rate was the same, 2 -3%, but
the Asian approach appears to have had a decisive advantage in preventing the spread of corona
infection and mortality rates.
Another thing that has not been paid much attention to in the corona crisis is the low mortality
rate in the old Socialist countries. Russia recently took place strong infection, but it shows less
28
dead than 1% mortality. (Of course, the possibility of statistical deficiencies cannot be ruled out).
In former communist countries other than Russia, infected persons also increase d, but mortality
rates have been smaller than the European great powers, except for Germany. Spain and Italy
across the board experienced 13% mortality; Central East European countries is less than half.
(Only in Hungary, the number of infected people is l ow: about 3535, but the death rate is almost
13%, 462, but the death rate in Romania and Poland is less than 4 -6% of infected persons.)
In this article, the author investigates the important key, the relationship among the UK, the EU
and Central East Europe under post-Brexit and Corona crisis, helping predict the European and
global political economy, but has not been much discussed until now, and the EU has consciously
been neglected. Moreover, the author examines the expansion of the influence of China, not only
in economy but also medical care, and clarifies the transformation of the EU structure after Brexit
and Corona.
1. The United Kingdom, Europe, Central East Europe---Historical and Geopolitical Background
Central East Europe, that is to say, former Eastern Europe or East Central Europe area has the
following geopolitical characteristics.
1)Historically and geographically, it is surrounded by strong neighbors, Germany and Russia
(Soviet Union). It is a multi- ethnic region. However, precisely because of this, in order to not be
swallowed up by the influence of two large powers, 2) the United Kingdom and the US, as
counterparts and as the expectations on the role of liberal -democracy and military force s were
introduced and were present in force.
This area is historically under the so -called "Resale serf system (Die Zweite Leibeigenschaft )"
(Engels) 3 . In the development and modernizati on process of Western industrialization, it was
incorporated into the structure; western modernization was supported by "resale serfdom". It is
also a hinterland of agriculture, and as a result, it became an area where the liberation of nations
and the liberation of serfs were delayed.
3
Satoshi Nakamura, Theory of Slave and Slave : Reconstruction of Marx- Engels's
Theory of History, The University of Tokyo Press, 1977.
29
<Premature Political Awareness and Immature Economic System>
Due to the historical experience mentioned above, Central and Eastern Europe was often labelled
as having a "premature political consciousness and immature economic system" (Esterhazy) 4 .
Consequently, the movements of liberation of farmers and people existed from an early stage.
It is also a region where Western liberalism, nationalism, democracy of the people and the idea
of labor movement have already existed since the 19th century.
Such a "premature political consciousness and immature economic system " combined with the
characteristics of the hinterland supporting modernization of the West forms the unique character
of Central East Europe.
<Trust in Liberalism and Democracy>
Under these circumstances, as a feature of Central East Europe, in order to counter against
Germany in the West, and to counter against Russia in the East, the United States and the United
Kingdom as the symbol of liberalism, democracy, modernization and n ational liberation of the
principle was relied upon strongly. With the fusion of feudalistic characters and modern
philosophy, the region evolved it will grow as a unique ethnic area that had a hybrid character.
For example, in particular Poland, already a pre-modern system, under feudalism existed as
"noble republic system (Polish: Rzeczpospolita ) - to elect a king in feudal parliament" . 5 That
was its historical experience .
It is well known that nations in Central East Europe drew upon the political model of the United
Kingdom and United States (nationalism, liberalism and democracy ) in their struggle against the
Habsburg Empire, the German Empire, and the Russian Empire during the World War I.
Liberalism and democracy (as well as the ideas of the socialist movement) would be used against
Nazi Germany and the Soviet Union in the Second World War, as tool s to try and counter
domination. This was inspired by UK liberalism, the nation-state philosophy and the German
social democracy movement. During WWI, they collaborated with the United States and the UK ,
and developed anti-German and anti-Soviet Union movements.
It is well-known that during the Cold War, Central and Eastern countries repeatedly sought to
break away from Soviet domination: restoring independence, sovereignty, and " Socialism with a
4
Esterhazy Peter, translated by Mika Waseda, " Eyes of the Countess of Hahn -Hahn-
Down the Danube " (Imagination of Eastern Europe 3), 2008.
5
Naruhito Toriyama, “Aristocratic Republic of Poland ”, Hokkaido History, 1960-07.
30
human face," They also hoped that the United States and Britain might liberalize democracy and
restore unity in Europe. That is, because it was historically geographically surrounded by the
military powers like Germany and Soviet Russia, the liberal idea was a powerful symbol for them.
The values that they held onto in the hope of l iberating themselves were the liberalism of Britain,
democracy in France, social democracy and "socialism with a human face.”
Especially Poland, which found itself occupied by Nazi Germany and the Soviet Union . It
formed a government-in-exile that was based in London that continued for the duratio n of the War
and the Cold War. 6
< Relation between the UK and Central East Europe after the End of the Cold War >
What then about the relationship between Britain, the EU, and Central East Europe after the end
of the Cold War and after the EU enlargement?
1) Central East Europe were basically and economically in the framework of the German economy.
2) That is why they expected the support and the leadership of the United Kingdom, after the end
of the Cold War. Large amounts of young students, professionals, women, skilled and unskilled
workers utilizing their rights as EU citizens took employment in the United Kingdom, France,
Germany, as well as Brussels with the EU headquarters.
3) This resulted in the local people of the United Kingdom feeling a sense of discomfort toward
the immigration from Central East Europe and exacerbated the relationship between the United
Kingdom and Central East Europe and triggered the United Kingdom res istance toward the EU
regarding immigrants and the EU bureaucracy.
2. The EU Enlargement and the EU’s Ruthless Treatment of Central East Europe
From 1996, the so-called " EU Eastward Enlargement" started, and the accession negotiations
(Copenhagen criteria), began. There also existed the feeling in the west side of the EU, that
Central East Europe, which was the former communist bloc, that the cou ntries were heterogeneous,
and requested them to become integrated with the EU in political, economic, and social contact
6
Józef Galinsky, Poland in the Second World War, Palgrave. Macmillan, 1985.
31
to through EU law (compliance with the acquis). It changed the life, economy, and social style of
Central East Europe, which had been completely different for decades 7 .
While staying in Hungary in 1995 and in London in 1996 for a total of two years, the author
witnessed the disparities and structural changes in the EU due to the expansion of the EU . 8
From 1995-2004, as a result of removing the vestiges of the socialist system, and being forced
to comply with Brussels’ Western standards, liberalization, democratization and marketization,
people from across Central East European recoiled against the EU. In the turn of t he century from
the 20 t h to 21 s t , and from 2004 to 2007, upon getting the membership of the EU, the dream and
reality’s discrepancies began.
Because of the gap of the West and East, Western Europe set the policy in terms of a "Europe
of the two-speeds and two dimensions". The fact that domestic governments across Central and
Eastern Europe adopted policies, in order to comply with the demands of the EU, cost them
politically as their citizens became disgruntled 9 .
In particular, consider the Polish dairy products and wine, agricultural products like Foie gras
in Hungary, traditional and historical special products of Central East Europe. The EU wanted to
protect the vested interests of the EU members in Western Europe by limiting market access of
the products of new member states, and us ing EU subsidies to, for example, shrink vineyards in
the region, which caused widespread dissatisfaction in East European nations. The EU consciously
lowered wages in Central East Europe to keep the EU competitive with Asia 1 0 .
All these situations in the EU disparities spread discontent and nationalism in Central East
Europe against the EU.
Below, this article analyzes the United Kingdom’s decision to withdraw from the EU in June
2020, and the transformation of the power inside the EU, and the influence of the Brexit impact,
1) The relative decline of the power of the EU,
2) China and India, especially China's Belt and Road Initiative and Central East Europe,
3) And “Illiberal democracy”, conservatism and nationalism, and Euro skepticism in Central East
Europe.
7
Kumiko Haba, Challenge of Expanding Europe : Will it become Global Power in Line
with America , Chuko Shinsho, 2004.
8
Kumiko Haba, Enlarging Europe, Exploring Central Europe , Iwanami Shoten, 1998.
9
Kumiko Haba, Akio Komorida, Soko Tanaka, Eastern Expansion of Europe , Iwanami
Shoten, 2006.
10
Kumiko Haba, Enlarging Europe, op.cit , 2004.
Csaba László" Social Change in Central and Eastern Europe: General Trends and
National Patterns ", TIGER Working Paper No. 98, Central European University - IRES
Department, November 1, 2006.
32
In particular, in the latter half pages, I investigate China beginning to enter and collaborate
with 16+1, which happened in 2019.(including Greece 17 + 1) 1 1 . On the topic of construction, we
consider such the facts of Central East Europe in the area of constructing roads, railway
infrastructure, development and investment.
It is also revealed that Brexit, not only led to the rapid decline of Britain 's power on the
European continent (not just with EU member states) its prestige is also waning in t he neighboring
small countries and the former colonies of the British Empire.
This effect is seen even in the UK -Japan relationship, which has been a historically friendly
collaboration for 150 years , except during WWII, and the UK was the model of Japanese
modernization. However, after Brexit, Honda and Hitachi have announced plans to withdraw from
the UK.
Eastern and Southern European countries have also been observing and learning from the
reality of the international situation and the UK’s Brexit experiences and have cautiously
determined that a different path is in order. T hey do not withdraw from the EU; they are taking
the opposite actions that the UK is taking. That is, in other words, even though they are
dissatisfied with the EU, they remain inside the EU, and aim to oppose and reform from the inside.
The United Kingdom, leaving the EU is no more the leader of the half billion people in the
EU's political, military and economic system. Even though the UK has only 55 million inhabitants,
it has the world’s fifth largest GDP after Germany. After the decision of Brexit, Boris John son
approached China and wished to ask for additional investment in nuclear power generation and
collaboration with Hua Wei’s 5G system.
This was postponed by the expansion of the corona virus. China started a “masks diplomacy”
after the recovery of Wuhan situation from the end of March, but there is another problem, which
is that it was revealed that many masks and antibody test kits were defective in Europe and were
not certified by the Chinese government 1 2 .
11
Aki Tonami, "What can be a threat foreign direct investment : As an example of
European inward investment regulatory regime" (Special
Volume: Problems of
technology and security ) , Defense Studies , 60 , pp. 21-41, 2019 -03 URL
http://hdl.handle.net/2241/00157023 ,
Pepermans Astrid, " China ’s 16 + 1 and Belt
and Road Initiative in Central Eastern Europe: Economic and Political Influence at a
Cheap Price", pp. 181-203 | Published Online: 21 Sep 2018. https://doi.org/ 10.10 80 /
25739638.2018.1515862
12
"Chinese masks and inspection kits rejected by European countries"
33
The evaluation of the United Kingdom changed drastically during the three years since June
2016. In the rest of this chapter, we will investigate the transformation of the British international
status and how the power relations in the European continent have changed politically and
economically, and how China or Russia are seeking to build linkages in Europe.
3. Transformation of British International Status and Change of Power Relations in Europe
From the so-called imperialism era of the 19th century until World War I, the British Empire
was the model of modern capitalism . Its role was symbolized by the sterling pound and Union
Jack national flag.
After World War II, even though the top position of economics and military was assumed by
the United States and the Soviet Union, the collaboration between the United States and the United
Kingdom remained an important symbol of t he European Community being a bulwark against the
Soviet influence during the Cold War. During that era, the although the global role of the United
Kingdom was in decline, it still continued a leadership role in military, politics, and economy in
the EC / EU.
Major changes would take place after the end of the Cold War. In 1989, the former Eastern
European countries abandoned socialism, seeking instead a "Return to Europe". The role of
Germany was expanding to the East, in the turn of the century from the 20-21st. On the other hand,
China and other Asian ASEAN countries rapidly were rising and collaborating with the EU and
as part of the ASEM (Asia Europe Meeting – established in 1996) which had adopted a three pillar
structure encompassing political, economic and social culture matters. More specially, the politics
strand dealt with terrorism, maritime security, energy security, disaster prevention, immigration
problem, the economic strand saw the formation of the Asia-Europe Business Forum (AEBF),
while the socio-cultural strand dealt with culture, arts, education, youth, and the exchange of
students. The ASEM decided to put an emphasis on "open regionalism.” 1 3 .
Not meeting the criteria " BBC News Japan 2020.3.31.
https://www.bbc.com/japanese/52102319
13
MOFA, Asia-Europe Meeting https://www.mofa.go.jp/mofaj/area/asem/ 1.html
34
1) The Center of Gravity moves to East in Europe
Under these circumstances, the center of gravity of Europe moved eastward both inside and
outside the EU.
The EU Enlargement toward Central East Europe meant the historic and local expansion of
German influence 1 4 to the Central and Eastern part of Europe.
The introduction of the Euro, the expansion of the continental economic zone, and the shift of
Central East Europe to the EU (due to the EU's geographic shift to the east ) resulted in a
diminishing role of Britain . Nonetheless, for Central East Europe it continued to remain an
important player as a counter for Germany and Russia. The geopolitical position and role of the
United Kingdom and the United States was extremely attractive for Central East Europe.
More recently though, decisive change was caused by the expansion of China's influence. This
has come about via a rapid -fire pace of change centered around two initiatives. First, the AIIB
(Asian Infrastructure and Investment Ba nk) brought the opening.
The second is the Belt an d Road Initiative policy which includes a European dimension and is
marketed as a win – win economic policy. It now straddles half of the earth, through land, sea,
and the Arctic "triple necklaces’ routes. It is the 100 -year Silk Road Economic Zone concept 1 5 .
China and Russia have signed treaties to embark upon c ollaborative activities between the BRI
and the Eurasian Economic Alliance , including Shanghai Cooperation Organization (SCO) .
Collaboration of Russian military and Chinese economy might become a menace to the EU where
division and internal divergence was already apparent.
Cooperation between China and Central East European countries was established in 2012 and
is currently 16 + 1 ( 17 + 1 including Greece) since 2020 1 6 .
14
Kumiko Haba, Enlarging Europe, Exploring Central Europe, Iwanami Shoten, 1998.
15
Kumiko Haba, "China's Strategy for Europe -Relationship with EU strengthened by
Britain's withdrawal from the EU ---AIIB & Belt and Road Initiative", Weekly Economist ,
2016.9.13. Kazuo Yukawa, " political economy considerations of Belt and Road Initiative",
Special Volume: East Asian economic integration and development -AEC, RCEP, TPP
and the whole area Ichiro, Asian Studies , Vol. 64 (2018 years) Vol. 64. No. 4 p 98 -112,
https://doi.org/10.11479/asianstudies.64.4_98
16
“China, Eastern Europe, and Balkans, St rengthening Cooperation Summit,
Participation in Greece ” Shizuoka Shimbun , 2019/4/12.
https://www.at -.com/news/article/international/622226.html
https://www.saga-s.co.jp/articles/-/361625
35
Saga Shimbun,
China's influence has expanded in the eastern half of the EU in a wide range of areas such as
infrastructure, investment, economy, trade, politics, information, at the same time as the main
axis of the EU has shifted from the west to the east 1 7 .
It is the expansion of Chinese influence to the United Kingdom and the EU, which is taking
place in parallel to the confusion of Brexit; it is also the expansion of relations between China
and Central East Europe. As an effect, it also brings forth a division of the EU by China and
Russia.
2) Brexit and Russian Influence on Populism
The Brexit referendum brought a great shock to many EU countries. During the European
refugee crisis of 2015, populism and nationalism were widespread throughout Europe. The sense
of crisis and fear spread across the bloc. This came at a time when talk about leaving the EU
featured in the political debates of several other member states such as Italy, Greece, or Hungary.
On the other hand, when the Maidan Revolution happened in Ukraine in 2014, Russian
president Vladimir Putin decided to have a referendum and occupied the Crimean Peninsula with
the Russian Army after the national referendum was incorporated into Russia. Because of that
occupation of the Crimean Peninsul a by Russian Amry, Russia was expelled from the G8, and
British government and other European government s imultaneously summoned their ambassadors
from Russia due to the assassination.
Under these circumstances, Russia started to support and funded aggressively the European
Populists, such as Nigel Farage of UKIP, Le Pen of FN, Alexis Tsipras, Greek Prime Min ister.
The European Commission criticized Russia in an article that Russia is dividing the European
Union by funding populists 1 8 .
17
M Kaczmarski, J Jakóbowski, China on Central-Eastern Europe: '16 + 1'as seen from
Beijing , -OSW Commentary, 2015.
18
Kumiko Haba “Russia: Stronger presence in “ anti-EU, and anti-immigrant ”-
European extreme right force approaching Putin” World Economic Forecast 2017,
Weekly Economist, 2017.10.1. Kumiko Haba “Russian and European Populism ” Report of
Japan Association for Comparative Politics , June 2017.
36
4. Brexit and the Decline of the UK and the US Prestige: The rise of “Illiberal Democracy”
In the United Kingdom, the draft Withdrawal Agreement negotiated with the EU by UK Prime
Minster Theresa May, was rejected by the parliament on three occasions – contributing to her
eventual resignation in June 2019. Boris Johnson, who came into power afte r that, said that he
was not afraid to would leave without an agreement. He eventually reached a compromise deal
with the EU that included the matter the Irish border and tariff issues for Northern Ireland (a deal
not so dissimilar to what the EU had offered PM May but which she had rejected) . In the general
election in December 2019, the Conservative Party gained an overwhelming victory that gave
Johnson a large majority to get his deal passed by the parli ament. On 31 January 2020, the UK
officially left the political institutions of the EU.
On the other hand, even in Southern Europe and Central Eastern Europe where populist
political parties are strong, the disillusion to the United Kingdom began to spread with the EU
leadership.
The difficulty of the UK’s departure from the EU greatly impaired the UK 's position at home
and abroad. As a result of that, ironically, the Brexit process had helped calm the populist political
assault on the EU. At the May 2019 European elections, for example, only about 20 percent of the
populist parties across the block managed to get seats. Many Central and Eastern European
countries were also disillusioned having witnessed first-hand Britain’s difficult experiences .
Brexit was the result of direct democracy, a referendum, but similar to the presidential election
of President Trump in the US, it showed a loss of trust in the international order that had been
dominated by the US and the UK for the past 100 -200 years, which was in fact constructed by the
United Kingdom and the United States.
It indicated and produced a difficult and basic question, “What is democracy?” in the face of
the rise of populism. This caused an explosion of books such as “Self -Death of Western Europe,
“The way to die of democracy” 1 9 . Such books were published and widely read one after another,
and through these books, values of modernizatio n, democracy, liberalism, marketization
themselves are also re-considered and discussed.
19
Douglas Murray, Western Self-Death: The Way of Death of European Liberalism , Toyo
Keizai, 2018. Steven Rebitsuki, The way to die of democracy: the road to Dictatorship
caused by polarized politics, Shinchosha, 2018.
37
<Expansion of Coronavirus in the US and Europe>
Ironically, the coronavirus had drastically spread from February in 2020 all over the world
especially in Europe and the USA. These countries were locked down, but it continued to spread
until almost 5 million people were infected and 320 thousand died. It spread to emerging countries
as well including the BRICS (Brazil, Russia, India). It damaged the infrastructure of developed
countries: affecting economy, pol itics, military, and medical and social security system. These
are the pillars upon which trust and the social structure of citizens rest, but these modernized
systems are being severely challenged by COVID-19. I would like to investigate how the US and
Europe were influenced by coronavirus (see below).
Many European countries are reconsidering “solitude and solidarity” and help and support
each other, but Trump in the USA criticized the “China virus” and Tedros, WHO’s secretary
general, and the UK criticiz ed the EU.
1) "Illiberal Democracy ": A solution different from Brexit
Against this backdrop, among Central East European countries, it has been left to the
government of Hungary (as well as Poland) to challenge the EU’s norms and values. At the
forefront of this challenge is Hungarian Prime minister and leader of Fidesz – (Fidesz Magyar
Polgári Szövettség - in English – Fidesz-Hungarian Civic Alliance) Victor Orbán who has
advanced an alternative vision - what he calls an “illiberal democracy".
It rallied against immigrants and promoted refugee exclusion, recovery of sovereignty, etc.,
leading EU officials to severely criticize the Hungarian Government ’s actions and commence
sanctions procedures.
Poland also decided to publish a new law on the Su preme Court which violates the
independence of the judiciary, and the EU decided to take them to the EU Court of Justice.
However, according to reports from a Berlin reporter, there are also problems with the EU's
response, because sanctions for the suspen sion of voting rights require unanimous decisions by
the member states except the target countries, but the Czech Republic and Bulgaria are opposed.
Therefore, sanctions have remained unenforced against Central East European countries even
though they are in conflict with the EU ’s agreed position on immigrants and refugee acceptance 2 0 .
20
According to the AFP on September 13, 2018, the European Parliament adopted a
resolution for political sanctions against the Hungarian Orbán administration. Orbán
argued against the report leading to this resolution as an insult to the Hungarian people.
38
Against this backdrop, the influence of China and Russia has penetrated into Central and Eastern
Europe, further deepening the division within the EU 2 1 .
Fidesz have won three straight victories in the general election in 2010, 2014, 2018. Its
success originated from a skepticism concerning the EU's neo -liberal competition policy in the
21st century, and a keen criticism of the corruption of the Socialist Party who carried the EU’s
policy domestically.
In Hungary, the Socialist Party, the former Communist Party, led much of the process of
reform at the end of the Cold War post-1989. However, when they lead the reform from 2002, the
Minister of Finance at that time, Lajos Bokros offered the Bokros Package (Bokros Csomag),
which was a neo-liberal competition policy, and carried out the fiscal reform, to reduce social
security and public policy spending. From that time, people’s discontent increased. As a result,
the Socialist Party could not recover from overseeing the expanded economic disparity after the
end of the Cold War, and could not even realize a sustained economic recovery. In addition,
plagued by corruption allegations they lost the trust of the people . After the former eight Central
East European countries joined the EU in 2004, the dissatisfaction raised against the Socialist
Party's government, and the corruption of the gove rnment in the process of dismantling state owned enterprises increased public dissatisfaction.
As a result, the conservative government of
the Fidesz – Hungarian Civic Alliance was re -administered, subsequently, long term singly
administrated government b y prime minister Victor Orbán has continued for a period of over 10
years and has maintained two -thirds majority of the parliament.
However, the 20 years after the end of the Cold War in 1989 was the time when major painful
economic reforms were carried ou t to abolish the socialist system and to join the EU . This
necessitated the introduction of liberal economic policies and the wiping out of the old ‘command’
system. It could be said that this was an unavoidable issue for any Central East European
government trying to join the EU.
Sanctions are based on Article 7 of the EU Basic Convention, used for the first time in
the European Parliament. Sanctions under Article 7 of the EU Basic Convention were also
resolved by Poland in 2017 by the European Commission. AFP 2018.9.13.
https://www.afpbb.com/articles/-/3189426
However, in reality, EU sanctions against
Poland and Hungary are not being implemented due to the opposition of Eastern
European countries, and it is said that only fragmentation will be prolonged.
21
Hideo Miyashita, Berlin “East European Revolution 30 years, powerful politics
emerges, deepens with EU ”, Sankei Shimbun, January 7, 2019.
39
That is why in both Poland and the Czech Republic, conservative parties were forced to
balance their economic policies with their cultural defensive polices when they introduced the
EU's rapid prescription for the introduc tion of a Western European system.
2) Orbán’s Majority Strategy- “Illiberal Democracy” and Creating Workfare Community
The notorious Fidesz leader, Victor Orbán was a lawyer and was the youngest Prime minister
at the age of 35 in 1998. Leading Fidesz, (which in English means Youth Democrat Union) started
from the liberal democrat party originally, his speech was rational and logical against the Socialist
Party, which was organized by the Horn and Gyurcsany administration from 1994-1998, 20002010, which was stable but mismanaged discontentment of the people. Much of Orbán’s support
base comes from the countryside and villages. They were attracted to his insistence of
independence from the EU, restoration of sovereignty, nationa list policies and links with 1.5
million Hungarian minorities outside the border.
In 2010 Fidesz won the election with two-thirds of the votes against the socialist government's
unregulated failure. He has continued to overwhelm the opposition with an atmosphere of antiimmigration, exclusion of immigrants, and support for Hungarian minorities outside the border in
Romania, Slovakia, Austria, and Serbian Vojvodina. Above all, he defends the conservative
national interests of the region against liberal trend s that tends to be associated with capital cities.
This has enabled him to maintain an overwhelming parliamentary majority and concentrate his
power.
The wider goal is to form a conservative political community group in the region and create a
"workfare" system that supports the administration as the aggregate of workfare. It draws upon
the UK 's departure the EU, the local dissatisfied people who underpin the Trump administration,
the elderly who fear welfare loss, and the nationalists who are dissatisfied with the EU's liberal
competition policy. Orbán spontaneously formed a conservative "workfa re" community around
the liberal capital, consolidating those dissatisfied groups to protect Hungarian interests. It has
proved to be a successful method of populism.
Against the background of such a region of aggregate welfare system, against the liberalism
of the EU, he insisted on the merits of an "illiberal Democracy”, based on the "popular support"
dictatorship. He has succeeded in promoting a shift of the concentration of power to the
government and has maintained and further strengthened a stable long -term dictatorship despite
criticism both inside and outside of the European Union 2 2 .
22
A Kallius , D Monterescu, PK Rajaram “Immobilizing mobility: Border ethnography,
40
3) “Illiberal Democracy” will Lead the World to Success”
" Illiberal Democracy” was a policy vision asserted by Orbán after the landslide victory in the
general election, in a speech in a local city in 2014.
He said: “Successful nations are not necessarily liberal. There is also non -liberal democracy
(in the world). Now the Stars of international politics and economics are Singapore, China, India,
Turkey, and Russia.
It is time we are set free from the western dogma. We are thinking about how to organize the
best societies that can compete and win in magnificent world races. We will not reject liberalism,
but we will not make it the central idea of the state". "There are nation states, liberal states, and
welfare states (in the world). What comes next? Workfare states." 2 3
Therefore, so-called "Illiberal democracy”, democracy without liberalism, means to promote
a concentration of power based on an organized and widespread "popular support" dissatisfied
with modern global capitalism. Following the model of successful nations in the world, it is
important to create social communities in each region, for example by forming Hungarian civic
groups, workfare communities in each region, and thereby support the government)”. 2 4
As Orbán said, they need to move away from the dogma of neo -liberal globalization in Western
Europe, which widens the gap and widens corruption, and looks down on Central East Europe and
Southern Europe – an approach that had been followed by the rather lib eral leadership of the
Socialist Party. For Orbán learning from China, Russia and India necessitates a powerful state
based on a “workfare” community, "democracy without liberalism” and the support of local people.
illiberal democracy, and the politics of the “refugee crisis” in Hungary”, - American
Ethnologist, 2016, A Buzogány, Illiberal democracy in Hungary: authoritarian diffusion
Democratization, Taylor & Francis, 2017.
Kumiko Haba, “Expansion of EU / NATO
and“democratization” of Central and Eastern Europe ”, Kumiko Haba / Satomi
Mizobata(eds), Russia, Enlarged EU, Minerva Publishing, 2011.
23
Full text of Viktor Orbán's speech at Băile Tuşnad (Tusnádfürdő) of 26 July 2014 ,
July 29, 2014 -by Csaba Tóth, Budapest Beacon, October 13 , 2013 - April 13.2018.
https://budapestbeacon.com / full-text-of-viktor-orbans-speech-at-baile-tusnadtusnadfurdo-of-26-july-2014 /
24
op. cit.
And see Fareed Zakaria, "The Rise of Illiberal Democracy", Foreign Affairs ,
11-12, 1997 (Retrieved 6 July 2013).
41
This is a way of thinking by theoretically taking populism one step further, that explored and
examined the way of successful centralized countries in economics such as China, India and
Singapore, after the decline of Western European powers.
It is a persuasive but dangerous thinking for pragmatism .
It cannot be overlooked that in the background there was the regional disparity that the EU
and Western Europe had taken over the 30 years as neo-liberal competitive policy after the Cold
War, and the political and economic inhospitality to Central East Europe.
Also, the historically
respected UK has left the EU, but it does not appear to be successful either.
The situation must not be overlooked that there was a political and economic snub to Central
East Europe from Western Europe. In order to maintain c ompetitiveness against Asia (cheap
products, cheap wages), Western Europe considered Central East Europe as a hinterland allowing
EU of different speeds and dimensions, which is symbolized by the so -called "two-speed, twodimensional Europe".
Central East European skepticism originated from the EU regional integration as part of
Western European neo-liberal competition policy. But unlike the United Kingdom Brexit, they
attempt to act to stay in the EU and avoid the collapse of the nation state, while imp lementing a
strategy of self(country) -defense.
Orbán - Fidesz Civil Alliance has supporters in the outside, Jobbik (better people=extreme
right. In Hungarian language, "right" and "good" are synonyms) , seated in the Parliament since
2010. Both raise immigrant exclusion, anti-Semitism, and Hungarian nationalism. By the double
outer-moat with autonomous organization of local conservatives ( workfare) and with the extreme
right-wing they exclude other political parties and have maintained strong power successfully
from 2010 to 2020, although they are not “liberal”, but “majority democracy” supported by local
self-workfare organizations.
4) . The Balanced Policy in Poland between Law and Justice (PiS) Government and Tusk
In Poland, Jaroslav Kaczynski and PiS (Law and Justice) took power in 2005-2007 and 20152020.
PiS is a traditional Catholic right -wing party, founded in 2001 from political forces that had
ties to the original Solidarity movement. Then PiS became the first party in 2005, when the
Kaczyński twins became the prime minister, (Jarosław Aleksander Kaczyński, el der brother), and
president (Lev Kaczyński, younger brother). However, President Lev Kaczyński and cabinet
ministers died in a crash of the presidential airplane near the forest of Smolensk suburb, close to
42
the Russian border, on the way to lead official mourning ceremony in the Katyn forest 2 5 . The
"Katyn Forest Incident" concerned the murder of thousands of Polish cavalry officers by the Soviet
KGV in 1940 . It has left an unbelievably high level of distrust and a wound that couldn't heal
between the Polish people and Russia 2 6 .
Unlike Hungary, Poland has a strong sense of mission as a "western fort that protects
Catholicism" because it is a West Slavic nation that has historically accepted Catholicism and has
a historically anti-Russian / anti-Soviet ethnic identity. There was a strong solidarity in Poland
with England. Therefore, in modern history, relations with England were a strong memory for a
long time. However, since joining the EU, there is a strong sentiment among the people that EU
policies are damaging their own national interests.
PiS has policies which are common to other Central East European countries, such as
immigrant expulsion, anti-Semitism, Polish Cat holicism, as well as continuing free medical fees
which was the strategy of the socialist era.
When it comes to certain cultural values, however, PiS takes a different line from other liberal
countries; it had approved a ban on abortion, and prohibition o f same-sex marriage. However, the
bill that banned abortion in the House of Representatives in 2016 was rejected due to the spread
of demonstrations by hundreds of thousands of people 2 7 .
Sanctions were approved against the PiS regime by the European Commis sion in 2017 under
Article 7 of the EU Basic Treaty but those sanctions could not be enforced due to an inability to
secure unanimity from the other member states . So, Kaczynski argued that “the EU was just
hysterical and could not do anything useful”.
On the other hand, another prominent politic ian in Poland holding many opposing views to
Kaczynski, Donald Tusk, represented a strong liberal/progressive strand in Polish politics. He was
25
On April 10, 2010, the military aircraft (T-154 ) crashed as an accident in Katyn
Forest, carrying the members of Parliament, including the Polish President and his wife,
the Chief of Staff of the Armed Forces, attempting to commemorate the genocide in the
Katyn Forest.
26
https://www.afpbb.com/art icles/-/2717331
Katyn Forest genocide: 22,000 officers, police officers, and clergy were shot dead in
the Katyn Forest on the outskirts of Smolensk, in the event of the disappearance of
250,000 officers, prisoners, and civilians taken by the Soviet army in 1940. It was only
decades later in 1990 that the Soviet Union acknowledged that the massacre had been
carried out by the NKVD . The tragedy of Polish history, which has also become a novel
and movie titled "The Katyn Forest Incident".
27
https://www.huffingtonpost.jp/2016/10/05/poland_n_12367796.html
43
the leader of the opposition party, Civi c Platform (PO), which is a moderate liberal party. Tusk
was prime minister from 2007 -2014 before assuming the role of the President of European Council
for a five-year mandate. His balanced approach to the Brexit negotiations was highly evaluated.
In that respect, Poland is different from Hungary’s one-party rule of the Fidesz Civil Alliance
under Orbán. In Poland we can witness the presence of parties promoting both a strong pro-EU
and anti-EU stance.
Poland is a member of the Weimar Triangle (Germany, France, Poland, the three countries’
leaders and foreign ministers summit), which was founded in Weima r, Germany in 1991, and the
largest population and territory in Central East Europe and is second only to Spain in the EU,
furthermore, and has a strong army which participates in a voluntary coalition army with the
United States. Therefore, Poland has a leadership role in the EU and Visegrád four countries.
5. Visegrád Countries Expan sion of Power: The Transformation of European Power Relations
After Britain's withdrawal from the EU, European power relations are changing. In Japan, the
German-Franco Union by Merkel and Macron has been attracting attention, however, there are
many researchers who suggest the expansion of influence of future Visegrád countries.
The Visegrád countries first came together in Visegrád, Hungary in 1991 . At the time it was
composed of three Central East European: Poland, Hungary and Czechoslovakia. With the split of
the latter into the Czech Republic and Slovakia in 1993 the Visegrád grouping became four. The
V4 as it now well-known seeks to build regional cooperation relationship s between the four and
promote its regional voice with in the EU.
The Visegrád countries cooperation originated with a historical symbolic meeting of three
kings in Visegrád in 1335. The three kings were the king of Hungary, the king of Poland, and the
king of Bohemia. They talked together to compete with the Habsburg Empire and build an alliance
in the capital Visegrád at the time of the Hungarian Kingdom 2 8 .
The Visegrád countries meeting continues to be held since then, with the economic stability
of the four countries, stable political and economic relations with each other and with Germany,
opposition to EU bureaucracy, and in recent years expanding relations especially with China as
their main priorities.
28
Kumiko Haba "Central Europe four countries (the Visegrád countries) Alliance",
Nationalism Question of Integrating Europe, Kodansha Gendaishinsho, 1999 /2004, pp.
161-162, Chapter 7.
44
Because of the UK withdrawal from the EU, several researchers point out that the EU center
of gravity might be moving from Western Europe to Central East Europe 2 9 .
In the future, due to the UK ’s withdrawal from the EU, Germany and moderate conservative
parties in Central East Europe, and Orbán’s "illiberal Democracy" might have influence in the
future, especially if they are able to build relationships with powerful nations beyond the EU.
And it was China that noticed that.
6. China and Central East Europe — Post Brexit
On April 13, 2019, Chinese prime minister Li Keqiang held a summit meeting with 16 Central
and Central East European countries in the Croatian Mediterranean resort of Dubrovnik 3 0 .
China's policy towards Central East Europe has a great significance as an important base for
the " One Belt One Road" Strategy, which is an infrastructure development plan based on the old
Silk Road that goes halfway around the globe from Xi'an, China to Europe as 16 countries + 1.
The 16 countries are Albania, Bosnia -Herzegovina, Bulgaria, Croatia, Czech Republic, Estonia,
Greece, Hungary, Latvia, Lithuania, North Macedonia, Montenegro, Poland, Romania, Serbia,
Slovakia and Slovenia. It has provided active economic and political support to small EU countries,
such as infrastructure development, road and railway, investment, trade expansion, and
strengthening of cooperation, using Chinese money and companies.
From 2020, support for
medical and epidemic measures will be also added after the corona pandemic.
On April 14, 2020, Li K eqiang of China, added Greece and it became 17 + 1 . This grouping
therefore includes not only former communist countries, but also Southern Mediterranean
countries and will expand to include Italy in the near future as well. This means almost two -thirds
of the EU 27 Southeast European countries collaborate with China and start to develop an
economic relationship 3 1 .
After the EU enlargement in 2004, and 2007, for 15 years, the EU has continued to accept the
disparities in the new member countries and continu e to give priorities to the vested interests of
advanced EU countries, such as France, the UK, and Germany.
29
The Visegrád Group–a Rising Star Post-Brexit? Changing distribution of power in the
European Council, RT Göllner -Open Political Science, 2017.
30
"China, collaboration confirmation with Central Eastern Europe, 16 countries summit -
Greece also participated in ", Nihon Keizai Shimbun , 2019.4.13.
31
Jiji.com, “Greece joins “17 + 1”= China and Eastern Europe Summit, April 14, 2019.
https://www.jiji.com/jc/article?k=2019041400278&g=int
45
Central East Europe and southern European countries who are dissatisfied in the EU, and
approach China for economic support shows that pro -Chinese countries are spreading to Central
East Europe and Greece – both countries inside and outside of the EU. This will strengthen after
the COVID-19 pandemic crisis.
Russia is also injecting funds and aiding these countries with the aim of increasing its
influence and dividing the EU by supporting populist parties and former Socialist countries.
The United Kingdom’s long and protracted withdrawal from the EU, the division between
Western Europe and Eastern Europe within the EU, the income gap and disparity between North
and South, West and East Europe, and the disparity emanating from the presence a "two-speed,
two-dimensional Europe" are all strengthening disgruntlement toward accepting guidance from
Brussels. Under such a situation, Chinese influence will be strengthened across central eastern
and southern Europe.
A Professor’s words at St. Petersburg State University were symbolic. "China will continue to
expand her territory without a war.” "In St. Petersburg suburb, there were many dacha(villas)
areas inhabited by Russians once, but it is becoming a Chinese area now." "Recently I visited one
restaurant where I used to go, but it was already a “Chinese people Only” restaurant, and it is
impossible for Russians to go in. Terrible and awful penetration!" 3 2
China’s influence has panned out across the world, due to its domestic and overseas Chinese
economic power, and the number of pro-Chinese cities are increasing within the EU especially in
the internet cities network areas . According to NHK 's special TV series, even in small cities in
Germany where the Mayor thinks that they have fallen behind in high technology, they have begun
to launch joint endeavors with Huawei-China 3 3 .
How and which countries could the EU collaborate with after the UK’s withdrawal from the
EU?
Some local governments of the EU, or Central East and Southern East European countries
are first cautiously but gradually more aggressively seeking solutions with Chinese economy,
trade, investment and high technology.
32
A Professor’s words at St. Petersburg State University in September 2019.
In the
beautiful St. Petersburg city, there are plenty of Chinese tourists and Chinese language ,
we can hear in streets, more than Russian nations.
Many Russian citizens shared the
anxieties of the previous Professor ’s words.
33
NHK Special, "track!" Hua Wei Shock "~ 5G. The front line of US -China offense and
defense", 2020.1.19. Https://Www6.Nhk.Or.Jp/special/detail/index.Html?Aid =
20200119
46
7.
Conclusion: Post-Brexit and Post-Corona― Where is the World Heading?
Finally, this chapter wants to turn its attention to the transformation of the EU post -Brexit
and post-COVID 19.
In December 2020, the coronavirus having emerged in Wuhan developed and rapidly spread
to Europe, the United States, and the rest of the world within a few months.
By May 2020, 5 million people , in just five months, have been infected and more than 330
thousand people have died (as of May 20). The United States has 1.57 million people infected and
90,000 people dead. The following top places are occupied by Russia, Spain, Brazil, UK, Italy,
France, Germany, and Turkey. In the top 5 European countries, 1.1 million people have been
infected and 130,000 people dead. (As of May 20 ). The world changed drastically only in several
months.
On the other hand, the low number of infections in Central East Europe, especially the low
number of dead, deserves special mention. The death rate in the four advanced European countries
is around 13%, which is much higher than the general coronavirus mortality rate (2 -3%), whereas
most of East European former socialist countries have around 4 -6%, except Hungary. The
mortality rate is less than half that of developed countries in the EU, which is difficult to explain.
The biggest problem is the medical collapse caused by the exponential increase in the number of
infected people. Unfortunately, the most basic "joint support" system of the EU was not
established in the early stages of the emergency, and each state tried to monopolize masks and
medical devices, even Germany, in emergency. Such a lack of a joint support system caused the
epidemic medical outbreak in Italy and Spain.
It is the same in the USA. The American epidemic and mass deaths are a total failure of the
Trump regime, not China.
First, the United States, and then the United Kingdom, became the pinnacle of infection in the
world in a noticeably short period of time from mid -March to mid-May. Of the 4.8 million infected
persons and 316,000 dead in the world, 55% of the total infected persons are in the United S tates
and Europe’s 5 major powers; 70% of the total dead are occupied by the United States and 4
countries in Europe (As of May 18). The United States and the UK account for 37% of the world's
infected people and nearly 40% of the dead. Despite the economic and military might, or science
and technology power of the two nations they find themselves at the apex of the corona crisis in
terms of both infections and death rate s. This is a completely abnormal situation that would have
been unimaginable to contemplate just a short while ago.
Trump's “America First!” and Boris Johnson's “Britain First!” failed to defeat corona virus.
47
In South Korea, Japan, Hong Kong and Taiwan, there is a vast Chinese population, but they
succeeded in stopping the spread of the infection and curtailing fatalities. It is a situation that
needs specific attention and analysis.
The corona crisis has done a great deal of damage to the hegemony and prestige of the United
States and Britain. Trump blames his own blunder s to the virus on China and to the WHO, which
he accuses of having taken China’s side. In response he wishes to sanction and raise tariffs on
trade with China and is also considering prohibiting certain parts sales to Huawei. But all these
actions further undermine American leadership and trust.
The United Kingdom also, where Prime Minister Boris Johnson was infected, has found itself
in the grip of the deadly virus. It now ranks as the worst case in Europe in terms of i nfections and
deaths. And until June was the most in the world after the USA.
Traditionally, the UK was respected as having one of the highest medical standards and
effective welfare states in the world. But now that reputation has been damaged. Furthermore, in
developed EU countries,
the evidence is pointing to the fact that fatality rates
are
disproportionately concentrated in “BAME” (Black, Asian, Minority Ethnicity) minorities. In the
United States, it was said, that 70% of the dead are conc entrated in Blacks and Hispanics. These
facts also magnified the damage done to the prestige of the primary carriers of the western liberal
model: the US and the UK.
<How to Transform the World After Brexit and After Corona?>
Seeing the turmoil of Brexit, many small EU countries have learned the disadvantages of
leaving the EU's marketplace of 450 million consumers and instead have turned to "opposing the
EU from within the EU".
As part of that strategy they have sought to develop their own values/vision that is different
from that of the EU's standard liberal democracy.
At the forefront of this endeavor are the four Visegrád countries and from outside the EU
China and Russia which see certain opportunities from strengthening relationships with such
countries. Seeing the turmoil of Brexit, the EU small countries who go against the EU, tried to
make a realistic choice: stay in the EU rather than withdrawal but simultaneously take a different
path from the one promoted by the European Commission. That was Orbán's “Illiberal Democracy”,
Kaczyński and PiS Catholic Nationalism, and the basis for Visegrád collaboration.
The EU traditionally was driven by the narrative of Franco-German reconciliation and
subsequent dominance, but this no longer fully reflects the various values of the EU ’s small
countries, especially those from Eastern and Southern Europe.
48
The international and domestic enviro nment of the EU has changed significantly due to the
competition of liberal capitalism, the adverse effects of disparities, and the confusion of Brexit.
The US-UK free competition, widening disparities, elimination of immigrants, majority
democracy and Britain first, American first nationalism, above all, undermine d the trust and
leadership of the US and the UK.
Thus, European liberal democracy needs to be reconsidered from the small countries’
perspective. The EU’s value and facts are no longer a useful and effective "joint collaboration"
policy including eastern and southern Europe. And through such gaps and disparity , China and
Russia are effectively making in-roads with offers of economic and financial assistance to support
public policy and medical and social equipment to help with the pandemic.
The danger that the universal values of liberalism are undermined by the UK's withdrawal from
the EU and by the blame placed on China and the WHO by the Trump administration is greater
than expected. Both actions are extremely nationalistic and reflect an attitude that has no remorse
at collapsing multilateral endeavors.
The corona pandemic crisis exposed these egoistic behaviors of the top two Anglo-Saxon states
in terms of medical care and infectious disease control.
Further analysis and examination will be needed on the 16+1, or 17+1 cooperation policy among
China and eastern and southern Europe: economic, trade, investment, and infrastructure
development, furthermore medical care, and social security policy. Those will be expanding in
2020 and after, in the post-Brexit and post-corona era.
What kind of answer can the EU give, to the issues arising in this era of destabilization not
least when it comes to the challenge of “how can small countries, and weak countries and poor
countries best survive?” in the post-Brexit, post-corona era?
The United Nations Sustainable Development Goals (S DGs) policy, with the slogan, “nobody
will be left behind” is one of the most important policies, even it is difficult to bring to fruition.
Could "illiberal Democracy" promoting a “workfare” type community spread? Is it possible for
small countries to emulate successful models implemented elsewhere?
The deadlock of Brexit in the UK, which was a model of representative democracy until the
two world wars in the 20th century, brought at the European Parliament, it caused the last
unbearable terrible speech by Farage, Party leader of Brexit Party, based on the unwillingness of
the European Union in January 2020 3 4 .
34
“We will be never coming back to the EU ”. Nigel Farage’s final speech to European
Parliament cut short after he waves flag, 2020/01/29.
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=RBMvZRf9Scs
49
Trump and Pompeo in the US also blamed nationalistically China and WHO; this is another
event which led to the demise and of the international organization constructed after two world
wars by Wilson and Roosevelt, presidents of the United States. But in the early 21 s t century,
Trump’s negligence of corona despite causing tragedy in the United States and causing a larg e
number of black and Hispanic minority casualties, has not even tried to save their own people,
and blames China and is trying to apply tariffs.
Under these situations, "illiberal Democracy" might have ample room to spread. Orbán ’s
stance of looking beyond what he sees as "Western dogma", instead "searching for another way
for nations to become globally competitive and successful" is extremely pragmatic and rational.
Although the "illiberal democracy" certainly has a plethora of problems producing disparity,
competition and unemployment, but the dictatorship does not solve the problems of disparity and
inequality.
It is a heavy and important agenda for small countries in Asia and Africa, which has always
been put as latecomers to the development of the world's global economy, therefore, they might
get their own sovereignty and people's voice by using their own democracy, in another style of
Western countries.
In fact, Asian and African countries have, for that reason, passed the era when they were
colonized for centuries and then fixed their economic colonization. They were trying to achieve
independent development.
But how?
Until 2016, the US and the UK was the mo del of modernization, liberal democracy and
Parliamentarism.
But ironically, Britain's withdrawal from the EU and the Trump government
and the consequences that followed, made people feel disillusioned by losing their trust in both
countries, the UK and the US.
How though might the small countries in Central East and South Europe, members and nonmembers of the EU solve the problems that they face? One model is the “illiberal democracy” in
transition, The other is Sub-regional co-operation as the Visegrád countries, and cooperation with
China, Russia, India and/or Turkey.
But it is not the last solution.
It is necessary for us to pay attention to and analyze how the EU, Britain, and the United
States could overcome conflicts, disparities, the Corona Virus plague, and how they could
reconstruct the economic, political, and social structures, confronting populism and nationalism.
We need to analyze Asian situation comparatively , where economic development is steadily
progressing and so far, we could manage corona virus plague better than Europe and the US .
It is necessary to investigate objectively the future growth of the Regional Framework not
only in Europe but also in Asia, ASEAN-type governance or RCEP and TPP regional development.
Europe also could learn from Asia.
50
Bibliography
Brexit BBC, CNN, Newspapers, News Week
<Brexit and the EU Policies>
Bachmann, Veit, a, James D, Brexit geopolitics, Sidaway, Geoforum, 2016.
A Buzogány, Illiberal democracy in Hungary: authoritarian diffusion or domestic causation?
Democratization, Taylor & Francis, 2017.
Colantone, I, P. Stanig, Global competition and Brexit, -American political science review, 2018.
Göllner, R.T. The Visegrád Group–a Rising Star Post-Brexit? Changing distribution of power in
the European Council, -Open Political Science, 2017.
Inglehart, R.F., P Norris, Trump, Brexit, and the rise of populism: Economic have -nots and
cultural backlash, – 2016.
A Kallius, D Monterescu, PK R ajaram “Immobilizing mobility: Border ethnography, illiberal
democracy, and the politics of the “refugee crisis” in Hungary”, - American Ethnologist, 2016.
Krotz, U, J Schild, Back to the future? Franco -German bilateralism in Europe's post-Brexit union,
-Journal of European Public Policy, 2018.
Matthijs, Matthias, Europe after Brexit: A less perfect union, -Foreign Affairs, 2017.
<Brexit, the EU, Central East Europe, and China>
Endo, Ken, "European Combined Crisis," Chuokoronsha, 2016.
Haba, Kumiko, Nationality Question in Integrating Europe, (Central European Initiative, the
Visegrád countries), Kodansha Gendaishinsho, 1994. 2004. 7 t h Printing.
Haba, Kumiko, Enlarging Europe, Searching Central Europe, Iwanami Publisher, 1998, 2002.
Haba, Kumiko, Challenge of Enlarging Europe: Does it become Global Power besides the USA?
Chuokoron-Shinsha, 2004, 2014.
Haba, Kumiko, “Japan-China Reconciliation is key to Unified Asia”, International Herald Tribune
(Herald Asahi), 16 January 2010.
Haba, Kumiko, Satoshi Mizobata, Russia and Enlarged EU, Minerva Publishing, 2011.
Haba, Kumiko, Asian Regional Integration in t he Global Age, Iwanami Shoten, 2012.2.
Haba, Kumiko, Division and Integration of Europe; Nationalism and Border of Enlarged EU,
whether inclusion or exclusion?
Chuokoron-Shinsha, 2016.
Haba, Kumiko, 63 chapters to know the European Union, Akashi Shoten, 2 017, 5 t h Printing.
Haba, Kumiko, Yuichi Hosoya, Hirotaka Watanabe, “Brexit, EU withdrawal in the world",
Mainichi Shimbun, 2016.6.27.
51
Haba, Kumiko, "opened the Pandora's box: United Kingdom must rely on China", Sankei Shimbun,
2016.6.28.
Haba, Kumiko, “China’s European strategy - relationship with the EU to intensify the UK
withdrawal - AIIB and Belt and Road Initiative," Economist, 2016.9.13.
Haba, Kumiko, “Can Macron Bring a New Wave?" Economist, 2017.3.
Haba, Kumiko, 60 chapters to know Hungary, Akashi Shoten, 2018.
Haba, Kumiko, 21st century, the international society of the Great Transformation - what is
happening now? Horitsu bunkasha, 2019.
Haba, Kumiko et al.(eds), European Cultural Encyclopedia , Maruzen Publishing, 2020.
Halecki, Oskar, Borderlands of Western civilization: A History of East Central Europe,
Simon Publications, 1980.
Itagaki, Takumi, Black Europe-Christian Conservative Westernism in Germany , Yoshida Shoten,
2016.
Kaczmarski, M., J Jakóbowski China on Central-Eastern Europe: '16 + 1'as seen from Beijing, OSW Commentary, 2015.
Levitsky, Stephen, The Death of Democracy: The Road to Dictatorship Induced by Polarizing
Politics, Shinchosha, 2018.
Mizushima, Jiro, What is Populism?
Chuokoronsha, 2016.
Morita, Tsuneo, Political Economy of Post-Socialism: 20 Years of System Transformation in
Hungary: Change and Continuation of the Old System , Nihon Hyoronsha, 2010.
Murray, Douglas, Western Self-Death: How to Die European Liberalism? Toyo Keizai, 2018.
Shoji, Katsuhiro, Brexit Paradox; Whereabouts of European integration, Iwanami Shoten,
2019.
Shoji, Katsuhiro, European populism: Can the EU division be avoided? Chikuma Shinsho, 2018.
Summers, Tim, Brexit: Implications for EU –China Relations, – Chatham House: Royal Institute
of International Affairs, May 2017.
Wong, R.B., China transformed: historical change and the limits of European experience, – 1997.
Yu, J., After Brexit 1999: Risks and Opportunities to EU –China Relations, -Global Policy, 2017.
52
Ⅰ-3
Asian Regional Cooperation: RCEP and CPTPP Strategy after Brexit
Sang-Chul Park
[Abstract]
Global trade has played one of the most important roles in contributing to rapid economic
growth in the world in the last 5 decades. However, trade growth has slowed down in the global
economy since the global financial crisis. In 2016, growth in the volum e of world trade was
expected to remain at 2.8%, unchanged from the 2.8% increase registered in 2015. Imports of
advanced nations were moderate in 2017, while demand for imported goods in developing Asian
economies would rise. Despite the rising import in Asia, the ratio of trade growth in the world has
been lower than the ratio of global economic growth since 2013. Therefore, many countries have
tried to create bilateral, multilateral, regional and mega FTAs in order to boost their trade volumes
and economic growths. The EU’s single market provides several implications to East Asian
countries trying to build their own FTA and participate in different mega FTAs such as the RCEP
and the CPTPP. As a result, their economic interests are rather divided deeply an d related to
political and security issues in the East Asian context. Particularly, the new protectionism led by
the USA and the UK has emerged and negated the TPP Agreement that turned into CPTPP without
the US participation. This paper deals with Mega FTAs such as the RCEP and the CPTPP as well
as East Asian economic cooperation. It also argues what East Asian countries’ economic interests
are by participating in the RCEP and the CPTPP as well as how to overcome the newly emerging
protectionism caused by the new US trade policy and Brexit. Finally, it also analyzes the roles
and strategies of China, Japan, and Korea to protect their regional and global economic interests
overcoming protectionist movement in the global trade environment individually and col lectively.
Key words
Mega FTA, protectionism, economic growth, FTA strategy, Brexit
53
1. Introduction
Most economists agree that global trade has contributed to a rapid economic growth in the
world since the Second World War. However, the growth of the trade volume started to slow down
in the global economy particularly after the global financial crisis in 2008. As a result, the growth
in the world trade volume in goods and services reached only 1.9% although its forecast was 2.8%
based on the statis tics in World Trade Organization (WTO) in 2016. The WTO forecasted that the
world trade volume could grow 2.4% in 2017, while International Monetary Fund (IMF) projected
a trade volume growth of 3.8% in the same year. Regarding the IMF statistics, the glob al GDP
growth was projected to rise 3.4% in 2017 and it rose 3.1% in 2016. It caused deep uncertainty
about near term economic and policy developments that increased the forecast risk in 2017. The
reason for it was slowdown in emerging markets. Among the e merging markets, however, East
Asian countries were expected to return to modest growth in 2017. (WTO, 2017; IMF, 2017)
The world trade volume in merchandise has tended to grow an average 1.5 times higher than
the world GDP growth from 1981 to 2016. Dur ing the 1990s, it grew more than twice as high.
However, the ratio of trade growth to GDP growth has become more or less equal since the global
financial crisis except the year 2010 and 2011. After the global financial crisis, the G20 was
formed to overcome the global financial crisis and has fought against trade protectionism.
However, in 2016, the trade growth rate marked lower than the world GDP growth rate, the fourth
time since 1981. Therefore, many countries have tried to create bilateral, multilatera l, regional
and mega FTAs since the 2000s in order to boost their trade volumes and economic growths. This
new approach worked properly until the global financial crisis, but started to show its limitation
after the crisis. (WTO, 2017)
In 2016, there were 228 free trade agreements (FTAs), and among them 147 FTAs were signed
and in effect in the Asia and Pacific region. 68 FTAs are still on negotiation, 5 FTAs are signed
but not yet in effect, and 3 FTAs are discontinued. All FTAs are either bilateral or multilateral.
Singapore is the leading country with 33 FTAs, and India follows with 28 FTAs. Three major East
Asian countries, South Korea with 25 FTAs, Japan with 24 FTAs and China with 23 FTAs play
also significant roles in terms of FTA due to their nati onal economic sizes in the region.
(https://aric.adb.org/fta -all, accessed on 15 April 2019)
In addition to bilateral and multilateral FTAs, the Asia Pacific region has become the common
ground for mega FTAs that are on the process to build the Regional Comprehensive Economic
Partnership (RCEP) led by ASEAN officially, but practically by China and Comprehensive and
Progressive Trans-Pacific Partnership (CPTPP) led by Japan. China has negotiated RCEP with ten
ASEAN member nations and six nations with which ASEAN have existing trade agreements. The
54
ambition of the RCEP is to promote regional economic integration in East Asia. Among 16 nations
in the RCEP, seven nations participate in the CPTPP as well. The CPTPP aims to rebalance the
Japanese political and economic interests against Chinese emerging in the region as a part of
global strategies.
The RCEP was expected to be completed by the end of 2016, but is still in process. It targets
to be completed in 2019, an d China pushes hard to complete it because it has already announced
to protect the free trade mechanism based on globalization in the World Economic Forum in 2017,
while the TPP faced turbulence after the Trump government announced its pull -out from the TPP
in Jan. 2017, although 12 member nations had agreed with the TPP in Oct. 2016. As a result, the
future of mega FTAs in the Asia Pacific region has become unforeseeable particularly in the TPP
that turned to the CPTPP and entered into force on 30 Dec. 201 8. (Graceffo, 2017; Asian Trade
Center, 2018)
This paper focuses on mega FTAs such as the RCEP and the CPTPP and how these will develop
in the near future. Additionally, it deals with possible impacts on the US withdrawal from the TPP
and the post TPP visions as well as after Brexit. Furthermore, it also analyzes the implications for
East Asian economic cooperation. In order to meet the research targets, various methods are used
such as a method of critical analysis of literature, an inference method, an d a method of statistical
analysis.
2. Mega FTAs in the Asia Pacific Region
2.1. Regional Comprehensive Economic Partnership (RCEP)
After several years of discussions on the desirability and feasibility of Asian economic
cooperation, East Asian countries led b y the 10 ASEAN member nations decided to establish a
regional economic framework comprehensively that is the Regional Comprehensive Economic
Partnership (RCEP). The nations participating in the RCEP negotiations are the ten ASEAN
member nations and six oth er nations in the region such as Korea, China, Japan, India, Australia,
and New Zealand. They began the negotiations in 2013.
East Asia has not established a region -wide FTA due to different opinions among East Asian
economies about creating the region wide FTA. It was a long process to agree to RCEP. Regional
economic cooperation in East Asia began to intensify in order to deal with the Asian Financial
Crisis in 1997 as the first ASEAN+3 (Korea, China, and Japan) Summit Meeting was held in 1998.
In the summit, Korea proposed to set up the East Asia Vision Group (EAVG) for overcoming
economic and financial problems and difficulties collectively in the region. The expert group
55
developed further the idea of East Asia Free Trade Area (EAFTA) in 2002 and prop osed ASEAN+3
economic ministers that the EAFTA needs to negotiate among ASEAN countries first and
membership can be open to other East Asian economies. Unfortunately, however, this proposal
was not accepted due to the Japanese rejection in 2006. The econom ic rationale of EAFTA was
based on highly developed production networks and supply chains among ASEAN+3 nations and
harmonizing rules of origins among these countries that could create tangible economic benefits.
(Urata, 2013; EAFTA, 2009; ASEAN Secretaria t, 2009; Kawai & Wignaraja, 2011)
Parallel to the ASEAN+3 approach, Japan proposed the Comprehensive Economic Partnership
in East Asia (CEPEA) at the ASEAN+6 economic ministers’ meeting in 2006, which is an
agreement of the region wide FTA covering ASEA N+6 member nations. These 16 nations are also
the member nations of the East Asia Summit that began in 2005. Japan’s economic rationale to set
up the CEPEA was that the economic advantage of the CEPEA could be larger than that of the
EAFTA because the inco rporation of resource rich Australia and rapidly growing India could
generate economic growth for East Asia as a whole. The reason why Japan suggested the CEPEA
is that Japan tried to play a role in the leadership for setting up a regional institution beca use
China took the initiative in the EAFTA discussions. By competing with each other between China
and Japan to take a leadership in the establishment of the region wide FTA under the EAFTA and
the CEPEA, China speeded up the process of regional economic i ntegration in East Asia when
Japan decided on participating in the Trans -Pacific Partnership (TPP) in 2011. (Kawai &
Wignaraja, 2008; Xiao, 2015)
The Chinese motivation to establish the region wide FTA was stronger than any other nations
in the region because it observed increasing US influences to form a regional economic framework
in the Asia Pacific region under TPP. Under these circumstances, ASEAN proposed the RCEP
involving ASEAN and its FTA partners in 2011 because it did not want to lose ASEAN centr ality
in East Asian regional integration. ASEAN understood that it could lose its leadership role in the
process of economic integration in East Asia if big economic nations in the region and half of
ASEAN member nations participate in the negotiation of t he TPP. Additionally, ASEAN tried to
maintain its centrality in regional economic cooperation. After signing ASEAN+1 FTA, ASEAN
and its regional partners were concerned about the Asian noodle bowl effects that became new
obstacles to establish a new region al production networks based on free markets in East Asia.
Therefore, the RCEP has emerged as a tool to integrate ASEAN+1 FTA in order to support their
common aspirations of the region. (Yi, 2014)
Furthermore, ASEAN announced the guiding principles for the negotiations of the RCEP that
include WTO consistency, transparency, and open accession to ASEAN’s FTA partners and others.
Based on such principles, four ASEAN member nations - Brunei, Malaysia, Singapore, and
56
Vietnam - participated in the CPTPP as well. As a result, ASEAN+6 leaders agreed to launch the
negotiation of the RCEP in 2012 and to start in 2013. RCEP was scheduled to conclude by the end
of 2015, but did not meet the target till 2018. It targets to reassure the world of free trade
commitment. (ASEAN Secretariat, 2012; Urata, 2013; Hearn and Myers, 2015; Johnston, 2017)
RCEP includes a population of more than 3.5 billion people, with an output of about 23.8
trillion US dollars in 2016. Its GDP accounted for 31.4%, and the total trade volume was 9. 58
trillion US dollars in the same year, which is 45 percent of the world trade volume. It is no doubt
that the RCEP could create the world largest trading bloc, if it is successfully concluded. It could
provide major implication for the global economy suc h as spread of global production networks,
reducing inefficiencies of multiple Asian FTAs etc. (Suh, 2014; World Bank, 2016; World
Integrated Trade Solution, 2017; WTO, 2018) (See fig. 1)
RCEP needs a strong leadership that is absolutely necessary to concl ude the negotiations
successfully. The leadership must be based on ASEAN centrality because its role is regarded as
impartial. In addition, China and Japan might not trust each other due to their rivalry in the region.
In fact, RCEP is a tool for rising Ch ina in the region. ASEAN, Korea, and Japan are concerned
that China will eventually dominate East Asia through a China -led East Asia Economic Community.
Therefore, some countries such as Japan, Myanmar, the Philippines, and Vietnam have actively
tried to balance between China and the US in order to hedge China’s possible threat. Therefore,
the RCEP based on ASEAN centrality can play a role in checking the rise of China and balancing
the power in the region. (Suh, 2014)
Figure 1: RCEP’s Share of World in Population, GDP, and Trade (%)
Source: WTO, World Trade Statistics, 2015, 2016, World Bank, 2016, WTO, 2018
57
Since the Trump Administration in the USA started in Jan. 2017, the prospects of the RCEP
have changed dramatically because the US government of ficially announced its withdrawal from
the TPP. It will open the door for China to play a more pronounced leadership role in the region.
In the Asia Pacific region, China already is a major trade and investment partner for TPP member
nations. Canada and Mexico seek to open trade talks with China, while Chile, Australia, New
Zealand and Malaysia try to expand their existing trade and investment deals. Furthermore, seven
of 12 TPP member nations participate in the RCEP negotiations. Therefore, China could gai n new
opportunities to expand trade and investment in other the TPP markets after the US withdrawal.
(Shott, 2017)
By contrary the post Brexit will not affect the Chinese leadership in RCEP directly and
strategically because the two regional economic in tegrations such as the EU and the RCEP do not
compete with each other in the same area. However, the RCEP under the Chinese leadership could
expand further in the global trade and gain more possibility to set the trade rules, while the EU
after Brexit could be weaker economically than the before Brexit in the world economy and
politics. (Gonzales, 2018)
2.2. Comprehensive and Progressive Trans -Pacific Partnership Agreement (CPTPP)
The USA took over leadership after participating in the TPP negotiations in 201 0 and aimed
to create US-led trade rules in the Asia Pacific region. The US government realized that global
trade and investment are critical to US economic performance and national security. In fact, more
than 95 percent of the world’s population and 80 p ercent of its purchasing power exist outside the
USA. Moreover, the Asia Pacific region is regarded as the most rapid economic growth hub in the
world that will create most consumption growth in the next 20 years. Therefore, it is critical for
the US government to complete region wide trade agreements such as the TPP with allies and
other nations in the region in order to strengthen its influential powers in regional economies and
politics. (Schell and Shirk, 2017)
From economic and political points of view, the TPP is a mechanism for isolating China in
East Asia. The TPP with the high standard of agreement is a high barrier for China to overcome
in the near future. Although the TPP does not intend to exclude China in East Asia, it is not
possible for China to accept the content of the TPP. It is inevitable for China to change its policies
to sustain economic growth and ensure social stability. However, Chinese leadership understands
that a rapid market reform is not a feasible pathway so that China cannot pa rticipate in the TPP
negotiations at least in the near future. (Suh, 2014)
The TPP’s position in the world economy and trade is very significant as well. Its output of
58
12 member nations accounted for 28.85 trillion US dollars in 2016 although its popula tion share
is slightly higher than 11 percent in the same year. The TPP’s GDP share in the world economy
increased from 38 percent in 2014 to 38.2 percent in 2015 and declined slightly to 38 percent in
2016. Total world trade volume in 2014 accounted for 2 3.4 trillion US dollars and declined to
20.9 trillion US dollars in 2015 that accounts for 11.2 percent decline. However, total trade share
of the TPP in the world trade increased from 32% in 2014 to 41.5 percent in 2015. It shows clearly
TPP’s weight in the world economy and trade. As a result, the TPP became the second largest
mega FTA in terms of its GDP and trade volume. (World Bank, 2016; World Integrated Trade
Solution, 2017) (See fig. 4)
Figure 4: TPP’s Share of World in Population, GDP, and Trade ( %)
Source: WTO, World Trade Statistics, 2015, 2016, World Bank, 2016
The TPP was launched in 2010, and its negotiations were completed in Oct. 2015 that was
signed in Feb. 2016. It had grown 12 member nations drawn from the APEC member nations and
they have to ratify in their legislatures. Among the member nations, only Japan ratified in the Diet
on 9. Dec. 2016 and try to persuade other member nations despite the Trump administration’s
withdrawal from TPP. The US government formally withdrew the TPP i n Jan. 2017. Given its
current legal status, the TPP cannot enter into force without US ratification. The US withdrawal
of the TPP may hinder its further process ultimately because of the article 30.5 in the TPP
agreement. According to the article 30.5, at least six members accounting for 85 percent of the
59
GDP of the total GDP in TPP member nations must ratify before the agreement enters into force.
The share of US GDP accounted for 64.8 percent of the TPP total GDP in 2015 that is absolutely
overwhelmed compared with any other member nations. Therefore, the US withdrawal means
numerically impossible for other member nations to meet the requirement. (Nikkei Asian Review,
2016; Wilson, 2017; https://ustr.gov/sites/default/files/TPP -Final-Text-Final-Provisions.pdf ,
accessed on 24 April 2017) (See fig. 5)
Impacts on the US withdrawal from the TPP have resu lted in dramatic changes of trade policies
in many nations participating in the TPP. Particularly, Asian countries started to reappraise their
regional trade strategies. Many Asian governments regard the TPP without US participation as
impossible. As a result, their trade policies gave shifted to ongoing the RCEP negotiations. During
the Lima APEC Summit in Nov. 2016, trade policies and RCEP’s potential roles in the region were
discussed between member nations. In the summit, China as a driving force behind the RCEP
pledged its commitment to economic openness and pushed to complete the RCEP negotiations.
Even Japan addressed its priority of trade policy from the TPP to RCEP. (Reuters, 2016; Wilson,
2017)
Figure 5: GDP Share of TPP Member Nations (As of 2015 , %)
Source: World Bank, 2016
60
The USA will set up the three principles in its trade policy under the Trump administration.
Firstly, it will focus on bilateral FTA negotiations rather than multilateral FTA negotiations.
Replacing the TPP by pursuing bilateral trade deals with the TPP member nations is the signal to
change its trade policy. Secondly, it will consider renegotiating and reforming existing agreements
such as NAFTA and the Korea -US FTA. Last, but not least USA will point out all u nfair trade
practices that put the US national economy at disadvantages creating trade deficit job loss,
hollowing out manufacturing sectors etc. (Wah, 2017)
Due to the firm US standpoint focusing bilateral FTA instead of multilateral FTA and the US
withdrawal of the TPP, Japan, under Abe’s leadership, tried to move the TPP forward without the
US participation. Despite the strong resistance of Malaysia and Vietnam, Japan along with other
member nations such as Australia, and New Zealand etc. was able to cre ate the Comprehensive
and Progressive Trans-Pacific Partnership (CPTPP) also known as TPP11 in May 2017. The CPTPP
incorporates most of the TPP provisions by reference, but suspended 22 provisions that the US
preferred, but other member nations opposed. ( https://www.mfat.govt.nz/, 2019)
11 member nations reached the agreement in Jan. 2018 to conclude the CPTPP, and it was
formally signed on 8 March 2018 in Santiago, Chile. The agreement specifies that its provis ions
enter into force 60 days after ratification by at least 50 percent of the signatories, or six of its
eleven member nations. The sixth nation to ratify the TPP was Australia on 31 Oct. 2018. As a
result, the TPP came into force for the initial six rati fying countries on 30 Dec. 2018. The CPTPP
represented 13.4 percent of global GDP in 2018 and accounted for approximately USD 13.5 trillion,
making the TPP the third largest FTA in the world by GDP after USMC and the EU. (Torrey, 2018)
3. Analysis on RCEP and TPP (CPTPP)
Two mega FTAs such as RCEP and TPP have been competing with each other in order to set
the trade rules in the Asia Pacific region until the USA took the leadership to complete the TPP
negotiations in 2015. 12 member nations of the TPP finall y concluded the mega FTA in Oct. 2015,
and Japan already ratified it in the Diet in Dec. 2016 although the Japanese government knew that
then President elected Trump announced the withdrawal of the TPP when his government comes
to power in Jan. 2017. It me ans that all member nations focus on their national interests as their
first priority to access to the mega FTAs. Therefore, the USA pulled out its membership in the
TPP, while Japan has tried hard to rescue the TPP without the US. As a result, the TPP tur ned to
the CPTPP without the USA participation in 2018.
61
In the global economy, the year 2015 is a turning point to mark the negative growths in terms
of the world GDP and trade compared to the previous year since the global financial crisis in 2008.
Therefore, its economic impact on the Asia and Pacific region is also significant. Despite being
under such a negative economic environment, the RCEP was able to increase its global GDP share
from 29 percent in 2014 to 30.6 percent in 2015, while the TPP coul d only expand its share from
38 percent to 38.2 percent marginally in the same period. The reason for this is that the RCEP
member nations particularly in developing economies such as China, India, Indonesia, Malaysia,
the Philippine, Thailand, Vietnam wer e vigorous and created high economic growths in 2015,
while the TPP member nations could not generate high economic growths except Malaysia, Mexico,
and Vietnam in the same year.
Additionally, RCEP increased its global share of trade from 35 percent in 2014 to 44.5 percent
in 2015, while TPP expanded its share from 32 percent to 41.5 percent in the same period. Both
were able to increase their trade share nearly 10 percent compared to the previous year although
the world trade declined 12.1 percent from 2014 to 2015. In RCEP, Chinese trade volume declined
from 4.3 trillion US dollars in 2014 to 3.7 trillion US dollars in 2015, a 14.1 percent decline. In
the TPP, US trade volume decreased from 4.05 trillion US dollars to 3.4 trillion US dollars in the
same period, a 15.8 percent decline. Although two leading nations’ trade volumes declined, other
developing economies’ trade volume in the Philippines and Vietnam increased. At the same time,
trade volumes in other regions declined more than the Asia Pacific r egion. As a result, their trade
share increased to 44.5 percent and 41.5 percent in 2015, respectively. (See table 1, 2)
In RCEP, three major economies - China, Japan and Korea - show different patterns of trade
trend from 2013 to 2015. Firstly, Chinese import volumes increased from 1.79 trillion US dollars
in 2013 to 1.81 trillion US dollars in 2014 and declined heavily to 1.32 trillion US dollars in 2015.
However, its export volume increased continuously from 2.15 trillion US dollars in 2013 to 2.24
trillion US dollars in 2014 and 2.37 trillion US dollars in 2015. This trend is closely related with
the new Chinese industry policy focused on a domestic consumption driven growth strategy in the
12 t h Five Year Plan (2011-2015). By implementing the strategy, China created a historical high
trade surplus with 359 billion US dollars in 2013, 435 billion US dollars in 2014, and 1.05 trillion
US dollars in 2015.
Secondly, Japanese import volumes increased from 785 billion US dollars in 2013 to 799
billion US dollars in 2014, but declined to 626 billion US dollars in 2015. Its export volumes
increased slightly from 695 billion US dollars in 2013 to 699 billion US dollars in 2014, but
declined heavily to 625 billion US dollars in 2015. During this period, Japan made trade deficits
continuously. Lastly, the Korean trade pattern looks different compared with other two major
economies. Korean import volumes decreased continuously from 535 billion US dollars in 2013
62
to 524 billion US dollars in 2014 and 437 billion U S dollars in 2015. Its export volumes declined
also from 618 billion US dollars in 2013 to 613 billion US dollars and 527 billion US dollars in
2015. However, Korea made a large amount of trade surplus during the period as the Chinese case.
(See table 1)
Table 1: Trend of Trade in RCEP Member Nations (100 Mil. US Dollars)
Nations
2013
2014
2015
Import
Export
Import
Export
Import
Export
China
17,896
21,486
18,087
22,438
13,238
23,722
Brunei
49
118
37
111
32
64
Cambodia
95
65
107
75
107
85
India
4,817
3,192
4,724
3,284
3,907
2,644
Indonesia
1,763
1,821
1,683
1,753
1,782
1,760
Japan
7,846
6,949
7,990
6,992
6,256
6,249
Korea
5,354
6,182
5,241
6,130
4,365
5,269
Laos
N.A.
N.A.
N. A.
N. A.
N. A.
N. A.
Malaysia
1,717
2,023
1,729
2,075
1,762
2,002
Myanmar*
39
73
39
73
42
76
New
387
397
410
420
365
344
Philippine
622
445
672
498
702
586
Singapore
3,617
4,374
3,582
4,378
2,967
3,466
Thailand
2,274
2,275
2,094
2,267
2,020
2,109
Vietnam
1,233
1,320
1,301
1,502
1,658
1,620
Australia
2,497
2,542
2,403
2,407
2,001
1,878
Zealand
Source: World Integrated Trade Solution, 2017, Note: * statistics in 2010
In the TPP, two major economies such as USA and Japan have clearly the same pattern of trade
trend. US import volumes increased from 2.29 trillion US dollars in 2013 to 2.39 trillion US
dollars in 2014, but declined to 2.31 trillion US dollars in 2015. Its export volumes increased
from 1.59 trillion US dollars to 1.63 trillion US dollars, but dropped to 1.50 trillion US dollars
heavily. As a result, USA made heavy trade deficits in a row that is the same in the Japanese trade
63
pattern. (See table 2)
It indicates that the RCEP may have a higher potential than the TPP to grow further in the
future because its most of member nations particularly China, India, and ASEAN countries can
create high economic growth based on their trade volume increase. Alt hough four ASEAN member
nations such as Brunei, Malaysia, Singapore, Vietnam, their roles to contribute to a massive
expansion for trade growth in the TPP must be limited. Therefore, roles of these four ASEAN
member nations can be intensified in the RCEP a long with other rapidly developing nations such
as China, India, Indonesia, the Philippine, Thailand etc. rather than in the TPP as a whole. Such
a trend will be even worse in the CPTPP without the US participation because the total economic
size of the CPTPP is shrunken to only one third of the TPP. It is the reason why Malaysia and
Vietnam were heavily against participating in CPTPP despite Abe’s attempts at persuasion in 2017.
Finally, both member nations agreed to participate in the CPTPP in March 2018. (Hoang & Hoan,
2019)
Table 2: Trend of Trade in TPP Member Nations (100 Mil. US Dollars)
Nations
2013
2014
2015
Import
Export
Import
Export
Import
Export
USA
22,943
15,920
23,855
16,333
23,068
15,039
Australia
2,497
2,542
2,403
2,407
2,001
1,878
Brunei
49
118
37
111
32
64
Canada
4,727
4,664
4,739
4,783
4,192
4,088
Chile
747
764
686
750
630
634
Japan
7,846
6,949
7,990
6,992
6,256
6,249
Malaysia
1,717
2,023
1,729
2,075
1,762
2,002
Mexico
3,816
3,807
4,004
3,977
3,952
3,806
New
387
397
410
420
365
344
Peru
417
429
407
395
301
332
Singapore
3,617
4,374
3,582
4,378
2,967
3,466
Vietnam
1,233
1,320
1,381
1,502
1,658
1,620
Zealand
Source: World Integrated Trade Solution, 2017, Note: * statistics in 2010
4. Implications for East Asian Economic Cooperation with or without Brexit
64
Economic benefits for RCEP and the TPP to the Asia Pacific region have already been studied
by a computable general equilibrium (CGE) model. Given the analysis of the CGE model, the
RCEP generates a total increase of 644 billion US dollars that accounts for 2 percent of Asian
GDP by 2025 based on its GDP in 2007, while the TPP creates 223 billion US dollars in the same
year. (Petri and Plummer, 2014)
Additionally, the two mega FTAs could reduce the no odle bowl effect of overlapping bilateral
FTAs in the region that hinder member nations from increasing trade volumes and strengthening
their trade interdependence and regional economic integration. In fact, the noodle bowl effect has
caused high costs to utilize preferential concessions for the private sector because the private
sector must pay attention to different rules and regulations. Accordingly, RCEP and the TPP can
solve the negative effects and achieve a complete set of free trade principles. (Par k, 2016)
Trade dependency in the Asia Pacific region has increased substantially since the year 2000.
Most of the East Asian economies have become more dependent on the RCEP than the TPP. Even
Australia and New Zealand show their higher trade dependenc y on RCEP than the TPP. However,
Chinese trade dependency on the RCEP was 14.96 percent in 2002 and decreased to 14.39 percent
in 2012, while its trade dependency on the TPP accounted for 17.77 percent and declined to 15.78
percent in the same period. Chin ese trade dependency on ASEAN+3 also declined from 14 percent
to 11.98 percent in the same period. It does not mean that Chinese economy was more linked to
the TPP than the RCEP, but it was rather more globalized during the same period.
However, the US trade dependency on ASEAN+3, the RCEP, and the TPP increased in the same
period. Its trade dependency on ASEAN+3 increased from 5 percent to 6.52 percent, while its
trade dependency on the RCEP accounted for 4.96 percent in 2002 that increased to 7.17 per cent
in 2012. Its trade dependency on the TPP also increased from 7.76 percent to 8.87 percent in the
same period. It means that the Chinese economy has been less dependent in the regional economic
system and become more globalized, while the US economy ha s become more integrated in the
Asia Pacific economic system although its shares are much lower than that of the Chinese. (See
table 3)
The US withdrawal of the TPP is a strategic turning point in the open economic order. In fact,
the TPP cannot continue without the US participation. Therefore, RCEP can be the only one mega
FTA in the region that can solve most of the negative problems for many bilateral FTAs although
Japan created the CPTPP that cannot compete with the RCEP in terms of the economic size. As a
65
result, RCEP is now the most significant initiative on the global trade scene in this regard.
Unfortunately, RCEP agreed to be completed without India in Nov. 2019 and is expected to sign
on in 2020. (Johnson, 2019)
East Asian economies are the mos t dynamic in the world economy and integrated to a high
extent although there is no virtual legal framework as like the EU and USMCA except ASEAN.
Thus, RCEP provides several implications for East Asian economic cooperation as follows; Firstly,
East Asian economies need to establish a solid platform to intensify the regional economic
integration for their further economic growth by forming a region -wide FTA. Secondly, the RCEP
can contribute to liberalize trade and investment in the region. Still several na tions such as China,
India, Indonesia, and many of the developing countries in RCEP have barriers to trade and
investment. Easy liberalization could create large economic gains not only for developing
countries, but also for developed countries in RCEP. La st, but not least, RCEP is a pathway to
create a Free Trade Area of Asia and the Pacific (FTAAP) that pushes for opening market and
deepening reforms to strengthen economic integration not only for member nations, but also for
Europe and the rest of the wo rld. (Armstrong and King, 2017; Basu Das, 2017)
Table 3: Trade Interdependency Ratio in Mega FTAs Member Nations (2002 – 2012, %)
Source: Adopted by NEAT Working Group based on UN Comtrade and WDI Database, 2014
So far, Brexit has been delayed since March 2019. It is still unclear to predict whether Brexit
66
can be realized or not. However, the UK government is keen to participate in the CPTPP if Brexit
is realized, but has not expressed willingness to participate i n RCEP. If the UK participates in the
CPTPP, it becomes a real cross -over, connecting Asia, Europe, and Oceania although there are
several barriers such as logistics, regulations etc. Despite this fact, the two mega FTAs can play
important roles in strengthening Asian economic integration and cooperation representing free
trade in the global economy regardless of Brexit or no Brexit.
5. Conclusion remarks
Trade and investment have contributed to global economic growth substantially in the last five
decades. During the period, the growth rate of trade has been doubled the economic growth rate.
However, the global financial crisis in 2008 caused a severe decline of trade and marked negative
economic growth. Since the global financial crisis, the world economy s tarted to recover by
strengthening trade growth. Unfortunately, however, the global trade growth rate started to be
lower than the global economic growth rate in 2012. Finally, the global trade growth rate declined
in 2015 compared to the previous year. Th is trend has continued since Brexit was decided in 2016
and the Trump government came into power in 2017.
Despite slowing down of the trade growth, many nations prefer to choose regional bilateral
FTAs instead of multilateral FTAs in order to boost their e conomic growth. This trend spread out
in the Asia Pacific region, and nations in the region have continuously developed to negotiate
pluri-lateral FTA such as China, Japan, Korea FTA and mega FTAs such as RCEP and TPP. Mega
FTAs are not only for economic c ooperation, but also political and security cooperation in the
Asia Pacific region. Therefore, these FTAs compete with each other by setting trade rules although
both are declared open to any member nations in the region. Therefore, participating nations i n
mega FTAs are keen to calculate their national interests that must be maximized by choosing
proper mega FTAs. In this sense, RCEP focuses mainly on East Asian economic interests in
particular, while the TPP seeks for economic interests in the Asia Pacifi c region as a whole
although all nations in the region do not participate in the agreements.
RCEP completed its negotiation in Nov. 2019 and targets to sign in 2020, while the TPP was
already completed in 2015. However, the US withdrawal from the TPP in Jan. 2017 changed the
situation of mega FTAs completely. As a result, the TPP is not expected to be put in force without
the US participation because the US economic share among the TPP member nations accounted
for nearly 65 percent in 2015 and turned to the CPTPP in 2018 with a much smaller size. Therefore,
the position of RCEP is overwhelming at present in the region.
Many East Asian countries need to participate in the RCEP in order to solve the noodle bowl
67
effect because their regional bilateral FTA s are overlapped. Additionally, many developing nations
in the region need to liberalize their trade and investment in RCEP in order to develop their
national economies further. Moreover, member nations have to utilize RCEP as a platform to
intensify the regional economic integration that creates the regional economic system
interdependent. The CPTPP also provides such opportunity to the member nations. However, it is
rather limited compared with RCEP although the UK can participate in the CPTPP after Brexi t.
By creating the regional economic bloc representing East Asian economic interests, RCEP can
develop further to create the region wide FTA that is the Free Trade Agreement in Asia Pacific
(FTAAP) pursuing open markets, protecting the global free trade system and generating further
global economic growth. Therefore, the RCEP can play roles in a close regional economic
integration in East Asian countries that must be a pathway to set the FTAAP not only for the Asia
Pacific region, but also for other part of economic regions. For it, not only large sized economies
such as China, Japan, India, and Korea, but also small sized economies such as Malaysia, Thailand,
and Vietnam must play their roles as member nations actively in the RCEP.
References
Armstrong, S. and King, A. (2017) East Asia’s Economic Agreement, 19 t h Feb. East Asia Forum,
http://www.eastasiaforum.org/2017/02/19/east -asias-economic-agreement/, accessed on 27 April
2017
ASEAN Secretariat (2009) ASEAN Plus Three Cooperation, http://www.asean.org/asean/external relations/asean-3/item/asean-plus-three-cooperation, accessed on 17 April 2017
ASEAN Secretariat (ASEAN) (2012) Guiding Principles and Objectives for Negotiating the
Regional
Comprehensive
Economic
Partnership,
http://www.asean.org/asean/asean-
summit/item/asean-framework-forregionalcomprehensive-economic-partnership
Asian
Trade
Center
(2018)
The
CPTPP
Enters
into
Force
on
Dec.
30
2018,
http://www.asiantradecentre.org/talkingtrade/the -cptpp-enters-into-force-on-december-30-2018,
accessed on 13 Feb. 2019
Balassa, B. (1962) The Theory of Economic Integration, The Economic Journal, Vol. 72, No. 286,
pp. 389-391
Basu Dasu, S. (2017) The Future of Trade Diplomacy, Perspective, Feb. No. 9, ISEAS Yusof Ishak
68
Institute
Beeson, M. and Stubbs, R. (2012) Routledge Handbook of Asian Regionalism, London and New
York: Routledge
Dent, C.-M. (2003) Networking the Region? The Emergence and Impact of Asia Pacific Bilateral
Free Trade Agreement Projects, The Pacific Review, Vol. 16, No. 1, pp.1 -28
EAFTA (2009) Desirable and Feasible Option for an East A sia FTA, A Report by Joint Expert
Group on EAFTA Phase II Study
Graceffo, A. (2017) China at Davos: US -China Relations are the focus of the World Economic
Forum, Jan. 23, Foreign Policy Journal, https://www.foreignpolicyjournal.com/2017/01/24/china at-davos-us-china-relations-are-the-focus-of-the-world-economic-forum/ , accessed on April. 15.
2017
Gonzales,
A.
(2018)
B rexit,
the
US,
China
and
the
Future
of
Global
Trade,
https://www.weforum.org/agenda/2018/02/brexit -china-global-trade/, accessed on 15. Feb. 2019
Hearn, A. H. and Myers, M. ( 2015) China and TPP: Asia Pacific Integration or Disintegration?
The Dialogue, China and Latin America Report, July
Hoang, N. H. and Hoan, T. Q. (2019) Vietnam and the CPTPP: Achievements and Challenges,
Issue
2019,
No.
41,
https://www.iseas.edu.sg/images/pdf/ISEAS_Perspective_2019_41.pdf ,
accessed on 20 Nov. 2019
Hosny, A. S. (2013) Theories of Economic Integration: A survey of the economic and political
literature, Internat ional Journal of Economy, Management and Social Sciences, Vol. 2, No. 5, pp.
133-155
International Monetary Fund (IMF) (2017) World Economic Outlook: A Shifting Global Economic
Landscape, Washington D. C.: IMF
Johnson, K. (2019) While Trump Builds Tariff Walls, Asia Bets Free Trade, Nov. 1,
https://foreignpolicy.com/2019/11/01/trump -tariffs-free-trade-rcep-asean-india-china-bangkok/,
accessed on 20 Nov. 2019
Johnston, E. (2017) 16 Nation RCEP Talks Resume in Wake up of TPP’s Demise, Japan Times,
Feb.
27,
http://www.japantimes.co.jp/news/2017/02/27/business/16 -nation-rcep-talks-resume-
wake-tpps-demise/#.WPWAGSa1v4Y, accessed on 18. April 2017
Katzenstein, P. (1997) Introduction: Asian Regionalism in Comparative Perspective, in
Katzenstein, P. & Shiraishi, T. (eds.) Networ k Power: Japan and Asia, Ithaca: Cornell University
Press, pp. 353-368
Katzenstein, P. (2005) A world of Regions: Asia and Europe in the American Imperium, Ithaca:
Cornell University Press
Kawai, M. and Wignaraja, G. (2008) EAFTA or CEPEA: Which Way Forward? ASEAN Economic
69
Bulletin, No. 25, pp. 113 -139
Kawai, M. and Wignaraja, G. (2011) Asian FTAs: Trends, Prospects, and Challenges, Journal of
Asian Economics, Vol. 22, p. 14
Kumar, M and Charlton, B. (2017) RCEP will step into gap as Trump pulls out of TPP, Jan. 23,
Oxford Analytica Daily Brief, https://dailybrief.oxan.com/Analysis/DB217448/RCEP -will-stepinto-gap-as-Trump-pulls-out-of-TPP, accessed on 21 April 2017
Nikkei
Asian
Review
(2016)
Japan
Ratifies
TPP
despite
Trump’s
Threat,
Dec.
10,
http://asia.nikkei.com/Politics -Economy/International-Relations/Japan-ratifies-TPP-despiteTrump-s-threat, accessed on 24 April 2017
Park, S. C. (2016) Korea’s Trade Strategies for Mega Free Trade Agreements in Regional and
Global Economic Integration, International Organizations Research J ournal, Vol. 11, No. 4, pp.
19-40
Pempel, T. J. (2010) Soft Balancing, Hedging, and Institutional Darwinism: The Economic
Security Nexus and East Asian Regionalism, Journal of East Asian Studies, Vol. 10, pp.209 -238
Pempel, T. J. (2013) Regional Institutions and the Economy -Security Nexus, in The Economy
Security Nexus in Northeast Asia, Pempel, T. J. (ed.), London: Routledge, pp.146 -163
Petri P.A. and Plummer M. (2014) Asia -Pacific Regional Integration: Economic Effects and
Implications
for
the
G lobal
Trading
System,
Econobrowser,
5
June.
Available
at:
http://econbrowser.com/archives/2014/06/ , accessed on 27 April 2017
Reuters (2016) APEC leaders vow to fight protectionism, look to China on trade, 21 November.
Robson, P. (1998) The Economics of International Integration. London and New York: Routledge
Schell, O and Shirk, S. L. (2017) US Policy Toward China: Recommendations for a New
Administration, New York: Asia Society Center on US China Relations
Shott, J. J. (2017) US Trade Policy Options in the Pacific Basin: Bigger is Better, Policy Brief,
Feb.,
Peterson
Institute
for
International
Economics,
https://piie.com/system/fil es/documents/pb17-7.pdf, accessed on 21 April 2017
Söderbaum, F. (2012) Theories of Regionalism, In: Beeson, M., Stubbs, R (Eds.), Routledge
Handbook of Asian Regionalism, London and New York: Routledge, pp. 11 -22
Urata, S. (2013) Constructing and Multilat eralizing the Regional Comprehensive Economic
Partnership: An Asian Perspective, ADBI Working Paper Series, No. 449, Tokyo: ADBI
Suh, J. K. (2014) Korean Bridge: Balancing Asian Economic Regionalism between the United
States and China, in Rozman, G. (ed.) Joint US-Korea Academic Studies, Vol. 25, pp.188 -199,
Washington D. C.: Korea Economic Institute of America
Torrey,
Z.
(2018)
TPP
2.0:
The
Deal
70
without
the
US,
Feb.
03,
https://thediplomat.com/2018/02/tpp -2-0-the-deal-without-the-us/, accessed on 18 Nov. 2019
Wah, W. S. (2017) Exploring the New Order of Global Trade amid the US Trade Policy Shift,
Economic Review, March
Wilson, J. (2017) Australian Trade Diplomacy; Shaping the Future of the Asian Economic
Architecture through Regional Trade Multilateralism, Feb. Perth: Perth US Asia Centre
World Bank (2017) Data Bank, http://databank.worldbank.org/data/databases/%26nbsp;trade data?pagenumber=4 , accessed on 19 April 2017
World Integrated Trade Solution (2017) http://wits.worldbank.org/# , accessed on 19 April 2017
World Trade Organization (WTO) (2017) Trade Statistics and Outlook: Trade Recovery Expected
in 2017 and 2018, Amid Policy Uncertainty, Press/ 791,
World
Trade
Organization
(WTO)
(2018)
World
Trade
Statistical
Review
2018,
https://www.wto.org/english/res_e/statis_e/wts2018_e/wts18_toc_e.htm , accessed on 14. Feb.
2019
Xiao, Y. (2015) Competitive Me ga-regional Trade Agreement: Regional Comprehensive Economic
Partnership (RCEP) vs. Trans Pacific Partnership (TPP), CUREJ Electronic Journal, 4 -20-2015,
http://repository.upenn.edu/curej , accessed on 16 April 2019
Yi, Q. (2014) The RCEP: A Chinese Perspective. In G. Tang & P. A. Petri (Eds.), New Directions
in Asia-Pacific Economic Integration, Honolulu: East -West Center, pp. 131-137
Zhao, S. (1998) Soft versus Structural Regionalism: Organizational Forms o f Cooperation in Asia
Pacific, The Journal of East Asian Affairs, Vol. 12, No. 1, pp. 96 -134
Web sites:
https://ustr.gov/sites/default/files/TPP -Final-Text-Final-Provisions.pdf, accessed on 24 April
2017
http://wits.worldbank.org/CountryProfile/en/Country/MYS/Year/2013 , accessed on 27 April 2017
https://aric.adb.org/fta -all, accessed on 15 April 2019
https://www.mfat.govt.nz/assets/CPTPP/Comprehensive -and-Progressive-Agreement-for-TransPacific-Partnership-CPTPP-English.pdf, accessed on 18 Nov. 2019
71
Ⅰ-4
Recovery of the Sovereignty and Regional Integration in EU and Asia after
Brexit
Hitomi Kimura
[Abstract]
The chapter focuses on the recovery of the sovereignty and regional integration in EU and
Asia after Brexit. Sovereignty has been one of the key issues to determine the relation between
the UK and EU from the time of joining the EU, as well of leaving the EU. Brexit showed that is
it necessary to choose either from national sovereignty or democracy to proceed economic
integration. In addition, the UK parliamentary sovereignty, characterized by the adoption of the
European Union (Withdrawal) Act 2018 , which repeals supremacy and direct effect of the EU law
and get out of the jurisdiction of the ECJ , the rejection of the Withdrawal Agreement with the EU,
meaningful and indicative vote, resolution to strengthen its power to take back the control to stop
no-deal, and the prorogation, adds unique flavor to Brexit. The irony is that after triggering the
first ever Brexit, people realized the real benefits from an integrated Europe, as well as possible
risks and threats including the divide of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland,
instead of recovering full sovereignty from the EU. The political uncertainty of domestic
parliament in Europe could trigger the EU reform in the direction of having to admit further
substantive sovereignty of members st ates, reflecting Majone’s analysis that EU’s integration
might have gone too far. The EU reform proposal of promoting multispeed approach or
differentiated integration by strengthening the social aspect to cope with disparity among the
people and the society, which has led to the rise of nationalism or populism and Eurosceptic
perspective, leads to recovery of sovereignty to members states, but it should also be adjusted
with Macron’s proposal to aim for strong EU. The Brexit so far, has not given a fundame ntal
impact or change to the current status quo of the regional integration in Asia, but rather, the Asia
is looking at how the EU could reconstruct and rebuild its integration especially in the context of
sovereignty in the regional integration. Asia most likely continues to give priority to sovereignty
of member states, but at the same time, Asian regional organizations are gradually moving closer
to the supranational EU, by respecting and strengthening the rule of law to accelerate regional
economic integration through the state sovereignty-based Comprehensive and Progressive
Agreement for Trans-Pacific Partnership (CPTPP) or the Regional Comprehensive Economic
Partnership (RCEP). Sovereignty in the ongoing regional integration may differ according to its
72
political, economic, social, historical and cultural factors, but continues as fundamental and
crucial issue both in EU and Asia after Brexit.
1. Introduction
Brexit posed the fundamental question about sovereignty in the context of regional economic
integration under the EU 1 . At the time of establishing the European Community, the UK was
suspicious about limiting the sovereignty and supported the European Free Trad e Association
(EFTA), which does not limit sovereignty. However, without any concrete result of establishing
the EFTA, its member states including the UK have joined the European Economic Community
(EEC) 2 . After Brexit, UK tries to conclude Free Trade Agr eement (FTA) with the EU 3 and other
countries. The government networks outside the EU frameworks also did not work for the UK to
remain in the EU. Wasn’t it possible for the UK to pursue both economic integration and
sovereignty while maintaining the memb ership in the EU?
As Majone pointed out, has the EU’s integration gone too far? If so, what kind of economic
cooperation should be pursued in the era of neoliberalism or populism? Why was a supranational
approach pursued only by the EU, Mercosur or the Community of Latin American and Caribbean
States, while the other economic integrations such as the North American Free Trade Agreement
(NAFTA) and the Dominican Republic -Central America FTA (CAFTA -DR) promoted government
networks? Under such econo mic integration, to what extent is national sovereignty limited?
The EU has been pursued as a model for regional integration in Asia for a long time such as
by the Association of Southeast Asian Nations (ASEAN)
4
and the Asia-Pacific Economic
Cooperation (APEC) 5 , which pursues political and economic integration, compared to market David Gowland, Britain and the European Union (Routledge, 2017), pp.378-379.; Gideon Rose,
Introduction, Brexit and Beyond (Foreign Affairs, 2016), pp.1 -2.
2
Giandomenico Majone, Rethinking the Union of Europe Post -Crisis: Has Integration Gone
Too Far? (Cambridge University Press, 2014).; Katsuhiro Shoji, Europe in Crisis: Brexit Shock
(Toyou-Keizai-Shipousha, 2016), pp.87-89,120-121,144-146. (in Japanese).; Tamio Nakamura,
Legal Issues of leaving the EU: in case of Brexit, in Kouji Fukuda (ed.), Solidarity and Risk
Governance in the EU (Sibundou, 2016), p.117. (In Japanese)
3
T. J. Coles, The Great BREXIT Swindle (Clairview Books, 2016), p.19.
4
European Commission, The EU and ASEAN: a partnership with a strategic purpose, JOIN (2015)
22
final,
18.5.2015,
at
http://eur-lex.europa.eu/legalcontent/EN/TXT/PDF/?uri=JOIN:2015:22:FIN&from=EN (as of 10 April 2020).
5 Rolf Langhmmer, Regional Integration APEC Style: L essons from Regional Integration EU Style,
ASEAN Economic Bulletin (1999), Vol.16, Issue 1, pp.1 -17.; Ross Garnaut, Introduction -APEC
ideas and reality: History and prospects, in Ippei Yamazawa (eds.), Asia Pacific Economic
Cooperation (APEC): Challenges a nd tasks for the twenty -first century (Routledge, 2000), pp.118.; John Ravenhill, APEC and Construction of Pacific Rim Regionalism (Cambridge University
73
1
driven regionalization such as NAFTA 6 . However, Asia has chosen to respect the sovereignty of
member states from the very beginning, setting aside the legal integration. Was Asia more
prescient in this respect? Could the Trans -Pacific Partnership (TPP), the Regional Comprehensive
Economic Partnership (RCEP) or the Australia -New Zealand Closer Economic Relations Trade
Agreement (ANZCERTA) be alternative to the supranational EU and be an appropriate model in
Asia? Does the recent phenomenon of neoliberalism or populism affect the economic integration
in Asia? Are government network frameworks still effective in Asia? What types of economic
government networks are appropriate in Asia? This chapter discusses these issues and questions.
2.
UK’s experience on recovery of sovereignty from the EU
As the Costa v. ENEL 7 case shows, sovereignty of the EU member state is limited as far as it
is transferred to the EU 8 . Integration has been defined as “a process for the creation of political
communities” within which “states cease to be wholly sovereign” 9 . However, the nature of
sovereignty of the member state to be devolved or transferred to the EU is still unclear even after
the Lisbon Treaty. One of the causes of Brexit is strengthened power of the European Parliament
over that of national parliaments by expanding the sc ope of the Ordinary Legislative Procedure,
but at the same time, the Lisbon Treaty clarified the importance of respecting the national
identity 1 0 .
Since joining the EU and as the integration of the EU progresses, the UK has suffered from
Press, 2001).
6
Robert Gilpin, APEC in a New International Order, in Donald C. Hellmann and Kenneth B. Pyle
(eds.), From APEC to XANADU: Creating a Viable Community in the Post -Cold War Pacific (The
National Bureau of Asian Research,1997). pp.30 -31.
7
Case 6/64 Costa v ENEL [1964].
8
Prof. Sarooshi categorizes authorization to the international organizations in the following three
types; agency relationship, delegation and transfer. Dan Saroochi, International Organization and
Their Exercise of Sovereignty Powers (Oxford University Press, 2005), pp.29-32.
9 Earnst B. Haas, The Study of Regional Integration: Reflections on the Joy and Anguish of Pre Theorizing, International Organization , Vol.24, No.4 (1970),.; A sovereignty state can be said to
be one that holds and exercis es supreme authority within its territorial jurisdiction. This can be
called the Westphalian model (after the Treaty of Westphalia of 1648) of territorially exclusive
sovereign states with an internal monopoly of violence (the ability to make and enforce l aw and
order), control over external security, a central administration with tax -raising powers and central
institutions with policy -making powers. Caporaso, J., The EU and Forms of State: Westphalian,
Regulatory or Post-Modern? Journal of Common Market Studies, Vol. 34(1) (1996), pp.29-52.
1 0 Takao Suami, EU and Sovereignty of the Member State: Devolution of Sovereignty to the EU
and Lisbon Treaty, in Koji Fukuda, EU and European Integration Research: European Governance
after “Brexit” (Seibundou, 2016), pp.82-105. (In Japanese); Paul Craig, The United Kingdom the
European Union, and Sovereignty, in R. Rawlings, A. Young and P. Leyland (eds.), Sovereignty
and the Law, Domestic, European and International Perspectives (Oxford University Press, 2013),
pp.163-185.
74
the national sovereignty and supremacy of the EU law 1 1 . Sovereignty was also one of the four
issues requested by the UK to be tackled by the EU in “A New Settlement for the United Kingdom
in a Reformed European Union”. This settlement ends Britain’s obligation to work towa rds an
“ever closer union” which is set out in the Treaty, enhances the role of national parliaments by
stopping the unfavorable legislative proposals and fully implement the principle of subsidiarity 1 2 .
In response, A New Settlement for the United Kingdom within the European Union in 2016,
recognizes that the UK is not committed to further political integration into the EU, in light of its
specific situation under the Treaties, and ensures appropriate arrangement to secure the principle
of subsidiarity 1 3 . Although this agreement became invalid due to Brexit, it was clear that all these
changes were based on the bottom -up À la kalte Approach instead of top -down Mone Approach 1 4 .
The principle of subsidiarity is one of the key issues on sovereignty in the EU 1 5 . MacCormick
analyzes the UK’s transition from “sovereign states” to “post -sovereign states” and transformation
of sovereignty in the UK and the EU in the context of the principle of subsidiarity 1 6 . To monitor
the principle of subsidiarity, early warning mechanism was introduced based on the 2004
Constitutional Treaty by requesting national parliaments to send opinions to the EU, if they find
the draft EU legislation is not in conf ormity with principle of subsidiarity 1 7 . The Protocol on the
Hirokatsu Kato, Manual of Constitution -Its Origin, Development and Conflict with EU Law
(Keiso-shobou, 2015), pp.100-101, 156-159. (In Japanese); Andrew Geddes, The European Union
and British Politics (Palgrave Macmillan, 2004), pp.41 -42.; Robin Niblett, Britain, the EU and
the Sovereignty Myth, Royal Institute of International Affairs, Research Paper (2016), at
https://www.chathamhouse.org/sites/default/files/publications/research/2016 -05-09-britain-eusovereignty-myth-niblett.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).
12
PM letter to President of the European Union Council Donald Tusk, A New Settlement for the
United
Kingdom
in
a
Reformed
European
Union,
10
November
2015,
at
http://news.bbc.co.uk/2/shared/bsp/hi/pdfs/10_11_15_donaldtuskletter.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).;
Rossella Pulvirenti, A New Settlement for the United Kingdom in the European Union: A New
Challenge to EU Citizens’ Social Benefits and Freedom of Movement? European Papers, Vol.1,
No.2
(2016),
pp.727-740,
at,
http://www.europeanpapers.eu/en/system/files/pdf_version/EP_EF_2016_I_008_Rossella_Pulvir
enti.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).
13
European Council, Decisions of the Heads of States or Government, Meeting within t he
European Council, Concerning A New Settlement for the United Kingdom within the European
Union, European Council Meeting (18 and 19 February 2016) Conclusions, 19 February 2016.
14
Majone, supra note 2.; Shoji, supra note 2, p. 64.; Jiri Priban, Sovereignty in post-sovereignty
society: A system theory of European constitutionalism (Ashgate, 2015).
15
Regarding subsidiarity, see below. Ken Endo, Subsidiarity and Its Enemies: To What Is
Sovereignty Contested in the Mixed Commonwealth of Europe?, EUI Working Paper RSC
No.2001/24
(2001),
pp.1-24,
at
http://cadmus.eui.eu/bitstream/handle/1814/1733/01_24.pdf?sequence=1&isAllowed=y (as of 10
April 2020).
1 6 Neil MacCormick, Questioning Sovereignty, Law, State, and Nation in the European
Commonwealth (Oxford University Press, 1999), pp.137 -156.; Martin Loughlin, Why
Sovereignty? in Rawlings et al.(eds.), supra note 10, p.45.
17
Davor Jančić, The game of cards: National parliaments i n the EU and the future of the early
warning mechanism and the political dialogue, Common Market Law Review , Vol.52, Issue 4
75
11
role of national parliaments in the EU also clarified the role of national parliaments to monitor
the legislation process of the EU. However, these EU’ efforts to ensure democracy by
strengthening the role of national parliaments 1 8 were not effective enough for the UK to remain
in the EU, but rather prolonged the Brexit process by allowing the swing of national parliament
between getting out of and remaining in the EU.
As Prof. Rodrik insists, to proceed economic integration, is it necessary to choose either from
national sovereignty or democracy? Otherwise, economic integration itself should be abandoned
to keep both national sovereignty and democracy 1 9 . Is this theory applied to the UK, which tr ied
to pursue both through the national referendum? In the first place, was the national referendum
an appropriate approach to decide Brexit 2 0 ? The similar political debate between the market access
and sovereignty can also be observed in the EU -Switzerland Institutional Framework Agreement
negotiation in 2019 2 1 . The transfer of sovereignty from the national to the supranational EU was
not coincidental with that of democracy 2 2 .
In 2015, the UK High Court of Justice judged that the Parliament’s approval is n ecessary to
give notice under Article 50 of the Treaty on European Union, in respect of the constitution 2 3 . The
(2015), pp.939-975.; Jörgen Hettne, Making Sense of Subsidiarity and the Early Warning
Mechanism- A Constitutional Dialogue? Swedish Institute for European Studies (2014), pp.1 -12.;
Marco Kiiver, The Early Warning System for the Principle of Subsidiarity: Constitutional Theory
and Empirical Reality (Routledge, 2012).; Ian Cooper, The Watchdogs of Subsidiarity: National
Parliaments and the Logic of Arguing in the EU, Journal of Common Market Studies , Vol.44,
Issue 2 (2006), pp.281-304.; Adam Cygan, Democracy and Accountability in the European UnionThe View from the House of Commons, Modern Law Review, Vol.66, Issue 3 (2006), pp. 384 -401.
1 8 Shoji, supra note 2, pp. 120-121.
1 9 Dani Rodrik, How far Will International Economic Integration Go? Journal of Economic
Perspectives, Vol.14, No.1 (2000), pp.177-186.
20
The former Prime Minister David Cameron insists that the national referendum was
unavoidable due to political reasons, although he did not expect the result as it might be. David
Cameron, For the Record (William Collins, 2019), pp.xii-xix.; Erik Jones, Brexit’s Lessons for
Democracy, in IISS (ed.), Brexit and Europe’s Crisis: Critical Themes in Contemporary Security
(Volume 1) (Routledge, 2018), pp.36-41.
21
European Parliament, EU-Switzerland Institutional Framework Agreement, European
Parliament recommendation of 26 March 2019 to the Council, the Commission and the Vice President of the Commission/High Representative of the Unio n for Foreign Affairs and Security
Policy concerning the Institutional Framework Agreement between the European Union and the
Swiss Confederation (2018/2262(INI)), at http://www.europarl.europa.eu/doceo/document/TA -82019-0241_EN.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).; American Swiss Foundation (2019), at
https://www.americanswiss.org/switzerland -and-the-european-union-balancing-sovereignty-andclose-economic-ties/ (as of 10 April 2020).
22
David Baker and Pauline Schnapper, Britain and the Crisis of the European Union (Palgrave
Macmillan, 2015), p.40.
2 3 R (Miller) -v- Secretary of State for Exiting the European Union, [2016] EWHC 2768 (Admin),
Case No. CO/3809/2016 and CO/3281/2016, 3 November 2016, In the High Court of Justice,
Queen’s Bench Division, Divisional Court , Before: Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, The
Master of the Rolls, Lord Justice Sales, Between: The Queen on the application of (1) Gina Miller
& (2) Deir Tozetti Dos Santos – Claimants -v- The Secretary of State for Exiting the European
Union- Defendant, at https://www.judiciary.gov.uk/wp -content/uploads/2016/11/r-miller-v76
Supreme Court of the United Kingdom also confirmed this judgment 2 4 . After triggering Brexit, to
annul the European Communities Act of 1972, the UK Parliament adopted the European Union
(Withdrawal) Act 2018 (the former Great Repeal Bill), which repeals supremacy and direct effect
of the EU law and departure from the jurisdiction of the European Court of Justice (ECJ) upon
completion of the negotia tions. UK Parliament’s rejection of the former Prime Minister May’s
Withdrawal Agreement with the EU, discussion on the “meaningful vote” and implementation of
the legally non-binding indicative vote 2 5 , adoption of the resolution to strengthen its power to
take back the control of Brexit and stop no -deal Brexit and the prorogation assuming the
Eurosceptic new Prime Minister Boris Johnson, reminds us that the UK is a state of parliamentary
sovereignty 2 6 . The principle of parliamentary sovereignty was also su pported not only by the
former Speaker of the House of Commons, John Bercaw, but also by the UK Supreme Court, which
judged that suspending parliament was unlawful 2 7 . Backstop to avoid a hard border between the
secretary-of-state-for-exiting-eu-amended-20161122.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).; R (Miller) v.
Secretary of State for Existing the European Union, Summary of the judgment of the Divisional
Court,
at
https://www.judiciary.gov.uk/wp -content/uploads/2016/11/summary -r-miller-vsecretary-of-state-for-exiting-the-eu-20161103.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).; University of
Cambridge,
Brexit:
High
Court
ruling
on
Article
50
explained,
at
https://www.cam.ac.uk/research/news/brexit -high-court-ruling-on-article-50-explained (as of 10
April 2020).; The Guardian, Brexit plans in disarray as high court rules parliament must have its
say, 3 November 2016, at https://www.theguardian.com/politics/2016/nov/03/parliament -musttrigger-brexit-high-court-rules
(as of 10 April 2020).; BBC, Brexit court defeat for UK
government, 3 November 2016, at http://www.bbc.com/news/uk -politics-37857785 (as of 10 April
2020).
24
Judgment, R (on the application of Miller and another) (Respondents) v. Secretary of State for
Exiting the European Union (Appellant), Reference by the Attorney General for Northern Ireland In the matter of an application by Agnew and others for Judicial Review, Reference by the Court
of Appeal (Northern Ireland) -In the matter of an application by Raymond McCord for Judicial
Review, Judgment given on 24 January 2017, heard on 5,6,7 and 8 December 2016. Hilary Term
[2017]UKSC 5, On appeals from: [2016]EWHC 2768 (Admin) and [2016]NIQB 88 , at
https://www.supremecourt.uk/cases/docs/uksc -2016-0196-judgment.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).;
The Supreme Court, Article 50 ‘Brexit’ Appeal, at https://www.supremecourt.uk/ news/article-50brexit-appeal.html (as of 10 April 2020).
2 5 Vaughne Miller, Can the Withdrawal Agreement be renegotiated, and can Parliament prevent
‘no
deal’?
House
of
Commons
Library
(2019),
at
https://commonslibrary.parliament.uk/brexit/negotiations/can -the-withdrawal-agreement-berenegotiated-and-can-parliament-prevent-no-deal/ (as of 10 April 2020).; House of Commons
Library, Negotiations on the UK leaving the EU during the extension period (2019), at
https://researchbriefings.files.parliament.uk/documents/CDP -2019-0123/CDP-2019-0123.pdf (as
of 10 April 2020).; Maddy Thimont Jack, Joe Owen and Hannah White, Voting on Brexit:
Parliament’s
role
before
31
October,
The
Institute
for
Government,
at
https://www.instituteforgovernment.org.uk/sites/default/files/publicatio ns/parliament-rolebefore-31-october-brexit-FINAL.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).
2 6 Hitomi Kimura, EU and UK Law Issues on Brexit, Review of European Law , Vol.4 (2018),
pp.97-125. (In Japanese).; Hitomi Kimura, EU and UK Law Issues on Brexit (2) -The Second Stage
of the Negotiation, Review of European Law , Vol.5 (2018), pp.110-142. (In Japanese).
27
Graeme Cowie, Prorogation of Parliament, House of Commons Library, No. (2019), at
https://researchbriefings.files.parliament.uk/documents/CBP -8589/CBP-8589.pdf (as of 10 April
77
Northern Ireland and Ireland has been the most sensitive and burning issue in the Brexit
negotiation, since it touches directly upon the territorial sovereignty of the UK, as well as of the
Ireland which remains in the EU 2 8 .
It seems that UK sovereignty does not benefit from an integrated Europe, but is it really so?
The recent series of extension of Brexit, the first time by 12 April or 22 May 2019 before the
European Parliament election 2019, the second time by 31 October 2019 by Theresa May, and the
third time by 31 January 2020 as Prime Minister Boris Johnson’s compromise reflecting strong
opposition by the Parliament and people in the UK, implies that they now realize the real benefits
from an integrated Europe, which has not been recognized for a long time because they are so
obvious and natural. As the Brexit, especially the no -deal or the hard Brexit without any agreement,
becomes real 2 9 , people realize the possible risks and even threats of what the y might lose instead
of recovering full sovereignty from the EU. The First Minister of Scotland, Nicola Sturgeon,
declared to seek the second referendum by 2021 to be independent from the UK and remain in the
EU. Brexit may divide the United Kingdom of Gre at Britain and Northern Ireland, consisting of
England, Wales, Scotland and Northern Ireland.
However, it is also true that even so, there is almost an equivalent or half of the population
who would seek Brexit in the name of recovering sovereignty from th e EU. The rising nationalistic
opinions and voices were picked up by the Brexit Party launched toward the 2019 European
Parliament Election by the former head of the extreme populism UK Independence Party (UKIP),
Nigel Farage. Sovereignty has been one of t he key issues dividing the UK and EU from the very
beginning of joining the EU, as well of leaving the EU.
3. Supranational approach or intergovernmental cooperation?
The relation between national sovereignty and regional integration has been analyzed f rom
various points; (i) To what extent deviation from joint action is allowed; (ii) How is regional
integration law incorporated into national laws; (iii) How does national government involve in
2020).
Rainer Grote, Northern Ireland, in Rüdiger Wolfrum (eds.), Max Planck Encyclopedia of Public
International Law (Oxford University Press, 2012), pp.816 -829.; Richard Humphreys, Beyond the
Border: The Good Friday Agreement and Irish Unity After Brexit (Irish Academic Pr, 2018).
2 9 Department for Exiting the European Union, How to prepare if the UK leaves the EU with no
deal (2018), at https://www.gov.uk/government/collections/how -to-prepare-if-the-uk-leaves-theeu-with-no-deal (as of 10 April 2020).; UK Parliament, The consequences of “No Deal” for UK
28
business
(2019)
https://publications.parliament.uk/pa/cm201719/cmselect/cmexeu/2560/256002.htm
April 2020).
78
(as
of
at
10
dispute settlement? 3 0 This section focuses on the dichotomy b etween supranational approach and
government cooperation.
Confrontation between the supranational approach and government networks has been one of
the fundamental issues of integration since the establishment of the EU, as well as one of the
factors of the past several crises in Europe. Supranational approach is based on the acquis
communautaire by strengthening the power of European Parliament or the European Commission,
while government networks are based on the respect for the European Council. Even amon g the
core member states, the preference differs; UK, France and some Northern European countries
prefer government cooperation, while Germany prefers supranational approach. In the first place,
the first pillar of the EU ( European Community: EC) was based on supranational approach, while
the second pillar (Common Foreign and Security Policy : CFSP) and the third pillar ( Police and
Judicial Co-operation in Criminal Matters : PJCCM) were based on government cooperation before
the amendment by the Lisbon Treaty 3 1 . Certain problems could only be dealt with through
intergovernmental cooperation 3 2 .
The Lisbon Treaty revitalized the governmental networks 3 3 , in which intergovernmental
Yaeko Matsumoto, Regional Integration, National Sovereignty and Globalization
(Chuoukouron-Jugyoshuppan, 2009), p.5. (In Japanese)
31
Shuichi Kawashima, Trembling of the Atlantic Alliance and the fixing of the EEC, Ken Endo
(ed.), A History of European Integration (Nagoya University Press, 2014), pp.186 -187, 193. (In
Japanese).; Suami, supra note 10, pp.98-98.; Joachim Schildt, Germany and France, and European
Institutional Order-Phenomenon of Development from the EEC to Lisbon Treaty, in Isao Hirota
(ed.), Half Century of European Integration and East Asian Communi ty (Nihonkeizai-Hyouronsha,
2009), pp.61, 68-69. (In Japanese); Mitsuo Miyamoto, Nation State and Federal State -Future of
European International Integration (Kokusaishoin, 2002), pp.28 -33. (In Japanese); Memorandum
on
the
Organization
of
a
System
of
Federa l
European
Union,
at
https://dl.wdl.org/11583/service/11583.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).; British Prime Minister Tony
Blair ’s speech to the Polish Stock Exchange in Warsaw 6 October 2000, at
https://euobserver.com/news/2450 (as of 10 April 2020).; Pierre Gerbet, The Intergovernmental
Conference
(IGC)
on
Political
Union,
CVCE
(2016),
at
https://www.cvce.eu/content/publication/2003/10/16/183c7651 -32ef-470a-85ac8103435f4c58/publishable_en.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).; Noriko Ofuji, European Integration and
“state sovereignty”- Its Functional Aspect, in Miyoko Tsujimura (ed.), Political Change and
Progress on Constitutionalism (Shinzansha, 2017). (In Japanese); Michito Tsuruoka, Common
Foreign, Security and Defence Policy in European Integration: Intergovernmentalism and its
Transformations, EU Studies in Japan, Vol.31(2011), pp.168-185. (In Japanese)
32
Fritz W. Schrpf, The Joint Decision Trap: Lessons from German Federalism and European
Integration, Public Administration, Vol.66, pp.239-278.; Federico Fabbrini, Brexit and the Reform
of Economic and Monetary Union, in Nazaré da Costa Cabral, José Renato Gonçalves and Nuno
Cunha Rodrigues (eds.), After Brexit: Consequences for the European Union (Palgrave Macmillan,
2018), pp. 129-146.
33
Michael Dougan, The Treaty of Lisbon 2007: Winning Minds, not Hearts, Common Market Law
Review, No. 45 (2008), pp.617-703.
79
30
cooperation or external governance is effective 3 4 . However, opt-out clause 3 5 added to the Lisbon
Treaty threatens the integrity of the EU itself and this concern became real by the Brexit.
Intergovernmentalism,
supranationalism
and
constructivism
apply
to
different
cases
of
differentiation, but the choice of opt -out reflecting one single national interest is out of the scope
of integration theory 3 6 . In response to Brexit, is it necessary to incorporate opt -out clause based
on national interest in the integration theory in the new era of post -Brexit?
This dichotomy has transformed into the discussion focused more on functional aspect of the
EU, as Tony Blair mentioned in his speech that “Europe is a Europe of free, independent sovereign
nations who choose to pool that sovereignty in pursuit of their own interests and the common
good, achieving more together than we can achieve alone. The EU will rema in a unique
combination of the intergovernmental and the supranational.” Discussion on supranational
approach or intergovernmental cooperation goes back to the issue of principle of subsidiarity 3 7 .
If the agreement under the Treaty was difficult, the gove rnment networks outside the EU
frameworks were sought or some of them were incorporated into the Treaty based on variable
geometry or multi-speed integration 3 8 . However, the economic government networks outside the
34
Sandra Lavenex & Frank Schimmelfennig, EU rules beyond EU borders: theorizing external
governance in European politics, Journal of European Public Policy , Vol.16, Issue 6 (2009), pp.
791-812.; Stéphanie C. Hofmann, Why Institutional Overlap Matters: CSDP in the European
Security Architecture, Journal of Common Market Studies , Vol. 49, No. 1(2011), pp.101 -120.;
Stephan Stetter, The EU as a Structured Power: Organizing EU Foreign Affairs within the
Institutional Environment of World Politics , Journal of International Organizations Studies ,
Volume 4, Special Issue (2013), pp. 54 -71.
3 5 Article 50 of the Treaty on European Union (TEU) defines that “1. Any Member State may
decide to withdraw from the Union in accordance with its own constitutional requirements. 2. A
Member State which decides to withdraw shall notify the European Council o f its intention. In
the light of the guidelines provided by the European Council, the Union shall negotiate and
conclude an agreement with that State, setting out the arrangements for its withdrawal, taking
account of the framework for its future relations hip with the Union. That agreement shall be
negotiated in accordance with Article 218(3) of the Treaty on the Functioning of the European
Union. It shall be concluded on behalf of the Union by the Council, acting by a qualified majority,
after obtaining the consent of the European Parliament. 3. The Treaties shall cease to apply to the
State in question from the date of entry into force of the withdrawal agreement or, failing that,
two years after the notification referred to in paragraph 2, unless the Euro pean Council, in
agreement with the Member State concerned, unanimously decides to extend this period. 4. For
the purposes of paragraphs 2 and 3, the member of the European Council or of the Council
representing the withdrawing Member State shall not parti cipate in the discussions of the
European Council or Council or in decisions concerning it. A qualified majority shall be defined
in accordance with Article 238(3)(b) of the Treaty on the Functioning of the European Union. 5.
If a State which has withdrawn from the Union asks to rejoin, its request shall be subject to the
procedure referred to in Article 49.”
3 6 Rebecca Adler-Nissen, Opting out of the European Union: Diplomacy, Sovereignty and
European Integration (Cambridge University Press, 2014), pp.26, 3 5-37.
37
Machiko Hachiya, Establishment of Principle of Subsidiarity and its Issues - Toward
establishing European Society, in Masao Sakurai (ed.), Various Issues of EU and European Law
(Shinzansha, 2002), p.32. (In Japanese)
38
Toshiro Tanaka, EU Studies Institute in Tokyo (EUSI) Commentary, Vol.92 (2017), at
80
EU frameworks such as the European Stabil ity Mechanism (ESM), the Fiscal Compact or the Euro
Plus Pact (Stronger Economic Policy Coordination for Competitiveness and Convergence) also
did not work for the UK to remain in the EU.
More fundamentally, the regional economic institutions such as EU d o not necessarily prevent
the populism or nationalism, but rather could erode the multilateralism and promote protectionism
against counties outside of the system 3 9 . The recent EU-wide evolution of populism or nationalism
threatens the further integration of Europe. In this sense, EU’s integration might have gone too
far as Majone pointed out. If so, what kind of economic cooperation should be pursued in the era
of neoliberalism or populism?
The similar attitude of the UK has also been seen in other member states as they do not want
to lose their control and face integration fatigue, in spite of increasing necessity to solve various
problems at the EU level 4 0 . The repeated compromise and concession from the EU side respecting
the decision by the UK showed th e greatest consideration of state sovereignty of member states.
The long-standing Brexit process also delayed the discussion of future EU reform, facing with the
urgent necessity to prepare for “no deal” 4 1 , which may have significantly negative impact to t he
European economy as well as politics. Macron’s proposal on future EU reform includes a common
budget for the euro or strengthening of defense, on which he warns as “on the edge of a
http://www.hit-u.ac.jp/kenkyu/eusi/eusicommentary/vol92.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).
39
Edward D. Mansfield and Helen V. Milner, T he New Wave of Regionalism, in Fred H. Lawson,
(ed.), Comparative Regionalism (Ashgate, 2009), p.57.
4 0 Fabian Zuleeg, Can the Eurozone’s Economic Governance Combine Political Accountability,
Legitimacy
and
Effectiveness?,
EPC
Discussion
Paper
(2015),
at
http://aei.pitt.edu/67176/1/pub_5870_eurozone_s_economic_governance.pdf (as of 10 April
2020).
41
European Commission, Preparedness notices, Notices from the European Commission
departments on how Brexit would change law and policy in their areas of work (2018), at
https://ec.europa.eu/info/brexit/brexit -preparedness/preparedness-notices_en (as of 10 April
2020).; EUROPEAN COMMISSION, Preparing for the withdrawal of the United Kingd om from
the European Union
on 30 March 2019, Brussels, 19.7.2018 COM(2018) 556 final, at
https://ec.europa.eu/info/sites/info/files/commu nication-preparing-withdrawal-brexitpreparedness.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).; EUROPEAN COMMISSION, Preparing for the
withdrawal of the United Kingdom from the European Union on 30 March 2019: a Contingency
Action Plan, COMMUNICATION FROM THE COMMISSION TO THE EUROPEAN
PARLIAMENT, THE EUROPEAN COUNCIL, THE COUNCIL, THE EUROPEAN CENTRAL
BANK, THE EUROPEAN ECONOMIC AND SOCIAL COMMITTEE, THE COMMITTEE OF THE
REGIONS AND THE EUROPEAN INVESTMENT BANK, COM(2018) 880 final, Strasbourg,
13.11.2018, at https://eur-lex.europa.eu/resource.html?uri=cellar:3dd5b905 -e829-11e8-b69001aa75ed71a1.0001.02/DOC_1&format=PDF (as of 10 April 2020).; European Commission,
COMMUNICATION FROM THE COMMISSION TO THE EUROPEAN PARLIAMENT, THE
EUROPEAN COUNCIL, THE COUNCIL, THE EUROPEAN CENTRAL BANK, THE EUROPEAN
ECONOMIC AND SOCIAL COMMITTEE, THE COMMITTEE OF THE REGIONS AND THE
EUROPEAN INVESTMENT BANK, Brussels , 19.12.2018 COM(2018) 890 final , at
https://ec.europa.eu/info/sites/info/files/com -2018-890-final.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).
81
precipice 4 2 ”. Tighter border control through the amendment of the Schengen Agreement, or the
establishment of a European agency for the protection of democracies 4 3 against the rise of
nationalism 4 4 , all deeply relate to national sovereignty of member states, who seem to seek a
stronger EU.
European Parliament election 2 019 finally resulted in the sluggish increase of the concerned
Euroscepticism, which would not lead to major changes to EU policy on Brexit. In the UK, pro EU campaigner and pro-Brexit balanced again, with the increased seats by the Brexit Party, the
Liberal Democrats and the Green Party and decreased seats by the Labour Party and the ruling
Conservative and Unionist Party. However, the political uncertainty and instability increase in
major member states, where single majority cannot be achieved in their d omestic parliaments like
the hung parliament in the UK. This political uncertainty of domestic parliament could trigger the
EU reform in the direction of having to admit further substantive sovereignty of member states.
The EU reform proposal of promo ting multispeed approach or differentiated integration by
strengthening the social aspect to cope with disparity among people, which has led to the rise of
nationalism or populism and Eurosceptic perspective, leads to recovery of sovereignty to member
states 4 5 . The new President-elect of the European Commission, Ursula Gertrud von der Leyen’s
“My Agenda for Europe 4 6 ” includes “An economy that works for people”. If this agenda could
achieve the reform of Euro or accept various currencies, it would respect an d strengthen
sovereignty of member states. These ideas of reforming EU might be contradictory to Macron’s
proposal on further integration by pursuing strong EU, so the future figure of the EU lies in
between. In other words, the issue is how differentiated integration maintains EU cohesion and
coherence as well as the legitimacy and transparency of EU decisions 4 7 .
The Economist, 9th November 2019, p.9.
Élysée, Pour une Renaissance européenne , 4 March 2019, at https://www.elysee.fr/emmanuel macron/2019/03/04/pour-une-renaissance-europeenne (as of 10 April 2020).; Deutsche Welle, 4
March 2019.
44
Regarding the crisis of democracy even before the Brexit in the EU and members states, see
below. David Baker and Pauline Schnapper, Britain and the Crisis of the European Union
(Palgrave Macmillan, 2015), pp.91 -133.
45
European
Parliament,
Future
of
Europ e
debates
III
(2019),
at
http://www.europarl.europa.eu/RegData/etudes/BRIE/2019/633159/EPRS_BRI(2019)633159_EN
.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).; Koji Fukuda, Brexit and future of E U reform, Presentation at the
Global Forum of Japan, 29 November 2019, Tokyo.; Sergio Fabbrini and Vivien A. Schmidt ,
Introduction: differentiation and beyond, Comparative European Politics, Vol. 17, Issue 2
(2019), pp 173 -175.
46
6 policy targets include; A European Green Deal; An economy that works for people; A Europe
fit for the digital age; Protecting our European way of life; A stronger Europe in the world; A new
push for European democracy. Ursula von der Leyen , A Union that strives for more: My agenda
for Europe, POLITICAL GUIDELINES FOR THE NEXT EUROPEAN COMMISSION 2019 -2024,
https://ec.europa.eu/commission/sites/beta -political/files/political-guidelines-nextat
commission_en.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).
47
Fabbrini and Schmidt, supra note 45, p.173.
82
42
43
4. Implications for Asia
The EU has been pursued as a model for regional integration in Asia for a long time such as
by ASEAN. ASEAN and the EU have also developed their relationship in various fields including
the Asia-Europe Meeting (ASEM) 4 8 . Asia has also benefitted from the integration of EU 4 9 . On the
other hand, many Asian scholars insist that the EU cannot be a model for East Asian region al
integration 5 0 . ASEAN has chosen to respect the sovereignty of member states from the very
beginning. Neither supranational organization nor shared sovereignty in the EU was never on the
agenda, although the loss of sovereignty was also feared by the EU and NAFTA 5 1 . Unlike other
regional organizations, the ASEAN does not share a common language, religion or history 5 2 . This
diverse character of Asia is one of the reasons why sovereignty was not transferred to the ASEAN
at the initial moment of its establis hment. In general, becoming a member of international
Marise Cremona, David Kleimann, Joris Larik, Rena Lee and Pascal Vennesson, ASEAN’s
External Agreements: Law, Practice and the Quest for Collective Action (Integration through Law:
The Role of Law and the Rule of Law in ASEAN Integration (Cambridge University Press, 2015),
p.40.; Takao Suami, Global Constitutionalism and European Legal Experiences - Can European
Constitutionalism Be Applied to the Rest of the World?, in Takao Suami, Anne Peters, Dimitri
Vanoverbeke and Mattias Kumm (eds.), Global Constitutionalism from European and East Asian
Perspectives (Cambridge University Press, 2018), pp.123 -167.; Toshiro Tanaka, EU and Asia: Its
mutual meaning, European Union Studies Association Japan Annual Report , Vol. 36 (2016), pp.128. (In Japanese)
4 9 Michael G. Plummer, Economic Deepening and Widening in Europ e Implications for the AsiaPacific Rim, in Mitsuru Toida (ed.), Impact of EC Integration on Asian Industrializing Region
(Institute of Developing Economies, 1994), pp.54 -88.; Daisuke Hiratsuka, Impact of the Single
European Market on ASEAN and China, Ibid, pp.266-284.
50
Tamio Nakamura, Proposal of the draft chapter of the East Asian Community: an overview and
the basic principles, in Tamio Nakamura (ed.), East Asian Regionalism from a Legal Perspective:
Current Features and a Vision for the Future (Routledge, 2009), pp.193-214.
51
John B. Sutcliffe, Critical Interpretations of Integration in North America and the European
Union: A Comparative Evaluation, in Finn Laursen (ed.), Comparative Regional Integration Europe and Beyond (Routledge, 2016), pp.63-82.; Jacques Pelkmans, The ASEAN Economic
Community: A Conceptual Approach (Cambridge University Press, 2016), pp.4,182.; Walter Woon,
The ASEAN Charter: A Commentary (National University of Singapore Press, 2016), p.2.; Dispute
resolution mechanism under the N AFTA shows some aspect of transfer of sovereignty can been
seen. Satoru Nagao, Regional Framework in the North America: Establishment and Development
of NAFTA, in Ken Nobayashi, Ryo Oobayashi, Masatsugu Naya and Satoru Nagao (eds.)
Introduction to International Political Economy (Yuhikaku, 1996), p.233. (In Japanese)
52
Bruno Jetin and Mia Mikic, Introduction, in Mia Mikic and Bruno Jetin (eds.), ASEAN
Economic Community: A Model for Asia -wide Regional Integration? (Palgrave Macmillan, 2016),
p.1.; Jean-Raphaël Chaponnière and Marc Lautier, By Chance or Virtue? The Regional Economic
Integration Process in Southeast Asia, Ibid, p.33.; Yeo Lay Hwee, From AFTA to ASEAN
Economic Community- Is ASEAN Moving Towards EU -style Economic Integration?, in Laursen
(ed.), supra note 51 pp.215-216.; Richard Stubbs, ASEAN Plus Three: Emerging East Asian
Regionalism, Asian Survey, Vo.42, No.3 (2002), pp. 440-455.
83
48
organizations does not mean the automatic loss of sovereignty 5 3 .
ASEAN was initially established as political association and later developed toward economic
integration 5 4 . It started with Indonesia, M alaysia, Philippines, Singapore and Thailand, and
enlarged to Brunei (ASEAN6), Vietnam, Laos, Myanmar and Cambodia (ASEAN10), and proposed
to establish the ASEAN Economic Community (AEC) and a single market by 2015. Economic
integration is clearly the curr ent objective of ASEAN 5 5 . As Article 2(2)(n) of the ASEAN Charter
mentions the commitment of ASEAN member states to act in accordance with the principle of
“adherence
to
multilateral
trade
rules
and ASEAN’s
rule -based regimes
for
effective
implementation of economic commitments and progressive reduction towards elimination of all
barriers to regional economic integration”, the rule of law is a major pillar of ASEAN in the
pursuit of the AEC 5 6 . This is basically in line with the situation where the European integration
systems are viable only if the relevant rules are strictly enforced 5 7 . Thus, if the member states of
ASEAN follow the rule of law, they might change their mindset from the traditional state
sovereignty to a rule-based legally binding institutio nal form 5 8 . However, the sovereignty
continues to remain basically in the hands of each member state in Asia, unlike in the
supranational EU.
This is considered to be one of the reasons behind the recent evolution of Trans -Pacific
Partnership (TPP) or the Regional Comprehensive Economic Partnership (RCEP), which is based
on state sovereignty. Comprehensive and Progressive Agreement for Trans -Pacific Partnership
(CPTPP) 5 9 which entered into force in 2018, includes 11 countries - Australia, Brunei, Canada,
Yoshizane Suzuki, Limitation of State Sovereignty in the Regional International Organizaion,
Ryoto Sumiyoshi and Tokusaburou Oohata (eds.), International Law in the 21 s t Century (Seubundo,
1986), pp. 273-293. (In Japanese); Based on the idea that interference in the domestic situations
of states should not be the immediate responsibility of the Security Council, Chin a and Russia
strongly support the principle of national sovereignty and make use of the veto powers to block
Security Council Resolutions or agree to intervention under Chapter VII of the Charter. Sherif A.
Elgebeily, The Rule of Law in the United Nations Security Council Decision - Making Process:
Turning the Focus Inwards (Routledge, 2017), p.98.
54
Alker and Puchala argue that the level of economic interaction between nations can serve as a
reliable indicator of their degree of political integration. Haywa rd Alker and Puchala, Trends in
Economic Partnership: The North Atlantic Area, 1928 -1963, in J. Davis Singer (ed.), Quantitative
International Politics (Free Press, 1968), p.288.
55
Finn Laursen, Regional Integration: Some Introductory Reflections, in Laurs en (ed.), supra
note 51, p.3.
56
Stephano Inama and Edmund W. Sim, Rules of Origin in ASEAN: A Way Forward (Cambridge
University Press, 2015), pp.xi -xii.
57
Christian Tomuschat, International Courts and Tribunals, in Rüdiger Wolfrum (ed.), Max
Planck Encyclopedia of Public International Law (Oxford University Press, 2012), p.510.
5 8 Tamio Nakamura, Legal construction of an East Asian Community: Is it worth it? , in Dimitri
Vanoverbeke, Takao Suami, Takako Ueta, Nicholas Peeters and Frederik Ponjaert (eds.),
Developing EU-Japan Relations in a Changing Regional Context: A Focus on Security, Law and
Policies (Routledge, 2018), pp.34-48.
59
New Zealand, Foreign Affairs & Trade, COMPREHENSIVE AND PROGRESSIVE
84
53
Chile, Japan, Malaysia, Mexico, New Zealand, Peru, Singapore, and Vietnam. However, the U.S.
withdrew from the TPP negotiation in 2017, since it is also considered it as threat to sovereignty
and democracy. Instead of TPP without the U.S., RCEP caught inter national attention. After
India’s withdrawal from the negotiation in 2019 due to its fear of the negative impact of free trade
on its domestic agricultural industry, 15 countries including 10 ASEAN member states, Japan,
China, Korea, Australia and New Zeal and, tried to agree on RCEP. The purpose of RCEP is to
combine individual FTAs, which ASEAN has already concluded with other countries. The recently
revealed RCEP clauses include that of dispute settlement, which determines the relation between
national sovereignty and regional integration.
The Australia-New Zealand Closer Economic Relations Trade Agreement (ANZCERTA) is one
of the most comprehensive bilateral trade agreements in the Asia -Pacific region. Possible lessons
for ASEAN include the importance of strong political support at the leadership level, periodic
setting by leaders of objectives for the integration process, and the pursuit of wide -ranging
economic reform agendas as natural extensions of the domestic reform process 6 0 .
Some issues can better be handled at the decentralized level. In this respect, APEC based on open
regionalism could play a more important role than ASEAN in building regulatory capacity to cope
with, for example, the regional environmental issues in the framework of loose government
networks 6 1 . The NAFTA environmental enforcement network plays a strong role in implementing
the agenda and complements the role of an international organization 6 2 without transferring
sovereignty or supranational organization. However, flexibil ity in the guise of multi -speed
dynamics differentiated treatment of particular issues and even opt -outs for individual states.
AGREEMENT
FOR
TRANS -PACIFIC
PARTNER,
21
February
2018,
at
https://www.mfat.govt.nz/assets/CPTPP/CPTPP -Text-English.pdf (as of 10 April 2020).
6 0 Robert Scollay, Christopher Findlay Dr and Uwe Kaufmann , Australia New Zealand closer
economic relations trade agreement (ANZCERTA) and regional integration (Cambridge University
Press, 2010), pp.99-106.; Australian Government, Department of Foreign Affairs and Trade,
Australia-New Zealand Closer Economic Relations Trade Agreement (2018), at
https://dfat.gov.au/trade/agreements/in -force/anzcerta/Pages/australia -new-zealand -closereconomic-relations-trade-agreement.aspx (as of 10 April 2020).
6 1 Louis J. Kotzé, Conceptualising Global Environmental Constitutionalism in a Regional
Context: Perspectives from Asia and Europe, in Suami et. al (eds.), supra note 48, pp. 422-446.;
Among Asia, government networks also depend on each sector. Environmental government
networks in Asia, for example, defy four main types of networks; (1) transgovernmental regulatory
networks; (2) intergovernmental organisation networks; (3) research -oriented networks; and (4)
regional networks. Hitomi Kimura, Environmental Government Networks with Asian Examples.
In Cullen, Harrington and Renshaw (eds.). Experts, Networks and Interna tional Law (Cambridge
University Press, 2017), pp.185-202.
6 2 Regarding environmental cooperation under the NAFTA, see. Hoi L. Kong and L. Kinvin Wroth
(eds.), NAFTA and Sustainable Development: History, Experience, and Prospects for Reform
(Cambridge University Press, 2015).; Blanca Torres, Environmental Cooperation before and after
NAFTA, in Kirsten Appendini and Sven Bislev (eds.), Economic Integration in NAFTA and the
EU (Macmillan Press, 1999), pp.106 -123.
85
Canada, for example, has opted out of NAFTA environmental sanction, preferring instead to use
its own domestic measure 6 3 . APEC Environment Committee pursues the NAFTA’s Commission for
Environmental Cooperation, but so far, the integration of environment and economy has not been
successful 6 4 . Instead, under the TPP and RCEP, the recent environmental actions are considered
as requisite for boosting the sustainable growth of the economy in the region, rather than as
dilemma between economic growth.
5. Conclusion
Sovereignty has been one of the key issues determining the relation between the UK and EU
from the time of joining the EU, as well as of leaving the EU. Brexit showed that is it necessary
to choose either from national sovereignty or democracy to proceed economic integration. In
addition, the UK parliamentary sovereignty, characterized by the adoption of the European U nion
(Withdrawal) Act 2018, which repeals supremacy and direct effect of EU law and departure from
the jurisdiction of the ECJ, the rejection of the Withdrawal Agreement with the EU, meaningful
vote and indicative vote, resolution to strengthen its power t o take back the control to stop no deal, and the prorogation, adds unique flavor to Brexit. The irony is that after triggering Brexit,
people realized the real benefits from an integrated Europe, as well as possible risks and threats
including the divide of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland, instead of
recovering full sovereignty from the EU. The UK may suffer from the confrontation between the
Leave camp and the Remain camp even after Brexit.
The Lisbon Treaty revitalized the governm ental networks and weakened supranational
approach, but it opt-out clause threatened the integrity of the EU itself through Brexit.
Intergovernmentalism,
supranationalism
and
constructivism
apply
to
different
cases
of
differentiation, but the choice of opt -out reflecting one single national interest is out of the scope
of integration theory. The recent EU-wide rise of populism or nationalism also threatens the
further integration of Europe, but the sluggish increase of Euroscepticism in the European
Parliament election of 2019 would not lead to major changes to EU policy on Brexit. However,
the political uncertainty of domestic parliament could trigger the EU reform in the direction of
having to admit further substantive sovereignty of member states, reflect ing Majone’s analysis
Alex Warleigh-Lack, The EU in Comparative Per spective: Comparing the EU and NAFTA, in
Laursen (ed.), supra note 51, pp.49-50.; Roberto A. Sanchez , Governance, Trade and the
Environment in the Context of NAFTA, American Behavioral Scientist , Vol. 45, Issue 9 (2002),
pp.1369-1393.
64
André Dua and Daniel C. Esty, APEC and Sustainable Development, in C. Fred Bergsten (ed.),
Whither APEC? The Progress to Date and Agenda for the Future (Institute for International
Economics, 1997), pp.151-178.
86
63
that EU’s integration might have gone too far. The EU reform proposal of promoting multispeed
approach or differentiated integration by strengthening the social aspect to cope with disparity
among the people and society, which has led to the rise of nationalism or populism and Eurosceptic
perspective, leads to recovery of sovereignty among member states, but it should also be adjusted
with Macron’s proposal to aim for strong EU. At the same time, d ifferentiated integration should
also maintain EU cohesion and coherence as well as the legitimacy and transparency of the EU.
Brexit so far has not given a fundamental impact or change to the current status quo of the
regional integration in Asia. Rather, Brexit was a severe body blow to the EU’s image as a
successful, supranational regional entity which delivers peace and prosperity to its member
states 6 5 by allowing further sovereignty of member states. Therefore, Asia is looking at how the
EU could reconstruct and rebuild its integration es pecially in the context of sovereignty in the
regional integration. Asia most likely continues to give priority to sovereignty, but at the same
time, Asian regional organizations are gradually moving closer to the EU, by respecting and
strengthening the rule of law to accelerate regional economic integration. It is natural that the
rule of law is a major pillar of the current ASEAN in the pursuit of economic integration through
the AEC, considering that the strict enforcement of relevant rules was requisite to the European
integration systems. The recent clear sign of respecting the rule of law might change the
traditional Asian posture toward state sovereignty. However, the sovereignty continues to remain
basically in the hands of each member states in Asia , unlike in the supranational EU. Instead of
the Comprehensive and Progressive Agreement for Trans -Pacific Partnership (CPTPP), which
entered into force among 11 countries without the U.S. in 2018, RCEP caught international
attention by combining individua l FTAs, which ASEAN has already concluded, but both of which
are based on state sovereignty. The further elaboration and clarification of the RCEP clause on
dispute settlement is worthwhile to analyze the relation between national sovereignty and regional
integration. While strengthening the rule of law to promote economic integration in Asia, some
issues such as environment problems continue to be better handled at the decentralized level in
the framework of loose government networks such as the APEC, TPP or RCEP.
The issue of sovereignty is traditional, but at the same time, timely and modern. Sovereignty
in the ongoing regional integration may differ according to its political, economic, social,
historical and cultural fa ctors, but continues as fundamental and crucial issue both in EU and Asia
after Brexit.
Lay Hwee Yeo, The Lessons from Brexit and Its Impact on Singa pore and ASEAN, in David W.
F. Huang and Michael Reilly (eds.), The Implications of Brexit for East Asia (Palgrave Macmillan,
2018), pp.143-157.
87
65
Ⅰ-5
Brexit and Trump: Genuine Anti -Globalisation Revolution
or the Repetition of 1848
Binoy Kampmark and Petar Kurecic
[Abstract]
The year 2016 saw several tumultuous political developments. Brexit, the de facto end of the
Trans-Pacific Partnership and the concurrent signing of the CETA, and Trump, with his “America
First” counter globalization/immigration agenda seemed to have shaken the mechanisms of the
transnational capitalist class. The paradox lies in the fact that “globalization losers” voted for
“one percent”, usually blamed for the transnational financial capitalism that produces severe
inequality. The counter globalization and nationalist processes f rom states deemed the chief
proponents of “globalization” and challenges represented by “Bannonism” and Brexit are
therefore considered. While superficially radical, it is questionable whether the inequalities and
atomisation produced by global capitalism will be redressed by the managers of Brexit or the
stewards of the Trump revolution.
The “post -truth era” has made actual changes more formidable,
suggesting change, even as the order ossifies. By way of contrast and comparison, 1848’s Year of
Revolutions is suggested.
Keywords: Brexit, Trump revolution, counterrevolution, globalization, Bannonism.
Introduction
In 2009, Dani Rodrik noted the “remarkable turnaround in the intellectual climate” among
mainstream economists: “Today the question is no longer, ‘Are you for or against globalisation?’
The question is: “What should the rules of globalisation be?” As Rodri k points out, the model of
liberalization and economic integration of the 1980s and 1990s “is unsustainable. If globalisation
is to survive, it will need a new intellectual consensus to underpin it. The world economy
desperately awaits its new Keynes” (Har ris and Davidson 2010: 225). Nevertheless, globalisation,
as understood by politicians, policy makers, academicians, and the public has failed to satisfy its
expectations and promises made by its advocates – as Polanyi predicted in The Great
Transformation, further stating that the failure of globalisation to deliver on its promises is
driving the rise of nationalism and protectionism across the globe. Contrary to Hayek’s
88
assessments, financial globalisation has proved that it is market fundamentalism, not the
regulatory state, that has led the world into an era of greater authoritarianism – in the USA,
Central East Europe, India, and China . The rise in inequality
is one of the main drivers of the
grievance of the middle class in the West, combined with th e moving of productive jobs to
countries with lower wages, as well as increased levels of immigration. All these developments
have been blamed on processes of globalization.
Nobel prize-winning economists, Stiglitz, and Krugman, while remaining supporters of
expanding trade and transnational integration, have on numerous occasions called for greater
financial regulation and attention to global inequalities. Krugman suggests the global slump can
be fixed, at least in part, with public works’ spending: “The a nswer, almost surely, is good old
Keynesian fiscal stimulus” (Harris and Davidson 2010: 217).
At first, it would seem preposterous that the administration of G.W. Bush, led by the most right wing president in living memory, took the unprecedented step of pursuing a form of “financial
socialism” (Taylor et al. 2009), rescuing private finance with public finance (Watson 2010: 245).
The Obama administration continued where the previous administration, which is the most to
blame for the situation, had already taken off.
However, in 2017, after the results of the good old fiscal stimulus used in coping with the
Great Recession have been known, the real question remains: Has anything substantial changed
in the regulations of the world’s most prominent Western eco nomies and especially their obese
financial sectors, which have been the cradles of the crisis, ruining millions of jobs, causing panic
on the financial and real-estate markets, making hundreds of thousands of families homeless, and
still mostly been able to survive (or even become richer) thanks to the tax -payers’ money from
that same miracle-working Keynesian fiscal stimulus? This state of denial, also known as
“business as usual” as if the Great Recession never happened and there are no prospects that it
will happen again: “The truly remarkable feature of the Great Recession, though, is not its
dramatic global scope or the speed with which it has unfolded, but how little constructive reform
response it has elicited from the leaders of the source countries for this global economic crisis.”
What raises most concerns is the following: “We are hardly witness to a ‘New Deal’ of some leftist
dreams, not even one “right sized” for the shallower depths of the Great Recession” (Mayer 2015).
Vanaik (2013: 210) also warned of the more or less back to “business as usual”: “Indeed,
despite the several crises that have peppered the neoliberal era, culminating most recently in the
‘Great Recession’ globally, it is ‘business as usual’. Those calling for an international mo netary
managerialism of a serious kind and not just for greater and better ‘regulation of the world
financial system’ remain a small minority among decision makers and shapers.”
After Brexit and Trump – a rhetorical question should be posed: “Are New Deals of any kind
89
bound to happen, and was ‘business as usual’ (for the financial sectors and elites of the West,
after the Great Recession) maybe the key factor that made these developments possible?” Brexit
and Trump can be perceived as reactions of the demos in two significant states, one formerly
dominant globally; the other currently hegemonic (albeit being challenged). Both powers were
salient promoters of free trade ideologies, open borders, and an unstable international financial
system.
The only possib le positive features of these developments are the “shake -ups” these
have caused to the transnational elites of the USA and Europe.
Hence by 2025, six emerging economies —Brazil, China, India, Indonesia, South Korea, and
Russia—will collectively account for about one-half of global growth (Yifu Lin and Dailami 2011:
30), the real question for the West, and especially the U.S.A., as a still dominant state, remains –
how to keep and try to raise the standard of living, while at the same time cope with increase d
productivity and lower production expenses of the emerging economies. Trump’s promises of
protectionism, i.e. keeping and returning “US jobs” to America, respectively, attempt to address
these realities. Although it has one key flaw – in an internationalized economy, which has been,
promoted from the West, if not by power of “peaceful persuasion” and regulations that favour the
developed economies of the West , then by force, there are no guaranteed “US jobs” or “UK jobs”.
There are only capitalists and t he regulations of the states that should limit the potentially
hazardous effects of capitalism’s search for profits. It is precisely in that aspect that the elites of
the most powerful Western states have ultimately failed.
Brexit and Trump: False Setback s to Neoliberal Geopolitics?
At present we can still witness a continuous success of neoliberalism and neoliberal
geopolitics, although its demise has been prognosticated due to the Great Recession, and
consequently the revival of Keynesianism in the economic science. Keynesianism has indeed been
the last resort of non -Keynesian economic theorists every time market dogmas fail; the state takes
the role of stabilizer of the banking sector, and the economy in general. Despite these well -known,
historical recurrences, the spatial practice of neoliberal geopolitics, at the insistence of its
ideologues, prospers: the mantra of “free markets”, a minor interventionist role of the state in the
economy, free trade agreements and so forth (Kurecic 2016: 14). With some minor, however not
very functional exceptions, mainly located in Latin America (e.g. Venezuela), neoliberal
capitalism still thrives in the majority of the world’s regions, and risks overwhelming those final
oases of the functional welfare state (Scandinavia, Germany, Austria, France , and Benelux i.e. the
developed states of continental Europe), with other parts of world already incorporated. Further
deterioration of workers’ rights, especially of the blue -collar middle and low paid workers, the
90
ones who proved essential in sending Tr ump to the White House and voted to pull the United
Kingdom (hereafter: the UK) out of the European Union (hereafter: the EU), has to be expected.
The masses of White (this is important, due to the role of the immigration in Brexit and Trump
campaigns, respectively), primarily working class or retired Britons and Americans and parts of
petit-bourgeoisie, respectively, were faced with a choice between two types of oligarchies, one
supporting free trade and globalization and against restricting immigration, t he other seeking more
protectionism and strict restrictions to immigration. In 2016, a certain demographic of White
voters, when faced with choice between “Leave” and “Remain”, Clinton and Trump, respectively,
overwhelmingly chose the type of oligarchy tha t promised to protect their jobs and/or pensions.
This near tragic, if not comic outcome suggests the levels of disappointment with the transnational
capitalist oligarchy/class (the TNC), that has ruled them for decades. Instead of choosing the ones
that have promised to change the social relations and restrict the power of the oligarchy, they
have simply backed the other type of oligarchy.
It is clear, either from the rise of populists and/or voter abstention, that the bourgeois state,
invented to serve the interests of the bourgeoisie (at present day, primarily neoliberal capitalists,
the TNC etc.) legitimized through “democracy” (in most aspects reduced to the fact that a voter
can choose between a bigger and a lesser evil every four years while his/her e conomic freedom is
reduced constantly), has been losing its attractiveness. As Rancière (1998: 113) posed: “Marx’s
once scandalous thesis that governments are simple business agents for international capital is
today an obvious fact on which ‘liberals’ and ‘socialists’ agree.” Such political inertia has also
been considered as post-democratic, with citizens disengaged and estranged from political and
economic processes that eliminate genuine social and political antagonism. This neutralisation
keeps, or at least kept, the liberal democratic edifice unchallenged (Crouch 2004). Historians have
already spoken about the similarities with the 1930s Europe and warned that the events from the
Great Depression era could be repeated, though other comparisons point to earlier populist phases
in the US history.
In that context, the implications of Brexit are yet to be seen, though it can
be argued that contestation and grounds for being antagonised have been revived. The UK has
clearly stated that it wants to pursue f ree trade (the point is reiterated later in this paper); with
the main difference comprised in the fact that now it would make its own free -trade agreements
with states and free-trade areas, independently of the EU. The grounds of contestation and
challenging the post-democratic state were also revived through Trump’s negative views towards
free trade and protectionist intentions, some of this having already taken form with the US
withdrawal from the Trans -Pacific Partnership (TPP). Its consequences, howeve r, are still not
quantifiable. The second key issue that decided the US elections, besides opposition to free trade
and offshoring of US jobs, is immigration and undocumented labour. US economy depends to a
91
large degree on low -paid legal and illegal immigr ants, mainly originating from Latin America.
Why Brexit and what Kind of Brexit
Brexit is a product of two main factors: the neoliberalisation of the British society, and the
rising influx of immigration, both EU and non -EU originated. It is intriguing that the UK was the
only current EU member state that did not impose any transitional period for free movement of
labour force after the 2004 “Big Bang” EU enlargement, therefore opening its labour market to
the workforce from new member states: “In the second half of the 2000s, net migration to the UK
fluctuated between 300-400 thousand per year, reaching a peak of over 400 thousand just before
the onset of the 2008 financial crisis” (Gietel -Basten 2016: 674).
The UK, as a liberal market economy which has consistently promoted this pro -market vision
of the EU, has exposed its citizens more than most other member states to the upheavals this
process of marketization has generated (Hopkin, 2017: 466). Brexit, a protectionist response, can
be best understood as part of what Polanyi (1944) described as a ‘double movement’: the
imposition of the market logic in ever more areas of social life, followed by a protective counter movement to subordinate the market to political constraints.
The neoliberalisation of the British society, whose beginnings can be traced to the Thatcher
era, has rendered divisions through UK society along lines of age, education, regional affiliation,
and sectors of economic activity. The New Labour governments of Blair and Brown continued
most of the policies from the Thatcher era, visible even in spatial policies, such as gentrification
of the parts of the cities and the deregulation of housing markets . It has also left its imprint on
other aspects of social life: “This counter offensive by capital and state actors, including the
emasculation of progressive local and city governments and assault on trade union power
(especially in the USA and the UK), allied to the flight of capital away from the industrial cities
of the north to low wage locations elsewhere, represented a response to an upsurge in class politics”
(Harvey 2005). The results of the divisions are visible in the results of the vote on Brexit. The
groups that supported Brexit the most were the elderly, blue -collar working or retired people,
mostly living in Northern and Central England, and completely untouched (except in the negative
context) by the financialization and globalization of Southern England – London and the City
particularly: “Britain’s Gini coefficient, the measure of its inequality, has risen from about 0.26
in 1979 to over 0.4 today. It has divided Britain geographically into a prosperous London and
South East, an especially depressed North with its deindustrialized run -down cities, and a mildly
more social democratic Scotland able to avoid some of the worst of the social breakdown visited
on the north of England, with the rest of the country performing indifferently” (Desai and Freeman
92
2016: 15).
Hopkin also warns that “nationalism is not the only poss ible expression of social anxiety at
the upheavals wrought by inadequately regulated markets, and the Brexit vote was preceded by
dramatic changes in the Labour Party with the election of Jeremy Corbyn, who has articulated
anti-market and anti-austerity sentiments on the left. His lukewarm endorsement of the Remain
campaign showed that Euroscepticism was not confined to the nationalist right” (Hopkin 2017:
466).
The protection of the National Health (NHS) system and the implied promise that 350 million
pounds per week could be injected into the NHS instead of being sent to “Brussels”, along with
anti-immigration fears were probably decisive among the elderly and mature, blue -collar
population of Northern and Central England, and Wales: “Remarkable to many ou tsiders, the NHS
is almost a religion in the UK; its “overstretching” —especially by foreigners—presented as a
blasphemy” (Gietel-Basten 2016: 678). Such a claim was disavowed by the current British Prime
Minister, Theresa May, although she never promised i t. Nevertheless, the current foreign secretary
Boris Johnson, who was part of the Leave campaign, was very happy to make reassurances that a
“hard Brexit” would be in the offing .
As Clarke and Newman have outlined, the Vote Leave Campaign emphasized theme s of
betrayal and alienation stemming from three groups:
•
The metropolitan–cosmopolitan liberal elite (out of touch Europhiles, the architects of
political correctness, insulated by wealth and social position from the effects of Europeanization);
•
The European elite (embodied in German Chancellor Merkel but more frequently invoked
as the Brussels bureaucrats strangling British liberty);
•
The migrants, enabled by Europe’s free movement rules and consuming scarce resources
(jobs, housing, welfare, and othe r public services)” (Clarke and Newman 2017: 107).
Why Trump?
The groups in the British society, which felt they were left behind by the globalization,
financialization, the City, and Brussels, made “their voice heard”. Such themes were repeated in
the 2016 US presidential election . The key for winning the support in the “battleground states”
was speaking as the voice of the same forgotten, blue -collar workers, whose relative position in
the society was declining. Like the Brexiteers, Trump correctly ide ntified the grievance of the
White, mostly blue-collar majority
in the battleground states of the US Great Lakes Region
(Ohio, Michigan, Wisconsin, Minnesota and Pennsylvania) as well as Florida, where the
anti(Latino)-immigrant views he constantly expres sed during the campaign found a fertile ground.
93
Although Trump did not win in Minnesota, the victories in all the other battleground states brought
him the victory (Kokotovic and Kurecic, 2017).
The Trump and Leave campaigns conformed to Kazin’s (1995) des cription of populism: “a
language whose speakers conceive of ordinary people as a noble assemblage not bounded narrowly
by class; view their elite opponents as self -serving and undemocratic; and seek to mobilize the
former against the latter” (Wilson 2017: 544).
Many blue-collar, middle-class voters cared little about plutocracy and financial capitalism
running through the US main parties, as well as reactions of the other groups in the demos, such
as Occupy Wall Street, which they certainly did not support . However, the message of the
Republican candidate Trump and his anti -free trade, job losing, anti-immigrant stance was one
they could understand (Walley 2017: 232). The reaction of the demos potentially represented a
setback for neoliberalism and transnat ional capitalist class. Nevertheless, as will be discussed
later, it is difficult to imagine any improvements in workers’ rights, especially for blue -collar,
middle- and low-paid workers, who are exactly those who elected Mr Trump to the White House.
This has been compounded by the absence of a clear, strong economic agenda from the Democrats,
despite the Obama Administration’s efforts to pull the US economy out of the worst recession in
over 70 years. This narrative was lacking in the campaign, replaced by conspicuous targets of
economic culpability (the neo -liberal system) across the electorate.
Hillary Clinton, by virtue
of that, did poorly in crucial battleground states in 2016, effectively breaching her “firewall” in
the US North-east (Wu 2017). Trump’s vigorous messages against the free -trade and illegal
immigration resonated and offered possibilities for a genuine change. The message behind these
narratives is further explored in the next section.
Populist “revolutionary” narratives
The rhetoric in the 2016 campaigns that characterised Brexit and the ascendancy of Donald
Trump in the United States, critiqued and challenged the liberal free market assumptions that has
girded the global economy. What such challenges also incorporated was an Occupy Wall Street
narrative retooled and refurbished for the offensive against the neoliberal establishment: that the
system’s very notions needed challenging.
According to Brent Budowsky, former aide to former
Sen. Lloyd Bentsen and former Chief Deputy Majority Wh ip Bill Alexander, the 2016 campaign
saw a series of vectors operating in the electoral scape, dramatically challenging orthodox party
structures.
“There is a direct lineage between the Occupy Wall Street movement, the enormous
and historic contribution that Sen. Bernie Sanders (I -Vt.) made in the 2016 presidential campaign,
and what some call the progressive Tea Party movement that, along with other Americans, has
94
besieged Republican officeholders at town meetings across America” (Budowsky 2017).
As with the challenge posed by the forces of the Left and Right in Europe during the 1930s in
the form of communism and fascism, social discontent was mobilised as a response to the
symptoms of the system (unstable capitalism). Totalitarian fascism, however, won o ut, entailing,
a refusal on the part of the power holders to alter the nature of social relations and processes of
capital itself. George Orwell and Walter Benjamin had, at stages, observed that fascism’s very
premise is not merely its strongman, cult obse ssion, with the State rendered organic and
reactionary: it relied upon the very fact that capitalism would only be tempered in a limited way.
Economic relations, in other words, would remain conservative. Benjamin would go even further,
insisting that fascism was revolutionary in one fundamental sense: its association with aesthetics
(Benjamin 1974).
The role played by Bernie Sanders, and piecemeal efforts to incorporate his agenda into
Trump’s platform, demonstrated the appeal posed by the other side of t he divide.
In the UK, the
same could be said with Jeremy Corbyn and the re -emergence of traditional labour values,
emphasising greater state intervention in the economy and deficit spending.
The Canadian
newspaper tycoon Conrad Black, persistently defend ing the nature of the capitalism, suggested
that these movements were unmistakably the result of poor leadership. “Though many do not
formulate it in this way, the rise of Trump and the Sanders challenge show that the heavy failings
of the Bush-Clinton-Obama joint regency will not be accepted (Black 2016: 44).
What mattered
was that such candidates as Sanders and Trump had a common target, at least till Sanders fell out
of the race and reneged on much of what he had said. (This point, it is argued here, is a salient
one in suggesting change as “no -change”.)
Clinton loomed as the establishment figure, near totemic in terms of target and object of
obloquy.
Ironically, while Trump had been every much the “nasty’ capitalist in his casino and
property ventures that Clinton was portrayed as being, the former First Lady and Secretary of
State became a supreme alibi about the ills of international capitalism. The release of the Podesta
emails and those of the Democratic National Committee by WikiLeaks showed Clinto n to be soft
on reforming the banking sector after the 2008 Global Financial Crisis.
Despite the deep ironies
of a property tycoon casting aspersions against the Democrat candidate for being accommodating
to plutocrats and the banking sector, the inroads made by Trump were effective.
The challenge of Bannonism
In the United States, the America First notion of Donald Trump unmistakably suggests a return
a period when that particular name was also used: prior to the US entry into the Second World
95
War.
The ironic reversal of the term here is that the United States, far from showing any desire
to move to a “normalcy” marked by the isolationism of the inter -war years, is simply posing for
a more unilateralist pose for international action in international mar kets and the geopolitics.
It
suggests a fear that hegemonic credentials are being challenged. (Trump having accused the
Chinese of predatory currency manipulation.)
Steve Bannon, briefly security White House advisor and the Breibart advisor most influential
in setting the tone of Trump’s campaign, would be undoubtedly familiar with the historical
appellation of “America First”. What matters to Bannon and the recently departed deputy White
House advisor Sebastian Gorka, is the notion that the west is at war with Islam (Rose 2017).
These forms of supposedly radical challenges betray a conservative, rather than revolutionary
perspective, the policy of Make America Great Again (MAGA).
But while he insists on a return
to power politics as reality, Bannon also sports a strong anti -elite, anti-corporate perspective.
To that end, he has made it a crucial aspect of Trump’s rhetoric to target the predations of the un elected agents of boardroom, corporate globalisation. As Bannon explained to The Economist, an
establishment paper of economic opinion, “You are the enemy.”
The reason was simple enough:
“You support a radical idea, free trade. I mean it, that is a radical idea.”
The economic agenda of re -ordering of challenging the unaccountable globalists also comes
in step with fighting a rival religious world view, the need to re -impose Judeo-Christian values
against Islam, deemed by Bannon to be, “not a religion of peace but submission.” (Shuham 2017).
“Yes, it was jihadi terrorism,” argued the former Trump advisor in describing the attacks of
September 11, 2001 on the United States, “but more importantly, that event was linked to
communism. Because al-Qaeda, ISIS, all of thes e groups are totalitarians – either you surrender
to them or they will kill you” (Jaffe 2017).
What America First, however, entails are a reassertion of borders (notably against Mexico),
and a sympathy for shades of authoritarianism (the sympathetic respon se to Russia’s president
Vladimir Putin). It also suggests assertiveness, brashness, independence, a superpower ’s effort to
keep the mantle against any potential challengers.
This same hyper-nationalist rationale had similar forms across the Atlantic, thou gh it was
configured somewhat differently.
The figures who led the Brexit campaign could hardly be said
to be Bannonites from the perspective of opposing global free trade interests or financial
oligopolies.
Their concern, rather, was that such trade and market values be parochial and self -
serving rather than collectively corporatist. Dominant emphasis was placed on the social
consequences of an open trade bloc: the principle of free movement.
Critics such as Nigel Farage
of the UK Independence Party, an d Boris Johnson of the Conservatives, insisted that the UK had
not merely become a place of asphyxiating migration typified by traffic jams and high crime rates,
96
but one for which the State had to compensate Europe for (Rawlinson 2014).
Never mind the
fact that such mobility had, in fact, supplied much needed labour to the UK economy in
unprecedented levels, be it in low -skill jobs, to those in the research and tertiary sector.
Avoiding Revolution and Change
The very fact that Brexit is being steered by a former Remain figure, Theresa May, says much
about the central point that promised changes have been more superficial than not.
A system is
shocked in order to return to a semblance of what went before. The capitalist status quo, however
ruffled and battered, is to be maintained.
May has made it clear that she wishes to embrace the
trade and market agenda inherent in the current system (free trade, cheaper goods and services
despite being outside the EU), while altering the social welfare and human rig hts aspect inherent
in EU membership.
The perceived negative effects of free trade, in other words, are not going
to be redressed, because there are, in the opinion of May’s officials, none to speak of.
Indeed,
she has promised, very much in hope that Br itain will find new markets that the neo -liberal agenda
will continue its way.
The appointment of Boris Johnson, a key Brexiteer and the present -day sitting Prime Minister,
may well have suggested a challenge to the orthodox approaches to the market logic of the EU,
and its policies. It actually signalled the reverse. Britain was to become more entrepreneurial than
ever, to engage, as it were, the markets in a way that was far more aggressive than it would have
otherwise been.
Indeed, Johnson insists that the system is going to be improved by Britain
looking in, rather than being a member looking out: “with the help of the excellent negotiators on
both sides I have no doubt that we will get a great deal that preserves and even enhances the
frictionless movement of goods that is in the interests of both sides of the Channel; and I am sure
that will get a solution that does nothing to undermine the interests of London’s financial sector,
because the real rival of the City are not in Paris or Frankfurt; they ar e in Hong Kong and New
York and Singapore – and in the end I think everyone understands that London is an asset for the
entire continent (Johnson 2017).
Much in the way of Britannia unchained, if not reclaimed, opportunities supposedly await,
according to the Brexit managers, in the form of agreements in Asia, Africa and Australasia.
These do not suggest a revolution in the global capitalist system as its advancement, its logical
progress by being rid of intrusive regulatory frameworks. Countries of the C ommonwealth will be
wooed.
In a Raisina Dialogue event held in January 2017, Foreign Secretary Boris Johnson
insisted that the UK -India relationship would be conducive to a free trade agreement, suggesting
that Brexit had little to do with a parochial dis pirited backlash against the effects of globalisation.
97
On the contrary, he is insisting on encouraging it.
The relationship with India, amongst other
countries, needed to be “turbocharged”.
In the USA, Sanders promised a revolution, only to succumb to th e Clinton machine in the
way that previous candidates had done (Ted Kennedy in 1980; Jesse Jackson in 1984 and 1988;
Dennis Kucinich in 2004 and John Edwards in 2008). That reality became a bitter one: democratic
socialism would be, if not dismissed altoge ther, then nipped, trimmed, and packaged for electoral
advantage.
“The agenda of the Democratic Party,” as Barry notes with conviction, “is determined
by its corporate financiers (Finger 2016). There was little chance of breaking with the elephant,
the ass or the working class, and Jason Schulman wished that genuine Marxists step outside
Democratic Party politics to establish its own party (Schulman 2016: 12). It is certainly true that
Sanders managed to sanitise such terms as “socialist” and socialism pro viding US socialists “an
opening”, as Schulman, terms it, not open previously (Schulman 2016: 10). And to take advantage
of the Democratic primary system to capitalise in creating the conditions for a separate political
party, in appearance, seemed to be g athering pace.
But it was simply not to be.
common ground was identified with the Trump campaign.
That said,
“On this one central issue – Bernie
Sanders and Donald Trump have a surprisingly similar message: The American economy has failed”
(Zakaria 2016: 14).
He also played into the image of the public relations magic, retaining Revolution Message to
craft his image, attempting to draw out a voter base with a smaller donations message that might
decorporatize funding interests in favour of more “working class” sources and small donors.
The
language of his campaign team suggested the possibility that a revolution had, in fact begun,
though in many ways it seemed to participate, mimic if not ape the very same defects of the system
he wished to alter.
Cons ider the remarks of Zack Exley of the Sanders campaign: “The campaign
is changing people’s lives and changing everyone’s idea of what’s possible. No matter what
happens, people are going to keep fighting for the political revolution that Bernie helped us s tart.”
For Exley, the fire, once started, would burn. How it would do so, amidst the “organizing teams,
structures, and processes” was less clear (Capehart 2016).
After the bruising primaries, and Clinton’s victory successful nomination, Sanders responde d
with the Our Revolution movement, suggesting during its launch to an audience in Burlington that
the centre of US politics had moved to the left, and “seven key ballot initiatives” along with “over
a hundred candidates” could be backed.
None of this cou ld conceal an internal revolt by such
figures as Tim Canova, a congressional challenger with Sanders’ backing, who suggested prior to
the launch that he had been left high and dry (Weigel and Wagner 2016). Eight of the initial fifteen
organisers of Our Revolution departed before the launch, citing the arrival of former campaign
manager Jack Weaver was the last nail in the revolutionary coffin. Another revolution and attempt
98
at reform risked being stymied.
The repeated conversations about revolution eventual ly become matters of absorption into the
establishment structure, tempering, if not subjugating the indignation that was initially meant to
inspire it.
As Capehart (2016) suggested, “those fired -up folks go home – and stay there for the
next four years.” Scholarship by Steve Phillip, utilising material from the Office of the Clerk of
the US House of Representatives, shows the pattern of euphoria, apathy and disillusionment,
examining Democrat ballots from their initial highpoints of enthusiastic casting to a significantly
reduced turn-up by the next election.
In 2008, 65 million Democrats cast ballots for House
candidates, a number that shrank dramatically in the 2010 mid -term elections (39 million).
Republicans capitalised, and the Tea Party made its own tilt at revolutionary fervour. In 2014, the
Democrat voters who turned up to vote for the Senate in the mid -term elections had fallen by 43
percent: down by 15 million (Phillip 2016).
The year 1848 as a parallel
In the context of revolutions that fail, or are, in part, tempered by the establishment, one
historical parallel is useful.
The populist revolutions taking place in 2016 within the western
democratic context were to have a parallel result to those of 1848 – an attempt initially undertaken
to alter a system, only to see a re -imposition of absolutism and reactionary, monarchical
conservatism. Instead of getting regimes of true accountability and constitutionalism, uprisings
were put down, and the fire of reform snuffed.
This traditional view, and one that still has some
currency, was advanced by Karl Marx himself (Marx 1973).
This did not take place.
The response of force was unmistakable: Louis -Eugène Cavaignac’s
efforts against insurgents in June 1848 signalled the mood.
Alfred, prince vo n Windischgrätz,
obliged with similar actions in Prague on June 17 that year.
Russian intervention took place in
Hungary, while Lombardy and Vienna saw Austrian military efforts to reverse the order. Liberals
were left dispirited and demoralised, though i t should be noted that certain countries (Denmark,
Belgium, the Netherlands) did see a reform of institutions without bloodshed.
But Italy,
Germany and Austria saw a return of absolute monarchy, a point backed by a clergy and middle
class suspicious about the excesses of reformist fervour.
What mattered was the striking
abandonment of concessions that had been promised in the wake of the 1848 revolutions. The
Convention of Olmütz in 1850 saw a reactionary counter: the withdrawal of concessions linked to
crucial liberties, including universal manhood suffrage, press liberties and freedom of assembly.
The promise of reform, in other words, became not just a stifling but a reversal, a consolidation
of state power in the face of change, usually buttressed by t he support of a threatened middle
99
class and the fears of the clerical authorities.
The spectre of socialism was haunting enough to
warrant the restoration of monarchical systems of government, a point the traditionalists had some
reason fearing: Marx and Engels had, in distinction to their socialist colleagues, insisted on the
destruction of monarchical absolutism as an essential pre -requisite to realising their vision of
proletarian bliss. Sperber makes the salient point that the authors in The Communist Manifesto
(1847) go even further in insisting that a socio -economic socialist order would require stringent
political revolution and a Jacobin republic (Sperber 2005: 86). The danger to the traditionalists
was all too real.
While it would be inaccurate to dismiss the efforts of 1848 as entirely fruitless (legacies exist
in their honour across the continent), the European revolutions provide an ample international
example of a counter-movement that becomes absorbed by the promise of change for populist
causes.
The revolution is tamed; its more revolutionary promises are hemmed in and curtailed.
But it also shows another more direct response: heavy -handed, fearful, and directed by the organs
of police and military.
The changes promised in the context of Trum p and Sanders in the United States; and by the
populist upsurge in Britain, also had a focus on liberties, though there, the focus was regenerative:
to attack the plutocracy, the corporatocracy, the nastiness of the establishment swamp that needs
draining. Hillary Clinton became the greatest target in the approaches of both candidates.
In Britain, it was the restoration of liberties, an idiosyncratic notion when considered
alongside the fact that the Human Rights Act was a derivation of both UK and Europe an legal
principles.
Trump spoke about the restoration of rights and security of US citizens fearful of
immigration, a theme similar echoed in the campaign of Nigel Farage in the UK. Promises on
deportation (both in the UK and in the US) and the construct ion of a vast wall preventing porous
movements through the Mexican -US border, were also made, while UKIP issued flyers and leaflets
through the constituency depicting hordes coming through with menace from Turkey in the event
that it might be admitted to t he EU. In Britain’s case, there would be promised change (May’s
idea of Brexit entailed the colours of the Union Jack, a patriotic varnish), but the content of this
is unclear, with a stance so vague as to be infuriating to the voter base.
Electoral losse s suffered
in the 2017 British election also suggest that voters were far from convinced that the prime
minister would be a figure for genuine radical change.
This feeling was also replicated by EU
Representatives unconvinced and confused in equal parts a bout the Brexit negotiating strategy of
May and her team.
The more belligerent Trump may well have spoken about draining the swamp of Washington
corruption, but such a metaphor does little to actually remove the water altogether. What merely
happens in this context is populating the swamp with one’s favoured confidantes, be they friends
100
or family advisors.
The Trump family has exposed the capitalist system in such spectacular
fashion, going so far as to admit that the presidency is not inconsistent with th e promotion of
personal wealth creation. His very election showing that a billionaire with business interests can
still become a servant of the people.
To that end, the system does not so much improve and
reveal itself as disfigured, defeating the democra tic project.
In another sense, Trump has so far not succeeded.
Mirage, image, and perception have given
the impression that change is occurring, “reform” taking place. Promoting himself as the anti establishment figure keen on altering the landscape of im migration, imposing restrictions from
Muslim majority countries, he has been a failed reformer. His attempts at deportation have failed
to manifest in a genuinely effective way.
Internal resistance in the United States, notably from
some states and the efforts of sanctuary cities, have made efforts difficult. Another important
feature to note is that deportations were already at a high level in the last few years of the Obama
administration suggesting that Trump had done little to realise his supposedly mo re muscular
response.
Conclusions
These three years have seen challenges to the international capitalism system that suggested
a challenge to its very basis. They have taken place in countries had the forefront of the
globalising, neo-liberal narrative of open market and minimal government interference.
But
Brexit and the era of Trump suggests that such processes depoliticise citizen participation, falsely
using citizen rage to convey a false sense of reform.
The emergence of such figures as Trump,
Sanders and Corbyn posed a return of rel evant politics, a form of “forgotten people” discourse at
times powerful and relentless. But Trump’s victory in the US, and the Brexit ascendency in Britain,
point to an absence of genuine radical change in the way the State relates to the international
capitalist system.
Indeed, there is a suggestion that the free market should be, if one is to take
the perspective of the May government, encouraged further. Across the channel, the post democratic illusion has incarnated itself in the Macron government, wh ich has more or less
surrendered to the idea that to succeed and prosper, France must not so much disentangle itself
from the European system and entangle itself further, embracing a more aggressive market -based
agenda.
French firms are to be encouraged in their competitiveness; an inflexible French labour
market is waiting to be reformed in terms of work hours and an inflexible hire -and-fire scheme
(Maher 2017). The idea, reminiscent of ideological defences of communism, was not the ideology
itself, but its imperfect application.
His case against the US president is simple: we are not to
101
make the US great again, but the World great. We still await a new consensus, and most certainly,
the new Keynes of Rodrik’s consideration. But antagonism and civic debat e, the sort that
interrogates liberal democratic institutional behaviour, has returned.
References
Baker, D., 2016. Rigged: How Globalization and the Rules of the Modern Economy Were
Structured to Make the Rich Richer. Washington, D.C.: Centre for Economic and Policy Research.
Benjamin, W., 1974. Theorien des deutschen Faschismus. Frankfurt am Main: Suhrkamp.
Black, C., 2016. Political Vacancies. New Criterion, (Sept.): 36 -44.
Budowsky, B., 2017. Sanders, Occupy Wall Street, and the liberal Tea Party surge. The Hill, 3
March, http://thehill.com/blogs/pundits -blog/campaign/322171-sanders-occupy-wall-street-andthe-liberal-tea-party-surge [accessed 21 May 2018].
Capehart, J., 2016. Democrats are not good at the political revolution thing. Washington Po st, 12
April.
Clarke, J., Newman, J., 2017. People in this country have had enough of experts: Brexit and the
paradoxes of populism. Critical Policy Studies, 11(1): 101 -116.
Crouch, C., 2004. Post-Democracy. Cambridge: Polity Press.
Cumbers, A., Helms, G., Swanson, K., 2010. Class, Agency, and Resistance in the Old Industrial
City. Antipode, 42(1): 46 -73.
Desai, R., Freeman, A., 2016. Brexit, the City and the Crisis of Conservatism. Valdai Discussion
Club Report: 1-19.
Ferguson, N., 2016. The Populism Bomb: The Trump Phenomenon Explained. Hoover Digest, (3).
Finger, B., 2016. Further Reflections on the Sanders Campaign. New Politics blog, 26 May.
Fox, L., 2018. In this new year, let’s resolve to capitalise on the huge trade and investment
opportunities
of
Brexit.
Conservative
Home,
[online]
1
January.
Available
at:
https://www.conservativehome.com/platform/2018/01/liam -fox-in-this-new-year-lets-resolve-tocapitalise-on-the-huge-trade-and-investment-opportunities-of-brexit.html
[accessed
10
July
2018].
Gietel-Basten, S., 2016. Why Brexit? The Toxic Mix of Immigration and Austerity. Population
and Development Review, 42(4): 673 -680.
102
Harris, J., Davidson, C., 2010. Obama: The New Contours of Power. Perspectives on Global
Development & Technology, (9): 211 -231.
Harvey, D., 2005. A Brief History of Neoliberalism. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
Hedges, C., 2016. It’s Worse Than You Think. [online] 14 November. Information Clearing House
(orig.
in
Truth
Dig).
Available
at:
http://www.informationclearinghouse.info/article45841.htm#.WCpCf9I4vAA.wordpress
[accessed 23 July 2017].
Hodkinson, S., 2011. Housing Regeneration and the Private Finance Initiative in England:
Unstitching the Neoliberal Urban Straitjacket. Antipode, 43(2 ): 358-383.
Hopkin, J., 2017. When Polanyi met Farage: Market fundamentalism, economic nationalism, and
Britain’s exit from the European Union. The British Journal of Politics and International Relations,
19(3): 465-478.
Jaffe, G., 2017. Gorka’s views on Islam drive Trump’s security agenda. The Washington Post, 21
February.
Johnson, B., The 2017 Lowy Lecture. Sydney Town Hall, [online] 27 July. Transcript available
at:
https://www.lowyinstitute.org/publications/2017 -lowy-lecture-uk-foreign-secretary-boris-
johnson [accessed 24 July 2018].
Kazin, M., 1995. The Populist Persuasion: An American History. New York: Basic Books.
Kerr, C., 2018. Open for business: Liam Fox charms China by welcoming investment after US
rejection. The Express, 3 January.
Kokotovic, F., Kurecic, P., 2017. An Empirical Analysis of Voting Patterns in four Battleground
States of the 2016 US Presidential Election. Teorija in Praksa (Theory and Practice), 54(5): 747 764.
Kurecic, P., 2016. Social movements and Neoliberal Geopolitics. Revist a ORBE, 1(7): 14-20.
Lovett, W. A., 2008. Beyond Doha: Multipolar Challenges for a Globalized World. Tulane Journal
of International and Comparative Law, 17(1): 3 -37.
Maher, R., 2017. What can Europe expect from a Macron government? The Conversation, 20 Ju n.
Marx, K., 1973. The Revolutions of 1848. Harmondsworth: Penguin Books.
Mayer, B. L., 2015. The Hegemon That Failed. [online] September 27. Available at:
http://gergconference.ca/wp -content/uploads/2015/09/Mayer-Bradley-The-Hegemon-ThatFailed.pdf [accessed 24 January 2016].
Pettifor, A., 2017a. “The neoliberal road to autocracy”, International Politics and Society, [online]
17 May. Available at: http://www.ips -journal.eu/opinion/article/show/the -neoliberal-road-toautocracy-2046/ [accessed 13 August 2019 ].
Pettifor, A., 2017b. Brexit and its consequences. Globalizations, 14(1): 127 -132.
103
Phillip, S., 2016. Brown is the New White: How the demographic revolution has created a new
American majority. New York: New Press.
Polanyi, K., 1944. The Great Transforma tion: The Political and Economic Origins of Our Time.
Boston: Beacon Press.
Rancière, J., 1998. Disagreement. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press.
Rawlinson, K., 2014. Farage blames immigration for traffic on M4 after no -show at UKIP
reception. The Guardian, 8 December.
Rose, F., 2017. I Told Steve Bannon: ‘We are not at war with Islam.’ He Disagreed. New
Perspectives Quarterly, 34(2): 17 -20.
Schulman, J., 2016. Bernie Sanders and the Dilemma of the Democratic ‘Party’. New Politics
15(4): 7-12.
Shuham, M., 2017. Talking Points Memo: Spicer Sidesteps Question on Steve Bannon’s Past
Comments about Islam. Talking Points Memo Blog, New York, Newstex, 1 February.
Sperber, J., 2005. The European Revolutions, 1848 -1851. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Taylor, P. J. et al., 2009. The way we were: Command -and-control centres in the global space economy on the eve of the 2008 geo -economic transition. Environment and Planning A, (41): 7 12.
The Economist. 2017. The Future of Bannonism, [online] 25 August [ accessed 26 June 2018].
Vanaik, A., 2013. Capitalist Globalisation and the Problem of Stability: enter the new quintet and
other emerging powers. Third World Quarterly, 34(2): 194 -213.
Wallerstein, I., 2010. North -East Asia in the Multipolar World System. Asian Perspective, 34 (4):
191-205.
Walley, C. J., 2017. Trump's Election and the “White Working Class”: What We Missed. American
Ethnologist, 44(2): 231-236.
Watson, A., 2010. US Hegemony and the Obama Administration: Towards a New World Order?
Antipode, 42(2): 242-247.
Weigel, D., Wagner, J., 2016. Bernie Sanders launches ‘Our Revolution’ with electoral targets –
and a few critics left behind. Washington Post, 25 August.
WikiLeaks. 2017. HRC Paid Speeches. [online] Available at: https://wikileaks.org/pode staemails/emailid/927 [accessed 25 June 2018].
Wilson, G. K., 2017. Brexit, Trump and the special relationship. The British Journal of Politics
and International Relations, 19(3): 543 -557.
Wu, C., 2016. Economics and How Obama Could Have Lost the 2016 Election Too. MPRA Paper
No.
75107.
[online]
Available
at:
muenchen.de/75107/1/MPRA_paper_75107.pdf [accessed 7 January 2017].
104
https://mpra.ub.uni -
Yifu Lin, J., Dailami, M., 2011. The Coming Multipolar World Economy: Is the Developed World
Prepared? The International Economy, (Summer 2011): 30 -31.
Zakaria, F., 2016. Trump & Sanders agree on one thing: The American economy has failed. The
Enterprise, 45(32): 14-15. [online] Available at:
http://www.mirror.co.uk/news/politics/theresa -admits-350-million-pledged-10124021
18 July 2017].
105
[accessed
II.
Post Brexit and European
Integration
106
Ⅱ ― 1 Post Brexit European Integration
Bruno Dallago 1 and Steven Rosefielde 2
[ Abstract]
This article clarifies the challenge posed by Brexit for post Brexit European integration. The
principal finding is that Brexit is apt to be less disruptive than initially supposed because the EU
has the ability to respond constructively filling gaps in it s institutional setup that reduce the
system’s vulnerability to asymmetric shocks.
JEL classification: E02, E52, E61, F36, H63, H77, O52, P11, P17
1. Introduction
Five years ago, British Prime Minister David Cameron’s decision to submit the UK’s EU
membership to a referendum jolted the EU. This occurred despite the UK having secured favorable
terms for remaining in the EU (EUCO 2016), during reportedly harsh secret negotiations that
ended in February 2016. The British prime minister decided to go ahead an yway with the
referendum to strengthen his position within the conservative party because opinion polls
projected that Brexit would be rejected. The referendum took place on June 23, 2016. To many
people’s surprise, the majority voted in favor of Brexit. C ameron’s government chose to resign,
even though the referendum was consultative. The new Prime Minister Theresa May embraced
Brexit, adopting the position that “Brexit means Brexit!” Britain, she asserted would not
renegotiate the marriage contract. It wo uld divorce. May formalized her intention in a letter to
the president of the European Council, Donald Tusk, triggering Article 50 of the Treaty on the
European Union (TEU) on March 29, 2017.
After a prolonged deadlock in the British government and parliam ent, a new British
government led by prime minister Boris Johnson entered office after early general election on 12
1
br
[email protected]. Department of Economics and Management, University of Trento.
2
[email protected]. Department of Economics, University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill.
107
December 2019. 3 Following Johnson’s promise during the electoral campaign to proceed swiftly
toward Brexit, 4 Great Britain withdrew from t he European Union on 31 January 2020. This began
a transition period that is set to end on 31 December 2020, during which the UK and EU will
negotiate their future relationship. The UK remains subject to EU law and continues to be part of
the EU customs union and single market during the transition, but is no longer part of the EU's
political bodies or institutions. No British commissioner sits in the current European Commission
nor do representatives of the British government participate in common meetings , such as the
meetings of the European Council. Starting on 1 February 2020 the number and distribution of
seats in the European Parliament changed following the UK withdrawal. Seats were decreased
from 751 to 705 seats; the difference being kept in reserv e for future possible enlargements. Of
the 73 UK seats, 27 were redistributed to other member countries.
During the Covid-19 crisis, this transitory situation became contentious, since the UK had a
shifting position on being part of the EU joint procuremen t system of anti-virus medical equipment
(https://www.politico.eu/article/coronavirus -who-said-what-on-uk-nonparticipation-in-euprocurement/), while adhering to EU rulings on national financial support to fight the crisis
consequences (https://ec.europa.e u/commission/presscorner/detail/en/IP_20_603 ).
Although EU-UK negotiations on post-Brexit settlements and agreements continue, the post Brexit
European Union now has an opportunity to create a fully integrated Eurozone and deal with open
problems posed by the single market, including troublesome labor migration problems.
2. Starting Brexit, a junior black swan
There are three reasons why the British Government chose to withdraw from the European
Union. First, the majority of British voters may have believed that their wellbeing (including
economic externalities associated with local control) would be enhanced by leaving the EU; that
is, they thought that gains in liberty would outweigh losses in income. They felt that an
independent UK would expand i ts opportunities, accepting Brexit’s short -run costs for conjectured
long-term benefits.
Second, the UK and continental Europe are only weakly compatible. Their economies are
moderately integrated compared to the case of the other member countries. The UK is a typical
liberal market economy (Anglo-Saxon economy) which features distinct characteristics that make
institutional and policy cohabitation difficult as the Variety of Capitalism (VoC) approach
3
4
The first Johnson government took office on 24 July 2019 after May’s government resigned and
remained in office until 12 December 2019, the day of the early election.
https://www.ft.com/content/b5be23ba -19d0-11ea-97df-cc63de1d73f4
108
maintains (Hall and Soskice 2001) and as French president Charles de Gaulle made repeatedly
clear in early 1960s when opposing UK membership in the European Economic Community (EEC)
(https://www.france24.com/en/20191013 -did-charles-de-gaulle-foresee-brexit). Indeed, much of
the process of EU integration has been institutional and the EU setup tur ned out to be an
uncomfortable fit for the UK. Albion was strong and smart enough to obtain special status within
the EU, the most important of which was its retention of the pound as its national currency. The
UK also succeeded in slowing down the integra tion process in selective and sensitive areas,
primarily finance, fiscal matters, international and military issues. The dominant role of the City
of London in international finances was protected even in Eurozone finances (such as in the euro clearing market). 5 UK membership consequently was both welcome and challenging for the EU.
Third, the UK prefers an EU architecture that prioritizes a single market with national
autonomy in all fields, while the other countries prefer a greater degree of EU coordina tion and
control in selected fields including a single market with free labor mobility, a common currency
and convergence in fiscal behavior, although not in taxation. The UK accepts the concept of a
common market for goods, but wants restrictions on inter national labor mobility. It refuses to
relinquish the pound, 6 and objects to the increase of the EU budget, the coordination of fiscal
systems and capital market rules, even though it coordinates with the European Central Bank
(ECB). Great Britain is poli tically and economically important and strong. At the time of the
referendum its economy recovered better than the EU average from the crisis, was fairly balanced,
and its finances and currency global players. A majority of British voters considered that b eing a
member of the EU was disadvantageous and that the UK outside of the EU would benefit from
increased decision-making choice and flexibility.
The UK’s integration in the EU is looser than any other member country (Dallago 2016a). It
is only in finance where the UK has a dominant position, where Albion desires strong integration. 7
This does not include fiscal issues though, since the island of Jersey and some of its dependent
overseas territories (including the British Virgin Islands, Bermuda and the Cayman Islands) have
5
According to the Financial Times, the City of London processes up to three -quar ters of global euro
denominated derivatives, clearing a notional €850bn a day (Br unsden and Barker 2017). T he f inancial
sector produces some 10 percent of the British GDP.
6
The UK secured an opt -out from adopting the euro during the neg otiations for the Maastricht Treaty
in 1992.
7
There are also some industrial branches in which the EU market plays an outstanding role for the
UK. This is so in particular in the case of fore ign investments in the automotive industr y, whose
production is largely exported to continental EU countries.
109
among the most aggressive tax jurisdictions in the world, often to the disadvantage of other EU
member countries (Cobham and Garcia -Bernardo 2020, Oxfam 2016). This weak relationship
facilitated divorce, even if it proves to be costly. There are mitigating externalities on both sides.
Divorce offers the EU a chance to resume the process of integration in critical issues, such as
capital market and fiscal rules, regain control over the euro -clearing market, strengthen its hand
with Hungary and Poland, and discourage other dissidents from emulating the UK’s example.
Brexit is likely to enhance European integration, if properly managed.
3. Questions and facts
Let us review the fundamentals. The core problem for the EU has been that convergin g fiscal
parameters, particularly in an incomplete monetary union, have caused widening inter -union
inequality, exacerbating fault lines among member economies (Dallago 2016b). The economic
fault between Northern countries and Southern countries continues to be significant, and political
fault lines are deepening too between older member countries and the 4 Visegrád countries (Poland,
the Czech Republic, Slovakia and Hungary). These fault lines were invisible until the international
crisis, thanks to the in ternal flow of private resources from financially strong countries to some
of the unbalanced countries. The asymmetric financial shock of the crisis, austerity policies and
internal devaluation forced upon distressed member countries in order to fix their fiscal and
financial imbalances, caused a reversal of financial flows and put financial and political pressure
on them. Their distance from the Union’s resilient core increased rapidly. The adverse distancing
was particularly evident in the case of Greece, but remarkable also in other Southern European
countries and Ireland.
The UK sidestepped the problem thanks to its monetary and fiscal sovereignty by fighting the
global financial crisis of 2008 with expansionary monetary and fiscal policy. Its economy sw iftly
recovered, while continental economies, in particular in the South of the continent, languished.
However, things changed following the referendum and since then the UK economy languished
compared to the EU average (Chart 1).
Chart 1. Quarterly GDP at market prices, Percentage change over previous period (2005=100)*
110
EU-27
Euro area (variable)
UK
112
yEU-27 = 0,5632x + 100,37
R² = 0,9801
110
108
106
yUK = 0,3978x + 100,66
R² = 0,9875
104
102
100
Source: Own elaboration on Eurostat database
* Chain linked volumes (2015=100), seasonally and calendar adjusted data. EZvariable includes
the actual member countries of the Eurozone in e ach relevant quarter.
The UK relations to the EU were traditionally complex (Gowland 2016). The country adopted
an opportunistic policy approach to the EU from the beginning. It was interested in the unified
market and in syphoning continental financial re sources and activities to strengthen the role of
the City of London as a world financial center. Moreover, it also had the expertise and structures
to succeed. The UK was also interested in attracting foreign investment to develop its
manufacturing industry while exporting its production to the continent. Overall, the strategy was
successful, aided by its close alliance to the United States and its first -class role in globalization.
In the process, the UK obstructed changes in the European integration that might diminish its
benefits. The UK opposed progress towards unified financial and capital markets, and fiscal
unification. It obtained favorable institutional treatment, most importantly the euro opt -out. The
UK was a privileged insider from the beginning , a position underscored by Brexit.
The EU had a clear interest in having the UK as a member country. The political, geostrategic
and military role of the UK buttressed by its close relationship with the United States was
important. The EU hoped that Brit ish membership would give it a broader political dimension
beyond the Union’s economic core that it found difficult to accomplish on its own.
Similarly, it
was hoped that UK membership would support the development of a strong and sophisticated
European financial sector, which in turn would strengthen EU’s international role and support the
common currency and its role as an international currency. These hopes were largely unfulfilled.
The EU’s acceptance of Brexit reflects the disappointment. The UK’s dep arture is no longer
viewed as a tragedy. It is more a hindrance that has to be fixed swiftly and may have important
potential advantages.
111
4. Brexit and the economy
Brexit is a reality since 31 January 2020. All the involved parties, the UK and the EU, and
their deputed organs had approved the deal and the decision entered into force. Yet the particulars
remained to be settled: a host of agreements have still to be worked out, let alone agreed on. The
future will depend on the type of relations the two p arties will agree on, perhaps in 2020. The
alternatives are 1) a full UK participation in the single European market with conditions, and 2)
no deal, which means governing bilateral trade relations with WTO rules. At the time of writing
(April 2020) the decision is in limbo due to the health pandemic.
In the interim, Great Britain has to follow EU rules, including paying a fee for the financial
settlement foreseen in the Withdrawal Agreement, the lack of national sovereignty over trade
agreements, and get permissions in case of extraordinary policy meas ures such as those needed to
fight the economic consequences of Covid -19. In exchange, the UK continues to enjoy EU support
– although it is a net contributor to the EU budget. Hard times occasioned by Brexit itself have
complicated smooth transitions in t rade and labor relations, and allow the United States to fish in
troubled waters. The Covid -19 pandemic which hit the UK and various EU member countries hard
is exacerbating the situation. The pandemic slowed down the ongoing EU -UK negotiations and
added uncertainty to an already blurred future. Economic forecasts are worsening, and financial
strain is growing (Chart 2 and Table 1).
Chart 2. OECD Interim Economic Outlook Forecasts, 2 March 2020, Real GDP growth, Year -onyear % change
7
6
5
4
3
2
1
0
2019
2020
2021
Source: Own elaboration based on OECD Interim Economic Assessment, Coronavirus: The world
economy at risk, 2 March 2020, p. 2 (https://www.oecd-ilibrary.org/economics/oecd-economicoutlook/volume-2019/issue-2_7969896b-en)
112
Table 1. Real GDP Growth in selected areas (percent change)
2018
2019
2020
2021
2020
2021
Projections
Deviations
(Apr. 2020)
(from Jan. 2020)
World
3,6
2,9
-3,0
5,8
-6,3
2,4
European Union
2,3
1,7
-7,1
4,8
-8,7
3,2
Euro area
1,9
1,2
-7,5
4,7
-8,8
3,3
United Kingdom
1,3
1,4
-6,5
4,0
-7,9
2,5
Japan
0,3
0,7
-5,2
3,0
-5,9
2,5
United States
2,9
2,3
-5,9
4,7
-7,9
3,0
China
6,7
6,1
1,2
9,2
-4,8
3,4
Russia
2,5
1,3
-5,5
3,5
-7,4
1,5
Source: Elaboration on data from IMF, World Economic Outlook, April 2020,
p.
15
(https://www.imf.org/external/np/g20/pdf/2020/041520.pdf )
Ameliorating these difficulties requires progress on two fronts: fast and positive conclusion
of bilateral negotiations and a new perspective for the European integration in the direction of an
explicit and orderly multi-speed, multi-track, multi-level (MSTL) union.
5. The fading of the original EU project and the UK
The process of European integration started with a small group of six countries primarily to
re-establish and strengthen peace and democracy in war -torn Europe. With time priority moved
from production and trade i ntegration for deterring armed conflicts to reduce transaction costs
and strengthen scale and scope economies for improving enterprise competitiveness and
increasing market size. All this also served to make the integrated economy more resilient to
crises and improve Europe’s standing in international markets. The monetary union subsequently
sought additional micro and macroeconomic management efficiencies.
This initial unitary vision and strategy, however politically ambitious, was technically feasible
since member countries were in similar situations. The post -war reconstruction period, rapidly
growing openness of economies in a globalizing international context and strong willingness to
cooperate created opportunities for rapid growth free of major negati ve shocks.
The original
unitary vision led to the single market and the Economic and Monetary Union (EMU). It yielded
high initial dividends by focusing on Pareto superior common market building, allowing everyone
to gain without compelling any member to lose. Widened rational utilitarian choice outweighed
113
conflicts over monetary and fiscal policy and social values. There were two major events that
jeopardized this harmonious progress: membership of Great Britain on 1 January 1973 and the
financial crisis of 2008.
The UK membership introduced a previously unknown institutional and policy diversity in the
Union. Great Britain has an Anglo -Saxon or liberal market system, from which important
institutional and policy idiosyncrasies follow, and an international ly and militarily powerful
country. Great Britain was a critically important member since the beginning, quite aware of its
own strength and interests and determined to push them through within the EU. The exceptional
nature of the UK membership appeared s oon.
A first referendum on the UK membership was held as soon as 5 June 1975 which obtained
two thirds support to continuing membership. In 1979 the UK opted out of the newly established
European Monetary System (EMS), the first fundamental step towards th e common currency.
However, in 1985 the UK ratified the Single European Act (SEA) which created, among others,
the single market and in October 1990 joined the European Exchange Rate Mechanism (ERM)
which pegged European currencies to cross -parities. UK membership in ERM lasted until
September 1992 when international speculation against the overvalued pound compelled the
country to leave ERM and refuse to reenter afterwards. During the concomitant negotiations for
the Maastricht Treaty, the UK successfully negotiated an opt-out that freed the UK from the need
to join the monetary union. The UK had four opt -outs overall during its EU membership, more
than any other member country. The UK thus remained the institutionally least integrated member
country until Brexit took over and played an important political role, albeit indirectly, to
encourage other unruly member countries.
Other opt-outs jeopardized the original unitary vision. As more and more diverse countries
joined the EU, following the same track at th e same speed became difficult and sometimes
impossible. Opt-outs were mostly in non -core issues. Some member countries negotiated
particular opt-outs from legislation or treaties of the European Union that in principle apply to
all member countries. There are currently five opt-out areas involving four countries: 1)Ireland
and the United Kingdom relieved from implementing the Schengen agreement; 2) permission for
the UK to exclude itself
from the monetary union, while Denmark has the right to decide if and
when to join the euro; 3) Poland and the UK have partial opt -out from the Charter of Fundamental
Rights of the European Union; 4) Denmark, Ireland and the UK have opt -outs on issues regarding
freedom, security and justice. To overcome the opposition of pa rticular member countries to
progress in certain areas, possibly including a tax on international short -term financial transaction,
the EU foresees an enhanced cooperation among interested and willing member countries.
As the Union enlarged, integration be came less and less unitary and the EU became
114
increasingly loosely coordinated, although the core monetary union among a subset of member
countries proved to be successful and overall, consistently managed. The financial crisis of 2008
shattered the euphoria. The game ceased being unambiguously Pareto superior, morphing into an
asymmetric power and social order game that paved the way of the monetary union (Dallago and
Rosefielde 2020, Stiglitz 2016). The Eurozone itself is an inconsistent MSTL. Countries pu rsue
the same goal (the same currency with the same monetary policy and macroeconomic and fiscal
equilibrium in order not to jeopardize the stability of the currency) at different speeds, through
different tracks (some countries have to stabilize and other s not, some grow and others stagnate,
some decrease their debt and others increase it).
The EU has chosen to distort its de facto institutions rather than engage in the difficult revision
of the treaties. Ultimate economic sovereignty still reposes in national governments, as Brexit
showed, albeit with the exception of the monetary sovereignty. While joint sovereignty encourages
cooperation, it disregards the growing disparity among and different preferences of member
countries. Pressed by a prolonged economic and financial crisis and growing domestic social and
political pressure, aggravated by the 2020 pandemic, various countries a re increasingly resisting
common rules and enforcement and demanding change. An explicitly well ordered MSTL EU based
on transparent institutions and processes would be better.
6. Towards a post-Brexit MSTL union
The founding principle of the EU is the coha bitation of supranationality in selected fields
based on the principle of subsidiarity and national coordinated sovereignty, that is, the creation
of a multi-tier governance regime that reserves some powers to nation states and simultaneously
facilitates transnational coordination. The concept is compatible with strong, moderate, or weak
supranational authority, and can accommodate multiple degrees of participation if members desire.
The core EU group (France, West Germany, Italy, Belgium, Luxembourg, and t he Netherlands),
signatories to the Treaty of Rome (March 1957) have long favored increasing coordination and
the gradual construction of supranationality (“more Europe”) achieved by deepening the power of
common supranational institutions and holding memb ers to strict convergence criteria in order to
ameliorate problems caused by the monetary union’s incompleteness. The UK and some other
members prefer softer central power in varying degrees including different classes of
supranational participation. The d ebate on the merit of these alternatives has clarified some issues,
but has not settled matters because the merit of any institution depends fundamentally on its goals,
not just its architecture.
The EU project revolved around the idea of an increasingly deep integration since its
115
beginning and in spite of occasional difficulties. Pressure for “more Europe” and promotion of
one- track integration reached its climax with the Maastricht Treaty of 1992 and the launch of the
process of monetary union. However, intra-union disagreements and divergences were ever present
(Brunnermeier et al. 2016, Mody 2018). Brexit represents the culmination of conflicts of interests
and divergent views and strategies within the process of European integration and raises the
warning that the EU should start considering and implementing a reform capable of
accommodating such differences in a constructive way. We contend that an orderly multi -speed,
multi-track, and multi-level (MSTL) order is sufficient to significantly mitigate s trife and promote
better outcomes in a Union made of countries with many institutional and structural differences
and need to solve different problems (Dallago and Rosefielde 2020).
Multi-speed integration means that member countries go in the same directi on and pursue
common goals, but do so at different speeds, as in the case of fiscal balance. In a multi -track
integration, some countries pursue more integration, others less, as in the case of the monetary
union. Multi-level integration means that member countries pursue similar goals, but do this in
different ways in accordance with their circumstances, as in the case of reforms to comply with
EU requirements. Members may also seek objectives other partners dislike, but are willing to
tolerate, as in the case of immigration or participation in the Schengen area.
The main challenge of MSTL integration is the management of onerous macroeconomic
spillovers and the danger of moral hazard that may transform win -win into win-lose situations.
The challenge may be solved by means of proper measurement, assessment and enforcement.
MSTL’s primary virtue is more national freedom combined with joint responsibility based on
transparent rules and procedures. This solution promises superior results and political stability ,
thus making the EU stronger because cooperation will be upgraded, internal conflicts softened
and decision-making concentrated on solving the most demanding problems. The proposed
solution would be akin to, but more general than an upgraded version of th e existing enhanced
cooperation.
The MSTL solution allows members to maximize utility without jointly optimizing wellbeing,
subject to critical benevolent constraints according to a single Bergsonian social welfare standard
(Bergson 1938, 1954, 1976). Pare tian and Bergsonian metrics are identical if members have
common preferences and values. If members do not agree, some will necessarily be displeased
and may try to harm others deliberately or inadvertently by exerting de facto regulatory power
and imposing paternalistic values.
7. Brexit and the MSTL perspective
116
Following the crisis and Brexit, the debate is de facto moving in the direction of the
fundamental distinction between Eurozone countries, where more coordination is necessary and
inevitable, and those countries among the others which want to remain outside. The new
imperative is to re-conceptualize the EU as an adaptive socially and politically inclusive, Pareto
improving satisficing project with a flexible internal structure. While the problem is increasingly
clear, a shared solution is still distant.
The EU has taken some important steps to increase flexibility. The Euro Plus Pact (E+P),
adopted in March 2011 redefined the primary deficit to lighten the compliance burden. The new
rule excluded the zero-output gap (the gap between current GDP and potential GDP) from the
deficit calculation, a measure that implicitly favored the most indebted countries. The suspension
of the Stability and Growth Pact during the 2020 pandemic gave members additional d egrees of
freedom on an emergency basis. The 2010 European Semester, a series of regularly scheduled fora
created to foster national fiscal policy coordination, structural reforms and macroeconomic
imbalances discussions, based on commonly agreed treaties and standards, serves a similar
eclectic purpose. The consultation process is not joint sovereignty and has a limited short -term
perspective, but is a step in the right direction. The key objectives of the European Semester are
of ensuring sound public fin ances and convergence and stability in the EU and thus preventing
excessive macroeconomic imbalances.
Following the international crisis, the EU decided in the “more Europe” spirit to implement
stronger economic governance and better policy coordination, synchronization and monitoring
among member states to improve convergence, stability and other EU objectives, pushing the
growth agenda into the background. The ongoing debate on the introduction of common Recovery
Bonds – apparently jointly emitted by the European Commission and then given to member
countries in need, in part perhaps as a contribution and in part as a long -term debt – and accession
to the European Stability Mechanism (ESM) - without conditionality for managing the health
emergency and up to 2% of each country’s GDP - are fundamental advances that were
unimaginable before April 2020. Making fundamental progress under the push of extreme
difficulties has been a standard for the EU through its life and the present time is perhaps not an
exception. Having to deal on two difficult fronts at the same time – Covid-19 and Brexit – is
perhaps leading the EU in the right direction.
The problem is that all these changes are ad hoc and not yet a coherent part of a new visionary
EU integration strategy. In November 2018, the European Commission prepared an analysis of the
Eurozone economy including an EU Reform Support Programme, a European Investment
Stabilization Function and a European Monetary Fund (EC 2018). A subsequent Council of the
European Union document on the Eurozone (CEU 2019) and a Commission document on the 2019
117
European Semester (EC 2019) supplemented these initiatives without reaching an operational
agreement. Further progress has been held in abeyance until the Covid -19 problem resolves itself.
The basic principle guiding the construction of a well -ordered MSTL union is that everything
not explicitly prohibited in EU treaties should be allowed, if policies do not create negative
macroeconomic spillovers. If there are spillovers, compensation should be given according to pre established and verifiable rules and parameters, guided with a long -term perspective. Alternatively,
a joint management of the spillovers should be explicitly part of a long -term management of the
common future. If properly defined and managed, these steps could with time evolve in a true
MSTL solution. Political debate will be inevitable, but the well -ordered MSTL approach lubricates
the integration process, making it more flexible and effective.
Brexit and the health pandemic offer good examples of the method, while the management of
the financial crisis offers a mixed perspective. In the former case the EU was consistently capable
of jointly managing a complex process. In the pandemic case, the EU is apparently moving to
partially mutualize the negative effects without formally revising treaties. It merely invoked
Article 122 of the consolidated version of the Treaty on the Functioning of the European Union
stipulating that “Where a Member State is in difficulties or is seriously threatened with severe
difficulties caused by natural disasters or exceptional occurrences beyond its control, the Council,
on a proposal from the Commission, may grant, under certain conditions, Union financial
assistance to the Member State concerned.” This is exactly an MSTL approach in the making,
waiting for consistent drafting and institutionalization.
The advantages of the orderly MSTL approach are manifold. First, each country would be assigned
a clear track, which would give transparency to the process and facilitate compliance. Second,
national preferences would be clarified speeding conflict resolution. Third, ailing members would
have more time to correct structural problems. Fourth, solidarity would be enhanced. I n short,
orderly MSTL provide the EU and Eurozone with both sticks and carrots for promoting compliance
and cooperation.
8. Conclusions
In spite of its many complexities and negative consequences for both the EU and the UK,
Brexit had the merit of warning t he EU of its fading appeal and mounting problems. The EU
management of the financial crisis was costly and ineffective, although it succeeded in keeping
moral hazard at bay. Brexit confronted the EU with the need for changing track and the political
possibility to do so. The UK was for years a powerful and consistent opponent of fundamental
reforms, such as the fiscal and capital markets union. Without this internal opposition, it is now
118
easier to proceed with institutional completion of the EU. Other inter nal opponents, deprived of
the UK key role, are now weaker, although not powerless. The Covid -19 pandemic is apparently
offering a grand opportunity to proceed.
The essence of the MSTL proposal is that, lacking a political union, the member countries’
institutional and structural idiosyncrasies become part of a new deal in a sustainable win -win
perspective. This is particularly important and urgent in the Eurozone, where policy and
institutionally based negative spillovers threaten financial stability, depr ess growth and make
inter-country divergences permanent. The way for solving such dangers is to prolong the time
horizon of both the EU and member countries and set up credible assessments, guarantees and
enforcement against moral hazard through the MSTL c ooperative perspective.
Although in the long run the MSTL perspective would gain from a revision of the treaties, its
experimentation and practical use easily fits the present treaties if longer -term and learning by
doing perspectives prevail. Moving in th is direction, also serves to build trust among member
countries, an essential ingredient for the success of the perspective.
Bibliography
Bergson, Abram (1938). “A Reformulation of Certain Aspects of Welfare Economics,” Quarterly
Journal of Economics, Vol. 52, No. 1, pp. 310–334
Bergson, Abram (1954). “The Concept of Social Welfare,” Quarterly Journal of Economics , Vol.
68, No. 2, pp. 233–253
Bergson, Abram (1976). “Social Choice Under Representative Government”, Journal of Public
Economics, Vol. 6, No. 3, pp. 171–190
Brunnermeier, Markus, Harold James and Jean -Pierre Landau (2016), The Euro and the Battle of
Ideas, Princeton: Princeton Unive rsity Press
Brunsden, Jim and Alex Barker (2017), ‘Brussels set for power grab on London euro -clearing
market’, 1 May 2017, Financial Times online
CEU (2019), Council of the European Union, Recommendation for a Council Recommendation on
the economic policy of the euro area, Brussels, 11 January 2019 (OR. en) 5097/19
https://www.consilium.europa.eu/media/37893/st_5097_2019_init_en.pdf
119
Dallago, Bruno (2016a), ‘The Future of European Integration and Brexit: Is Brexit only Brexit?’,
Acta Oeconomica, Vol. 66, N° S1, pp. 111-136
Dallago, Bruno (2016b), One Currency, two Europe , Singapore: World Scientific Publishing Co.
Dallago, Bruno and Steven Rosefielde (2020), ‘A Flexible and Concerned European Union’, Acta
Oeconomica (forthcoming)
Cobham, Alex and Javier Garcia -Bernardo (2020), ‘Time for the EU to close its own tax havens’,
Tax Justice Network, 4 April (https://www.taxjustice.net/wp -content/uploads/2020/04/Time -forthe-EU-to-close-its-own-tax-havens_April-2020_Tax-Justice-Network.pdf)
Oxfam (2016), ‘Tax Battles. The dangerous global race to the bottom on corporate tax’, Oxfam
Policy Paper Summary, 12 December (https://www -cdn.oxfam.org/s3fs-public/bp-race-to-bottomcorporate-tax-121216-en.pdf)
EC (2018), Analysis of the Euro Area eco nomy, European Commission, Accompanying the
document Recommendation for a Council Recommendation on the economic policy of the Euro
Area, Commission Staff Working Document, Brussels, 21.11.2018 SWD(2018) 467 final
{COM(2018) 759 final}
EC (2019), 2019 European Semester: country -specific recommendations, European Commission,
Communication From The Commission To The European Parliament, The European Council, The
Council, The European Central Bank, The European Economic And Social Committee, The
Committee Of The Regions And The European Investment Bank 2019, Brussels, 5.6.2019
COM(2019) 500 final
EUCO (2016), European Council meeting (18 and 19 February 2016) – Conclusions, Brussels:
European
Council
EUCO
1/16,
19
February
(http://www.consilium.europa.eu/en/pol icies/uk/2016-uk-settlement-process-timeline/)
Gowland, David (2016), Britain and the European Union , Abingdon: Routledge
Hall, Peter A. and David W. Soskice (2001) eds., Varieties of Capitalism. The Institutional
Foundations of Comparative Advantage , Oxford: Oxford University Press
Mody, Ashoka (2018), Euro Tragedy. A Drama in Nine Acts, Oxford: Oxford University Press
Stiglitz, Joseph E. (2016), The Euro: How a Common Currency Threatens the Future of Europe ,
New York: W.W. Norton & Company
120
Ⅱ―2
“Brexit Fissures”: Party politics and territorial politics post -2017 1
Stephen Day
John Major (2016) ‘The plain uncomfortable truth is that the unity of the UK itself is on the ballot
paper in two weeks’ time.’
Robert Tombs (2017) 'Brexit was a vote of confidence in our ability to shape our future as an
independent democratic nation...’
[ Abstract]
Brexit has proved to have been one of the most disruptive and tumultuous political events in
contemporary UK politics. Whether it unleashes the sort of ‘buccaneering spirits’ envisioned by
its most passionate supporters , or leaves the UK languishing as an island in decline remains to be
seen. The journey, to date, however, has brought with it what can best be described as a series of
‘Brexit induced fissures’ vis -à-vis the UK’s political architecture. The goal of this chapter is to
highlight how those fissures have played out/are playing out in two specific domains:
1) The arena of party politics and the party system between 2017 -2019 – a period when the
parliamentary politics looked to have reached total gridlock, but which culminated in a
dramatic electoral victory for the governing Conservative Party.
2) The on-going push-pull struggle over the territorial integrity of the UK where talk of a
second Scottish independence referendum and a ‘border poll’ in Northern Ireland continues
to gain momentum.
On June 23, 2016 UK voters decided by a margin of 51.9 percent to 48.1 to support the
termination of the UK’s membership of the European Union. Three and a half years later, on 31
January 2020, the UK formally left the political institutions of the EU. At the time of writing,
talks on the future relationship between the two sides remain on -going and it’s unclear whether
1
This chapter is not intended to be a comprehensive overview of the Brexit -saga. Its goal
is more limited. I wish to make some general observatio ns about a few key issues of this
on-going story. This inevitably means sometimes simplifying complex and contentious
issues as well as making large jumps in terms of the story’s timeline.
121
or not a deal can be reached by the UK government’s self -imposed deadline of December 31, 2020.
While the referendum question offered a str aightforward choice between Leave and Remain, the
on-going process of actualizing that choice generated/exacerbated a series of dramatic fissures
across the political and territorial architecture of the UK.
It is often the case in British politics that an y conversation about referenda soon recalls the
oft-cited comment from Clement Attlee (Labour Prime Minister 1945 -1951): ‘I could not consent
to the introduction into our national life of a device so alien to all our traditions.’ Underpinning
that assertion are procedural and philosophical questions about the compatibility of direct
democracy (of which a referendum is one example) with the representative democracy associated
with a parliamentary system. This, in turn, takes us back to the Burkean quandary a s to whether
an MP is a delegate or a representative. 2 In the case of Brexit, the fact that the majority of
parliamentary representatives had profound misgivings about the electorates choice, resulted in
them being charged, by critics, with undermining democracy. The slogan ‘parliament verses the
people’ became a common slur against those parliamentarians . Reflecting on a comment that she
heard that referendums were a ‘poison injected into the bloodstream of the body politic’, Helen
Lewis (2018) concluded:
‘Ultimately, though, the poison of Brexit is a less s howy one. It’s arsenic, isn’t it – that old
favourite of vengeful nephews in Agatha Christie stories? Symptoms include nausea and
irritability, and they creep up so slowly that the victims don’t realise they are being poisoned until
it is too late.’
At that time, so much remained up in the air but one thing was clear: the UK’s political
architecture was struggling to contain what could best be described as a series of ‘Brexit induced
fissures.’ During the course of this chapter, I wish to highlight how these fissures have impacted
upon two domains of that architecture:
2
Edmund Burke stressed that while an MP should listen and take on -board the views
of constituents, an MP should not be bound by those views. For him, an MP should
act as a representative (ultimately make their own judgment) and not a delegate. In
his famous speech to the electors of Bristol in 1774 he said: ‘But his unbiased
opinion, his mature judgment, his enlightened conscience, he ought not to sacrifice to
you, to any man, or to any set of men living... Your representative owes you, not his
industry only, but his judgment; and he betrays, instead of serving you, i f he
sacrifices it to your opinion’. Edmund Burke, Speech to the Electors of Bristol
(November 3, 1774). Taken from The Founders' Constitution , Volume 1, Chapter 13,
Document 7. As at http://press-pubs.uchicago.edu/founders/documents/v1ch13s7.html
122
1) key features of party politics and the party system between 2017 -2019 – a period when the
parliamentary arena looked to have reached total gridlock.
2) the territorial integrity of the UK whe re future developments in Scotland and Northern
Ireland remain key.
Concerning the first domain as Clarke et al put it: (2017: 228) ‘Brexit has strong potential to
destabilize what is already a fragmenting and shaky party system…The future of the UK polity
itself may be at stake as well.’ It, of course, was not meant to be like this. The UK political system
with its first -past-the-post electoral system was meant to perpetuate continuity in the form of a
two-party/two-and-a-half party system, strong government, and strong party leadership. In
relation to the second domain, the question of Scottish independence was supposedly put to bed
in 2014 after the defeat of the independence referendum and Northern Ireland’s place as an integral
part of the UK was unques tionable. The extreme turmoil and disruption wrought by Brexit,
however, would bring all of these issues back under the political spotlight.
Disruption and turmoil within the parliamentary system
In the wake of the 2017 election, Cowley (2018: 410) co ncluded that: ‘Rather than delivering
a ‘strong and stable’ government, the nation ended up with a minority government and a weakened
Prime Minister about to embark on the most important and complex negotiations the UK had
entered in living memory.’ For th e next two years, British politics found itself totally preoccupied
and perhaps, one might say, traumatized by Brexit. There is a famous meme of Austin Powers
trying (unsuccessfully) to do a three -point turn in a corridor in a small motorized cart which is
basically the same length as the width of the corridor. It seems to be an appropriate metaphor.
Professor Peter Hennessy, in the Radio Four series, The briefing Room, put it more eloquently
when he spoke of the political system being ‘stress -tested’ like never before by Brexit. He went
on to assert: ‘The European question is the great disrupter of post -War British politics and, my
heavens,
it’s
a
capital
D
disruptor
at
the
moment.’
(As
at
https://www.bbc.co.uk/programmes/p06w8qtg )
During the latter stages of the second Theresa May premiership (June 2017-July 2019), as she
sought to secure legislative ratification of the deal that she had negotiated with the EU, the febrile
nature of the political atmosphere inside and outside of the parliament reached fever -pitch. Night
after night political figures, commentators and contrarians would take to the airwaves with their
view of the day’s proceedings. Prime Minister May found herself caught in a pincer movement as
opponents from all sides, including from within her own party, berated both her deal a nd the
integrity of her leadership. The ferocity of the ‘blue -on-blue’ attacks, i.e. attacks from within the
123
Conservative Party, completely undermined the idea of strong party leadership and left the notion
of party discipline in disarray. The Labour Party, under the leadership of Jeremy Corbyn, also
faced its own intra-party difficulties over Brexit but to a much lesser extent. 3 The tone of political
debate at that time led one prominent news presenter/journalist Emily Mattis (BBC Newsnight,
29 January 2019) to comment:
‘At this point perhaps, it is wise to admit the usual contract between viewer and presenter is
somewhat broken. I can tell you everything that we are told. Everything the key players have said
to me. What we can’t do is tell you whether the y will still be saying or thinking or promising the
same things tomorrow. Denials and guarantees are being broken as quickly as they are being
uttered.’
The subsequent impasse that arose in Parliament between the Executive and the Legislature
would manifest itself most overtly in the first few months of 2019 when Prime Minister May lost
three key votes (known as Meaningful Vote 1, 2 and 3) on her Brexit deal. The first vote suffered
the largest defeat in parliamentary history. In addition, all sorts of un precedented parliamentary
manoeuvres, that added to the febrile atmosphere, would continue to unfold for most of the year.
This included the Speaker of the House John Bercow accommodating the legislatures desire to
take control of the Order Paper under Sta nding Order 24 (Standing Orders are the ‘rules of
procedure’ associated with conducting the day -to-day business of parliament). One of the most
dramatic events, during this timeline, occurred when Prime Minister Johnson decided to
withdrawal the whip from 21 Conservative MPs who had voted against the government on a motion
for delaying Brexit in order to prevent a no -deal. 4 A few days later an interesting Twitter exchange
between the Health Secretary Matt Hancock and the former Chancellor Phillip Hammond ( who
had been one of the 21), once again, highlighted the febrile political atmosphere. Hancock wrote:
‘The Conservative party has always been a broad church shaped by those within it. Gutted to see
Amber leave – but hope other One Nation Tories will stay a nd fight for the values we share. Philip
Hammond replied: ‘Sorry Matt, I’m afraid the Conservative Party has been taken over by unelected
3
The Labour Party would have to deal with an ongoing anti -Semitism scandal that made
the front pages on and off for nearly four years. It eventually result ed in the party being
placed under investigation by the Equality and Human Rights Commission (EHRC). The
new (since April 4, 2020) party leader, Keir Starmer, received plaudits from the Jewish
community for the way he has sought to deal with it. See ‘Jewish leaders praise Keir
Starmer for pledges on Labour antisemitism’, The Guardian , April 7, 2020.
4
Ten would later have the whip reinstated. Two would leave the party and join the
Liberal Democrats.
124
advisors, entryists and usurpers who are trying to turn it from a broad church into an extreme
right-wing
faction.
Sadly,
it
is
not
the
party
I
joined.’
(https://twitter.com/philiphammonduk/status/1170633949879635968 . Dated 8 September).
Electoral turmoil and disruption 2019 -2020
Electorally, 2019 would commence with local government and European elections in May and
a number of by-elections in June and August. The governing Conservatives, under Prime Minister
May, were given an electoral drubbing that contributed to her eventual resignation. With Prime
Minister Boris Johnson at the helm, and the constant repetition of the simple and memorable
slogan: ‘Get Brexit Done’, the party ’s electoral fortunes would change dramatically at December ’s
general election (see the next section below). During the year, the electoral scene would also be
joined by the short-lived pro-Remain Change UK as well as Nigel Farage’s Brexit Party. Both
were officially launched in April. While the former (which was formed by a small group of eight
Labour and three Conservative MPs who broke away from their respective parties) sought to
secure a ‘people’s vote’ (a second referendum) with the hope of remaining in the EU; the latter
advocated what it called a ‘Clean -break Brexit’. This was a euphemism for just wal king away
without any kind of withdrawal agreement and trading with the EU on WTO terms. The Brexit
Party promised a political revolution . For a while, especially its success at the European elections
(see table one), it looked on-course to really shake things up. In the end, however, it would fizzle
out. 5
The 2019 electoral cycle as already mentioned kicked -off with the May 2019 local elections.
The outcome was a Conservative Party in electoral free -fall. It suffered the loss of 1330 of its
4894 seats leaving it with 3564. One would have normally expected the main opposition party to
benefit from the governing party’s woe. Yet, Labour was unable to capitalise. The party actually
lost 84 seats bringing it down to 2021. It did not bode well for any forthcomi ng general election.
Labour ’s riposte was to seek solace from the experience of the 2017 general election campaign.
At that time, a headline in the Independent (June 1, 2017) that read 'Jeremy Corbyn goes from no hoper to crowd-puller on the campaign trail ' captured his ability to resonate with the public –
particularly the young which would go on to spawn the word 'youthquake'. So, the argument ran
that such a pattern would repeat itself at the next general election. Once the voters saw ‘Jeremy’
5
A unique feature of the Brexit Party, compared to other political parties, was it s
business-like structure. It was registered as a Private Limited Company (PLC). Party
members were deemed ‘registered supporters’.
125
in the flesh and heard Labour ’s message, undistorted by the media, they would turn to Labour. In
terms of the electoral spoils that night, they belonged to the Liberal Democrats which gained 706
seats increasing its total to 1352. This was just the sort of momentum they wanted to take into the
forthcoming European elections. In the words of the then party leader Vince Cable ‘…we go into
the European elections as the clear gathering point for remainers’ (Cable 2019).
It was during the European elections campaign, a campaign that was never meant to have taken
place because the UK should have left the EU on March 29, that the Liberal Democrats adopted
the most explicit pro-Remain slogan: ‘Bollocks to Brexit’.
TABLE ONE: European Election Results (May 2019)
Position on Brexit at
the
time
of
Political Party
the
Percentage
Cumulative support for
of the vote
parties
election
supporting
different types of Brexit
‘No-deal’ Brexit
Remain
The Brexit Party
30.79
UKIP
3.22
Liberal Democrats
19.78
Greens
11.78
Change UK
3.31
Scottish National
3.51
34.01 percent
39.35 percent
Party (SNP)
Plaid Cymru
0.97
Some form of soft-
Conservative Party
8.86
Brexit
Labour Party
13.74
22.6 percent
Turnout was 36.7percent.
SOURCE:
2019
European
election
results:
UK
official
results.
https://europarl.europa.eu/election -results-2019/en/national-results/united-kingdom/2019-2024/
The clear winners at the European elections were the Brexit Party. It championed the cause of a
‘no-deal’ Brexit. It was not, however, a message that resonated with a majority of those who voted.
A plurality of voters had backed parties suppor ting a remain position. While even the soft -Brexit
message of the Conservatives and Labour attracted nearly a quarter of voters. That could not,
however, hide the fact that the Conservatives had just experienced their worst ever result in the
party’s long history.
Given the success of the Brexit Party at the European elections and the publicity that it
generated, the bookmakers (who are seldom wrong) marked them as the favourites to take the seat
126
of Peterborough at the June 6 by -election. It was a constitu ency where the previous Labour MP
had to relinquish her seat over a criminal conviction and the constituency voted 61 percent in
favour of Brexit. Labour, however, drawing upon a strong ground operation and a campaign
focused on local issues was able to hold the seat – taking 31 percent of vote (down 17 percent on
the 2017 general election) compared to 29 percent for the Brexit Party. The Conservative Party
came in third with a 21 percent vote share (down 25 points on 2017). It was an outcome that may
well have lulled Labour into a false sense of security. Anecdotal evidence would later point to an
ill-prepared and chaotic general election campaign that proved unable to hold, among st many
others, the Peterborough seat.
A couple of months after the Peterborough by -election, the first electoral test for the new
prime minister, Boris Johnson, would be played out in the Welsh constituency of Brecon and
Radnorshire by-election on August 1 s t . The election came about as a result of the sitting
Conservative MP being recalled due to an electoral expenses violation. It was a seat that had
swung between the Liberal Democrat and the Conservatives for the past 40 years. In 2017, the
Conservatives won it with a vote share of 48.6 percent. This was nearly 20 points ahead of the
second place Liberal Democrat. This time round, the constituency was privy to the first
incarnation of a tentative pro -Remain electoral alliance. Both Plaid Cymru and the Greens decided
not to stand a candidate in order to give the Liberal Democrats a better chance of success. Vince
Cable had previously mooted the idea of electoral co -operation in the wake of the local elections,
as a possible pro-Remain strategy for a forthcoming general election:
‘Yet seizing the opportunity will be about more than brands and rhetoric. It takes infrastructure,
volunteers and sheer hard work. The first -past-the-post system makes a general election an
existential threat to any force which doesn’t have a serious ground campaign. Meanwhile, the
more competitors there are on the same territory the greater the risk that, by failing to hang
together, we all hang separately’ (Cable 2019).
The idea would fail to gain any real traction as the Labo ur party could not be brought on board. On this occasion though the Brecon and Radnorshire seat would be taken by the Liberal
Democrats with 43.5 percent of vote compared to 39 percent for the Conservatives. The Brexit
Party’s 10.5 percent highlighted that splitting the ‘Leave vote’ could be costly and it was likely
to have been a factor contributing to Nigel Farage’s decision, in early November, to no longer
field a candidate, in the forthcoming general election, in any constituency held by a Conservative
MP (remember the Conservatives under Boris Johnson had adopted a much harder Brexit position
compared to his predecessor). Interestingly, the Conservatives would win the seat back four
months later at the December general election with 53.1 percent of the popular vote compared to
127
the Liberal Democrats 35.9 percent.
December 2019: The Brexit election
Back in 2015, the traditional dominance of the two -party system was coming to an end. The
outcome of the election gave the Conservatives and Labour a 67 perce nt share of the popular vote.
At its highpoint, in 1951, their combined total had been 97 percent. At the time, Dunleavy (2015)
highlighted the fact that ‘So Britain now is pretty much exactly like every other multi-party system
across western Europe’ (Italics in original). Two years later, though, Labour and the Conservatives
secured 84 percent of the popular vote. In mid -2019 fragmentation, once again, appeared to be
returning with a vengeance. Opinion polls were indicating a four -way split stemming from a
resurging Liberal Democrats and the newly emerging Brexit Party. A YouGov (2019) tracker poll,
of Westminster voting intentions, in early June for example gave the Brexit Party 26 percent
followed by labour and the Liberal Democrats on 20 percent, the Co nservative Party on 18 percent
and the Greens on 9 percent. In an atmosphere of fragmentation, the suggestion that an election
could be won with approximately 30 -33 percent of the popular vote began to emerge and
undoubtedly impacted upon party strategies vis-à-vis the types of campaigns and messaging
necessary to secure such a figure. 6
The December general election would prove to be an election dominated by Brexit much to
the irritation of Labour. At one stage, their desire to downplay the Brexit dimension led them to
send a complaint to SkyNews who were framing it as ‘The Brexit electio n’. Voters in vox pop
interviews appeared to take the view that the social issues that Labour were campaigning on were
important, but that Brexit overshadowed everything. Basically, until it was completed Brexit had
to be the priority. Because of the divis ion amongst Labour supporters, particularly in the north of
England where the support for Leave amongst traditional labour voters was high, the party sought
to triangulate a position between its Remain and Leave camps via an anti -austerity message.
Jeremy Corbyn had laid out the line at the beginning of the year in a speech in the Labour heartland
of Wakefield (January 10) where people had voted Leave. In the post speech Q&A with the media
he stressed: ‘The whole point of the speech that I made today is tha t you can bring communities
together on a policy of social justice and a policy of investment and a policy of bringing this
country together ’. The message though failed to resonate. Take this SkyNews interview (December
3, 2019) with a long-standing traditional Labour voter. Former Trade Unionist David Pearce (82),
a strong leave supporter, was for the first time in his life thinking of voting Conservative:
6
Back in 2005, Tony Blair ’s third term in office was secured w ith the lowest ever share
of the popular vote at just 35.2 percent.
128
‘When I go up to see St Peter, I don’t know whether he will let me in or not. …I don’t feel good
about it…I feel a little bit of a traitor but if you’re so adamant about your beliefs you have got to
take a decision. And sometimes it is not what you want to do.’
Labour would go on to suffer an electoral meltdown dropping to its lowest number of MPs
since 1935. The Brexit Party was wiped off the map not least because Boris Johnson and his
promise of ‘getting Brexit done by October 31 s t ‘do or die’ took the wind out of their sails. It was
a dramatic victory for the Conservative party.
TABLE TWO: 2019 General Election Results
Party
Seats
Vote Share %
(compared to 2017)
(compared to 2017)
Conservatives
365 (+47)
43.6 (+1.2)
Labour
203 (-59)
32.2 (- 7.8)
Liberal Democrats
11 (-1)
11.5 (+4.2)
Scottish National Party
48 (+13)
3.9 (+0.8)
Democratic Unionist Party
8 (-2)
0.8 (- 0.1)
Sinn Fein (Northern Ireland)
7 (no change)
0.6 (- 0.2)
Plaid Cymru (Wales)
4 (no change)
0.5 (no change)
2 (+2)
0.4 (+0.1)
1 (no change)
2.7 (+1.1.)
1 (+1)
0.4 (+0.2)
0
2 (+2)
(Northern Ireland)
Social
Democratic
Labour
Party (Northern Ireland)
Green
Alliance
Party
(Northern
Ireland)
Brexit Party
There are also a plethora of other parties/single issue groups that stood candidates
across different parts of the UK but received less than 0.1 percent of the vote and
failed to gain any seats.
SOURCE: https://www.bbc.com/news/election/2019/results (accessed December 20, 2020)
In a widely circulated speech, a week after the election, entitled ‘Labour ’s Historic challenge’
Tony Blair (2019) argued that the party had:
‘…pursued a path of almost comic indecision, alienated both sides of the debate [Leavers and
Remainers], leaving our voters without guidance or leadership. The absence of leadership on what
129
was obviously the biggest single issue fac ing the country then reinforced all the other doubts
about Jeremy Corbyn.’
Blair was referring to the fact that the electorate was still perceiving itself in terms of its
‘Brexit identity’ (whether one was a Leaver or a Remainer) rather than more traditio nal/historical
party identities (Hobolt et al, 2019). It remains to be seen whether or not voters return to this
more traditional pattern in the years ahead.
In Scotland and Northern Ireland, the election outcome, combined with the certainty that the
passage of the EU Withdrawal Agreement Bill, leading to the 31 January 2020 departure, was now
assured would further fire -up calls for independence. It would also exacerbate Unionist fears
about Northern Ireland being cast adrift.
2) Fissures at the territorial level
The territorial dimension associated with the Brexit story was rarely spoken of during the
campaign but as the quotation from John Major at the start of this chapter suggests it should have
been. It would emerge, not only, as a central element of UK -EU negotiations (issues surrounding
the Irish border/Irish protocol) but would also become an existential issue vis -à-vis the future of
the UK as a political entity. It is worth remembering that in the letter that Prime Minister May
sent to Donald Tusk (Presiden t of the European Council) to formally trigger the legal process of
leaving the EU (triggering Article 50) in March 2017 she stated ‘…it is the expectation of the
Government that the outcome of this process will be a significant increase in the decision -making
power of each devolved administration’ (May: 2017). In July of that year, with the publication of
the European Union (Withdrawal) Bill, the devolved institutions expressed consternation at the
gap between May’s rhetoric and the legislative reality. In a joint statement, the First Minister of
Scotland Nicola Sturgeon and First Minister of Wales Carwyn Jones concluded that the Bill was:
‘…a naked power-grab, an attack on the founding principles of devolution and could destabilise
our economies.... On that basis, the Scottish and Welsh Governments cannot recommend that
legislative
consent
is
given
to
the
Bill
as
it
currently
stands.’
(July
13,
2017.
https://news.gov.scot/news/eu -withdrawal-bill )
In the 2014 independence referendum, the electorate in Scot land voted by a margin of 55
percent to 45 percent in favour of remaining part of the UK. At that time, a central plank of the
‘Better Together ’ (pro -UK) campaign was the importance of EU membership and the benefits that
Scotland garnered from being part o f the UK which was part of the EU. With Brexit that was no
longer the case. This new reality triggered the S cottish National Party’s (S NP’s) stated position
130
that an event that constituted a ‘significant and material change’ to Scotland (which Brexit was,
in their opinion) would justify the holding of a second independence referendum. In addition, the
Scottish electorate had shown a clear desire (62 percent to 38) to remain. Brexit, therefore, for
many in Scotland looked very much like a project ‘made in Eng land’ where voters sided with
Leave by 53.4 percent to 46.4 percent (see Henderson, 2017). As Stephens (2019) wrote: ‘Scots
are paying the price of a reckless gamble to make it easier for Mr. Cameron to handle the rising
English nationalism in the Conserva tive Party. Brexit was an English project’.
Fast forward to the December 2019 general election. For the SNP, the result which saw them
secure 49 seats of the 59 Scottish electoral constituencies – up from 35 in 2017 –
meant that
Boris Johnson and the Cons ervative government had no right to stand in the way of a Section 30
request. This is part of the Scotland Act 1998 that necessitates a legislative greenlight from the
UK government before the Scottish Parliament can commence the legislative process requir ed to
hold a referendum. Conservatives, and other supporters of the Union, however, continually stress
that the 2014 referendum was a once in a generation event. Keating (2018: 48) though questioned
whether the constitutional framework that has granted dev olved status to Scotland, ‘…having
survived the test of an independence referendum in 2014’ is ‘strong enough to survive the test of
Brexit.’
In the case of Northern Ireland, voters also backed remaining in the European Union by a
margin of 55.8 percent to 44.2. But as McGowan (2018: 105) put it:
‘The status quo that Northern Ireland enjoyed as a member of the EU goes after Brexit. There are
economic challenges ahead, but it is the political realm where the impact may be greatest.
Relations between the two main communities will be tested and ultimately, Brexit has brought the
prospects of Irish unification a little closer.’
At least in one respect, however, everyone was agreed: there should be no return to a hard border. As a symbol of ‘The Troubles’ the idea of a ‘hard-border ’ conjured-up lingering fears of
a return to smuggling and violence. Violence would, once again, rear its ugly head with the murder
of the journalist Lyra Mckee in April 2019.
As a result of the 1998 Good Friday (Belfast) Agreement ( GFA) the dismantling of customs
and security checks at designated border crossing points became a potent symbol of change. Cross border economic co-operation (via the facilitation of an all -Island economy); the North -South
Ministerial Council; as well as c ivil-society initiatives and a right to self -identify as British, Irish
or both etc. were all aimed at building peace, stability and reconciliation. The GFA was also
responsible for the creation of the Stormont -based power-sharing Northern Ireland Executiv e and
parallel Assembly to which it is accountable. The Executive is responsible for large swaths of
131
public policy. Dominated by the political forces representing the two main political communities
(Unionists and Nationalists) it also included those that h ave adopted a non-aligned crosscommunity political identity. Given that Brexit raised the spectre of a hard -border it was like a
fly in the ointment of this carefully crafted set -up. In order to avoid any type of land border and
to continue to uphold the principles of the GFA it would require a very specific set of measures,
as laid out in the revised 63 -page Protocol on Ireland/Northern Ireland that was part of the updated
EU-UK Withdrawal Agreement, in order for negotiations to reach a conclusion (see Re vised
Protocol 2019) (see below).
In terms of the party politics of Northern Ireland, for much of the Brexit -saga, the Democratic
Unionist party (DUP), the largest political voice of the Unionist community which supported
Leave, was front and centre. It ha d carved out a powerful political role for itself in Westminster
as a result of its ‘confidence and supply’ agreement with the governing (minority) Conservative
party. Sinn Fein, the largest party representing a large majority of the nationalist community,
which supported Remain, does not take its seats in the UK House of Commons. This meant that
the party’s take on Brexit was rarely heard in the wider UK debate unlike the DUP. All along, the
bottom line for the DUP was that Northern Ireland should be treat ed as an integral part of the UK.
It was that position which in late 2017 forced the May government to reject the EU’s offer of a
Northern Ireland only backstop. It would have established an East -West border down the Irish Sea.
At that time Arlene Foster, DUP leader, stated:
‘We will not accept any form of regulatory divergence which separates Northern Ireland
economically or politically from the rest of the United Kingdom. The economic and constitutional
integrity of the United Kingdom will not be comprom ised in any way.’ (Statement released on
Twitter December 4, 2017 - https://twitter.com/DUPleader/status/937692999697485825 ).
The problem for May though was that the option she chose to replace the EU’s offer – the UK
wide backstop – became the totem around which the Eurosceptics in her party coalesced and
militated against her and her deal.
For the DUP, the arrival of Boris Joh nson into Number 10 Downing Street, did not ring any
alarm bells. He had received a rapturous welcome at their Congress in 2018 where he reaffirmed
his commitment to the Union and stirred their hearts with his rhetoric (Johnson 2018). The party
also had a UK government policy paper from 9 January 2019 entitled ‘UK Government
commitments to Northern Ireland and its integral place in the United Kingdom’ from which it
could take comfort. Their world, however, would soon be turned upside down. First, by the dea l
that Prime Minster Johnson negotiated with the EU in October. Second, the outcome of the
December general election which meant that they were no longer needed to prop -up a minority
132
Conservative administration. Concerning the negotiated deal (Withdrawal A greement), the new
Ireland/Northern Ireland Protocol rowed back on his prior commitment to the DUP not to allow
an East-West border between Northern Ireland and Great Britain , As a result it pegs Northern
Ireland to specific rules and regulations of the EU single market in goods and agriculture. This
was the price Johnson was prepared to pay in order to ditch the UK -wide backstop. Although the
Protocol included a new consent mechanism that affords the Northern Ireland Assembly a say over
the continuation of the arrangement after four years , this only requires a simple majority which
further weakens the voice of Unionists who no longer constitute a majority in the Assembly. For
the DUP, and the wider Loyalist community, Prime Minister Johnson’s deal amounted to a
complete betrayal. For months afterwards, though, Johnson continued to deny that an East -West
border would necessitate any need for checks or paperwork (beyond already existing checks such
as checks on live animals). Even when surrounded by the splend our of the interior of Stormont
Castle, with as he put it ‘the hand of the future beckoning us all forward’ he said: ‘I cannot see
any circumstances whatever, in which there would be any need for checks on goods going from
Northern Ireland to GB’ (January 13, 2020 press conference). In the middle of May, it was reported
that the ‘British government has confirmed it will urgently put in place detailed plans with the
[Northern Ireland] Executive, which does include the physical posts at ports of entry’ (Quote d in
‘Brexit: Unionists react with dismay as Irish Sea border ‘now a certainty’, Irish Times, 14 May
2020). So, with the coming Irish -Sea border, checks and tariffs and extra paperwork (such as exit
declarations) on goods between Great Britain and Northern Ireland (and vice versa) will become
the new normal.
Concluding remarks
The period of party fragmentation over Brexit is now over. So many of the players who graced
the TV screens night after night post -2017 have now either departed from the political spotlight
or have been consigned to the political wilderness. The Brexit Party fizzled out, while the Liberal
Democrats are finding it difficult to re -orient themselves after the election. An internal review of
their general election performance described their campaign as a ‘high speed car crash’ (Liberal
Democrats 2020: 13). The Conservatives elected a new leader, expelled their rebels, got a deal,
won the election, formed a strong government and implemented that deal. The government is
presently engaged in what appears to be a rather bruising encounter, for both sides, as UK and EU
negotiators seek to finalise a future trade deal before the end of the year. On the back of all of
that numerous polls including one from Survation, at the end of April 2020, put them on 48 percent
(compared to Labour ’s 30 percent). The government’s (and Johnson’s) handling of the covid-19
133
crisis, as well as the performance of the new Labour leader Keir Starmer as he seeks to turn around
the fortunes of Labour, though, has seen the gap between the two narrows dramatically. By early
June, the Conservative lead had shrunk to 3 or 4 percent. Starmer ’s performance has also seen
draw neck and neck with Johnson as the best person to be prime minister (YouGov Poll in The
Times, 13 June 2020). Interestingly though, unlike other opposition party leaders Starmer is not
backing the idea of calling for an exten sion and is prepared to give the government the benefit of
the doubt in regards their intention to finish trade talks by the end of the year (The Independent
11 May 2020). The DUP have returned to the Northern Ireland Assembly and the power sharing
Executive which is up and running after a three -year hiatus. Some party figures now seemed
resigned to the way Brexit has panned out. Christopher Stalford (Member of the Legislative
Assembly for the DUP), for example, was quoted as saying:
‘It is bittersweet for me. I campaigned for Brexit and supported leaving the European Union but
unfortunately the terms of the Withdrawal Agreement places my part of the UK under different
conditions to the rest of the UK… I always had one view on Brexit which was we went in as one
UK and we should leave as one UK (Interview on BBC News Channel, 31 January 2020).
While the turmoil within the party system has abated (at least for the time being) the fissures
that surround territorial politics remain unabated. In the case of Scotland, Nicola Sturgeon
continues to press the case for a second referendum. At a press conference on January 31, 2020
she indicated that she had asked the Electoral Commission ‘to retest the question: “should
Scotland be an independent country” which had be en on the ballot paper in 2014. In the case of
Northern Ireland, Mary Lou McDonald (Sinn Fein President) stated, during the official
announcement that the party would be returning to Stormont, that:
‘At these historic times we will also work for Irish reu nification. And we want to ensure that the
criteria for ensuring the triggering of an Irish unity poll are set out and the planning for Irish
unity is stepped up including the convening of a national forum to discuss and plan for the future.’
(Stormont, 10 January 2020)
In both Scotland and Northern Ireland, therefore, the groundwork for independence continues
to be laid. However, in both cases nothing can happen unless the UK government grants the legal
authority for a referendum/border poll to be held. Added to that is the fact that any eventual
referendum has to be won. In January 2020, a YouGov poll put support for Scottish independence
at 51 percent. But it also indicated that the SNP still needs to convince the electorate that the time
is right for a new referendum (YouGov, 2020). The latest poll in Northern Ireland put support for
reunification at 32 percent (Tonge, 2020). Hence advocates for independence from the UK still
have a lot of work to do in order to convince their respective electorates of th e merits of their
vision. In the short-term, though, everything hinges on December 31 , 2020 - the next staging-post
134
in the Brexit saga. The lack of a future trading deal with the EU will undoubtedly amplify existing,
and reawaken dormant, fissures. Even with a deal , the UK will still be entering uncharted waters.
Bibliography
Blair, Tony (2019) Labour ’s Historic Challenge. 18 December. Full text of the speech reproduced
in https://institute.global/tony -blair/labours-historic-challenge (accessed on 15 May 2020)
Cable, Vince (2019) Lib Dem leader: ‘We’re back and we’re your only chance of stopping Brexit’,
The Observer, May 5. As at https://www.theguardian.com/politics/2019/may/05/vince -cable-libdems-elections-your-only-chance-of-stopping-brexit (accessed on 15 May 2020)
Clarke, Harold D. Matthew Goodwin and Paul Whiteley (2017) Brexit: Why Britain votes to leave
the European Union. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Cowley Philip (2018) ‘The Election in Retrospect’, in Cowley, Philip and Dennis Kavanagh (2018)
The British General Election of 2017 . Houndmills: Palgrave Macmillan.
Dunleavy, Patrick (2015) Why the 2015 UK election spells the bitter end for the biggest ‘law’ in
political science’, LSE Blogs. As at https://blogs.lse.ac.uk/europpblog/2015/04/30/why -the-2015uk-election-spells-the-bitter-end-for-the-biggest-law-in-political-science/ (accessed on 20 May
2020)
Henderson, Alisa, Charlie Jeffery, Dan Wincott (2017) ‘How Brexit was made in England’, The
British Journal of Politics and International Relations , Vol. 19, Issue 4, pp.631-646.
https://doi.org/10.1177/1369148117730542
Hobolt, Sara Thomas Leeper and James Tilley (2019) 'Divided by the Vote: Affective Polarization
in
the
Wake
of
Brexit'.
Draft
paper
as
at
https://s3.us-east-2.amazonaws.com/tjl-
sharing/assets/DividedByTheVote.pdf
Johnson, Boris (2018) Boris Johnson’s speech to DUP conference: ‘we are on the verge of making
a
historic
mistake’,
text
reproduced
in
The
Spectator
24
November.
As
at
https://www.spectator.co.uk/article/boris -johnson-s-speech-to-dup-conference-we-are-on-theverge-of-making-a-historic-mistake- (accessed 10 May, 2020)
Keating, Michael (2018) ‘Brexit and Scotland’, in Patrick Diamond, Peter Nedergaard and Ben
Rosamond (eds.) The Routledge Handbook of the Politics of Brexit . Oxon. Routledge, pp.40-48.
Lewis, Helen (2018) ‘Brexit has poisoned our politics – and there is no antidote in sight,
NewStatesman, 27 June. As at https://www.newstatesman.com/politics/uk/2018/06/brexit -haspoisoned-our-politics-and-there-no-antidote-sight (accessed 10 May, 2020)
135
Liberal
Democrats
(2020)
2019
Election
Review:
Report.
As
at
https://d3n8a8pro7vhmx.cloudfront.net/libdems/pages/58994/attachments/original/1589548753/e
mbedpdf_The_2019_Liberal_Democrat_Election_Review.pdf?1589548753
May, Theresa (2017) Correspondence. Prime Minister ’s letter to Donald Tusk triggering Article
50. Published 29 March 2017. As at
https://www.gov.uk/government/publications/prime -
ministers-letter-to-donald-tusk-triggering-article-50/prime-ministers-letter-to-donald-tusktriggering-article-50 (accessed 10 May, 2020)
McGowan, Lee (2018) Preparing for Brexit: Actors, Negotiations and Consequences, Palgrave
Pivot series
Protocol
on
Ireland/Northern
Ireland
(2019).
As
at
https://assets.publishing.service.gov.uk/government/uploads/system/uploads/attachment_data/fil
e/840230/Revised_Protocol_to_the_Withdrawal_Agreement.pdf
The Independent online (2020) Keir Starmer refuses to back Brexit transition extension,
Independent,
11
May.
As
at
https://www.independent.co.uk/news/uk/politics/brexit -delay-
transition-keir-starmer-boris-johnson-deal-eu-a9508136.html
Stephens, Philip (2019) ‘Brexit makes the case for an independent Scotland’, Financial Times,
May 2 (accessed 18 May, 2020)
Tonge, Jon (2020) ‘An antidote to recent excitable predictions of Irish unity, but there are signs
of
change’,
Belfast
18
telegraph,
February
2020.
As
at
https://www.belfasttelegraph.co.uk/opinion/news -analysis/an-antidote-to-recent-excitablepredictions-of-irish-unity-but-there-are-signs-of-change-38966199.html (accessed 20 May, 2020)
YouGov (2020) Scottish independence: Yes leads as Remainers increasingly back splitting with
UK,
January
30,
2020.
As
at
https://yougov.co.uk/topics/politics/articles -
reports/2020/01/30/scottish -independence-yes-leads-remainers-increasi (accessed 10 May, 2020)
YouGov (2019) Voting Intention: Brex 26%, Lab 20%, Lib Dem 20%, Con 18% (5 -6 June), June
7. As at https://yougov.co.uk/topic s/politics/articles-reports/2019/06/07/voting -intention-brex26-lab-20-lib-dem-20-con-18- (accessed 10 May, 2020)
136
Ⅱ-3
Hopes and Fears in a pre -and-post Brexit Britain
Sarah Harrison
[ Abstract]
In 2016, the surprise successes of the UK Vote Leave and Donald Trump’s Presidential
campaigns defied most expectations. In different ways, both events have arguably transformed the
political landscape with lasting effects. However, these electoral outcome s have also raised
important questions about what has changed in the political psychology of voters and, indeed, of
nations. In particular, the significance and intense emotionality of the unique EU membership
referendum undoubtedly provides a fascinating insight into British citizens’ hearts and minds.
This chapter presents findings derived from a panel study of three consecutive mass surveys
conducted with the same respondents prior to and then after the referendum on the UK’s
membership of the European U nion that took place on 23 r d June 2016. Analysis of the quantitative
and qualitative data is used to highlight the intricate complexities of this remarkable vote and the
findings reveal that there is unprecedented polarisation and division within communiti es. This
chapter concludes by discussing the wider implications of these findings within a similarly
challenging context for the global political status quo.
Introduction
In 2016, the surprise successes of the UK Vote Leave and Donald Trump’s Presidential
campaigns defied most expectations. In different ways, both events have arguably transformed the
political landscape with lasting effects. However, these electoral outcome s have also raised
important questions about what has changed in the political psychology of voters and, indeed, of
nations. In particular, the significance and intense emotionality of the unique EU membership
referendum undoubtedly provides a fascinating insight into British citizens’ hearts and minds.
This chapter presents findings derived from a panel study of three consecutive mass surveys
conducted with the same respondents prior to and then after the referendum on the UK’s
membership of the European Union that took place on 23 r d June 2016. The three wave panel -study
included a representative sample of 3000 respondents, featured 300 variables, and was conducted
at three critical time points during the referendum campaign (late April, late May, and the day
137
after the referendum). Analysis of the quantitative and qualitative data is used to highlight the
intricate complexities of this remarkable vote. The questions were designed to probe perceptions,
expectations, and projections of the likely economic, so cial, and political consequences. There is
substantial evidence of polarisation and division within communities on a level that is arguably
unprecedented and has rarely been seen before on this level. This chapter concludes by discussing
the wider implications of these findings within a similarly challenging context for the global
political status quo.
Over the last ten years, the research team of the Electoral Psychology Observatory at the
London School of Economics and Political Science have conducted in -depth empirical research to
gain a better understanding of citizen psychology during critical moments of an election campaign.
Their research examines the psychological mechanisms that are triggered in voters’ minds during
the campaign, at the very moment when citizens are casting their ballot, and after an election.
Their findings have shown, for example, that in most elections, 20 -30% of voters only make a
final decision within a week of th e vote, half of them on Election Day. Moreover, more than a
quarter of citizens have cried because of an election (Bruter and Harrison, 2017a; 2020). The
increasingly important role of emotions in voting has also revealed widespread hostility among
voters during the Brexit referendum and US Presidential election, not only towards politicians
and the political system but also towards fellow voters (Bruter and Harrison, 2020).
These findings have underlined how emotions can play a fundamental role in electio ns and
that divisions within society are increasingly witnessed across established and emerging
democracies. A case of example is presented by the 23 r d June UK Referendum on EU membership
(which is now commonly referred to as Brexit). The highly fractious debate split the country into
two visibly opposed camps. The unexpected result of a Leave victory has contributed to entrenched
tension and presented more questions than it has answered with far -reaching implications not only
within the UK and the European Union but also all across the world.
Throughout the course of this chapter, we will explore some of the key findings derived from
a series of mass surveys we conducted during the campaign leading up to the Referendum and in
the weeks following the vote 1 . We will explore some of the striking observations that tell a story
of division and polarisation within British society as a result of this vote. Moreover, one of the
The survey was designed by Michael Bruter and Sarah Harrison at the Electoral Psychology
Observatory. It was conducted in collaboration with Opinium. The first wave of the panel study
was fielded 22-28 April 2016 (3,008 respondents), and 17 -19 May 2016 (2,111 respondents, i.e.
70.2% of the original sample), and a third wave on Referendum Night 23 r d June 2016. More
information on the methodology and other findings derived from this data can be found in the
report ‘The Impact of Brexit on Consumer Behaviour ’
http://opinium.co.uk/wp content/uploads/2016/08/the_impact_of_brexit_on_consumer_behaviour_0.pdf
138
1
most interesting observations pertains to the fact that we have been able to track the endurance of
these fractures over time as we highlighted some additional insights from a series of surveys, we
conducted during the UK General Election on June 8 t h 2017.
Before the vote: apprehension and uncertainty
The referendum on the UK’s membersh ip of the EU was widely regarded as an incredibly
important vote with far-reaching consequences not only within the UK but also to the extent that
the result would likely impact countries far beyond the shores of Britain.
In this respect, we
asked respondents of the survey that we conducted prior to the vote to rank some recent elections
from most to least important for the United Kingdom. Overall, table 1.1 shows that a vast majority
of respondents view the June referendum on EU membership as the single m ost important vote for
the UK in a generation (54%). Over 80% see it as one of the top three votes to take place during
recent years.
Table 1.1 about here
Whilst the vote itself was perceived to be historic, with notably important consequences for
all concerned, it was also characterised by a very negative campaign from both sides of the debate.
In terms of the messages and the tone of the campaigns, the Lea ve supporters played upon the
perceived fears and insecurities that many citizens in the UK were feeling as a result of an
extended period of austerity, high levels of unemployment, and failed immigration policies. The
Remain campaign instead focused on th e more ‘rational’ side of the arguments highlighting the
more technical aspects of EU membership without really appealing to the more cultural value of
this shared community. In order to illustrate, the opposing discourse of the two campaigns we
used an open-ended question to capture the unprompted reactions of respondents. We asked
participants to report the words that they spontaneously though of when imagining a Remain or a
Leave outcome in June. These references are illustrated by a word clouds in figur e 1.2. While
both Remain and Leave outcomes attract a mixture of positive and negative spontaneous
references, it is quite clear that a Leave victory feels significantly more threatening to respondents
as a whole with two of the top three categories being negative and focusing on fear and danger.
All of the negative elements associated with leaving the EU pertain either to the future state of
the countries (risk, disaster, chaos, conflict, etc) or, implicitly perceived to be a criticism of the
Leave voters (foolish, stupid). By contrast, negatives associated with remaining within the EU
pertain to problematic policy issues (such as immigration) or negativity towards the politicians
139
and elites who are perceived to be biased and untrustworthy.
Figure 1.2 about here
It should however also be noted that on the whole, these references are far more positive
compared to our findings of similar association questions in the context of UK General elections
in 2010 and 2015 as well as the 2011 referendum on the proposal of an Alternative Voting electoral
system. It is also particularly interesting to note contrary to the substantive messages of the
official Remain campaign, citizens privilege references to the idea of the shared community more
than the ‘technical’ benefits tha t are often associated with EU membership. Indeed, these
overwhelmingly positive references highlight unity, being part of a community, strength, and
solidarity are in fact significantly higher than references to prosperity, wealth, etc which do not
feature in the top 10 references. This suggests that perhaps the campaign led by the Remain camp
grossly underestimated the shared cultural value and importance that British citizens feel for the
European Union.
In a way, the reliance of the Remain campaign on highlighting the more
technical aspects of membership was largely misplaced as it failed to capture the hearts and minds
of Britons who were inclined to vote Remain and that were just as emotionally involved in the
referendum as their counterparts on the o pposing side.
Electoral identity in the Referendum: two alternative roles of the voter
A central theme in our analysis of the elections we have studied as part of the large scale
electoral psychology project is a question that pertains to voters’ electoral identity (Bruter and
Harrison, 2020). We ask voters to imagine that the election in qu estion is the final match of the
football world cup (or whatever sport is deemed to be the national sport) and that the parties are
the players of the teams competing to win the game, in this context we ask the voters whether
they see themselves as referee s or supporters. The two roles have quite different parts to play
within the game and can influence how they perceive the election and their electoral identity.
In the context of this Referendum, table 1.3 shows that a majority of voters see themselves as
“supporters” rather than “referees”. This finding contrasts to what we usually witness in General
Elections, whereby a majority of voters see themselves as referees. This suggests that voters are
typically have stronger preferences on the issue of whether we should be “in” or “out” of the EU
compared to their stance towards political parties competing for their vote.
140
Table 1.3 about here
At the same time, however, we should also note that even more than in traditional elections,
respondents demonstrate a clear perception that a responsibility is weighing on their shoulders.
This is notably observed when we asked them about their main fear in the context of the vote
using an open-ended question, and a very significant proportion of the people whom we surveyed
replied that they were very worried about making the wrong decision.
As a consequence of this burden of responsibility, the Referendu m was also perceived to be largely
concerned with socio-tropic projections. In this sense, the table shows below when arbitrating
between the decisions associated with voting for what they believe will be best for them and what
will be best for the country, the latter clearly took precedence.
Table 1.4 about here
This is true both when we ask the question directly (as above) and when we measure it
indirectly by checking which of the perceived best result for the individual or the perceived best
result for the country is the best predictor of a respondent’s voting intention. The majority of
people would likely think about other people (versus themselves) the rest of the country when
making their decision (73%), children (68%), and the poor (59%). Just over half of the respondents
(55%) report they will vote according to what they believe is best for themselves These findings
reveal the weighted sense of responsibility and burden on people’s shoulders to ‘make the right
decision’ in this historic referendum t hat would influence and shape the path of the country forever.
In particular, voters give greater emphasis to the generation of today’s children than to their own
or the elderly (68% for the generation of today’s children and only 48% for the elderly).This
finding is also echoed by the finding that respondents typically reported that remaining in the EU
would be better for younger people than for older ones, whilst a Leave result would be a more
favourable outcome for older citizens than for young people.
We have seen from the findings highlighted above that the decision on how to vote in the
referendum is an extremely important choice and is influenced by highly emotional and projective
considerations. In the next section, in order to better understand the implications of these
evaluations, we discuss the various aspects that respondents would miss if the UK were to leave
the EU.
Aspects of EU Membership that British citizens would miss if the UK were to leave the EU
141
We find that European identity is largely focused on a daily practice of citizenship rather than
more abstract attributes of European integration. While many politicians speak of peace (positive)
or bureaucracy (negative), prosperity (positive) or ineffici encies (negative), the vast majority of
citizens see the European Union through the rights and duties that it gives them and the way in
which it impacts upon their everyday life.
With this in mind, we asked respondents which aspects of being European citi zens they would
or would not miss if Britain chose to leave the European Union in June. The most interesting
aspect of this question is that it reveals two different layers of rights and privileges:
•
A series of secondary citizenship rights, typically more social or practical (medical
coverage, consumer protection, right to freely carry goods within the EU, etc) and which
are largely reported to be important across age groups;
•
A series of more intense primary citizenship rights (living, working, or studying anywhere
in the EU, being part of a political community, EU passport), which would be particularly
missed by the younger voters, but much less so by older voters.
From these findings displayed in table 1.5, we can see that young people aged 18 to 39 place
the highest emphasis on potentially missing the right to live anywhere in the EU, work or study
anywhere in the EU, and three quarters of them would also miss having a Euro pean passport or
being part of a unified human community of Europeans. However, less than 50% of those aged 55
and over would miss any of these aspects of EU membership.
Table 1.5 about here
By contrast, while such elements as consumer protection, being able to bring back goods from
anywhere in the EU and medical protection across the EU territory are of less concern to the
younger generation of voters, they would be missed by all generation. This is particularly true of
EU-wide medical protection which would be missed by two thirds of the voters aged 55 and above.
It is also worth mentioning that a majority of all age groups, including the oldest ones, would also
miss the presence of waiters or nurses from all over the EU in their daily life, which is in
interesting contrast with the generally negative views expressed towards immigration as a generic
concept.
It is also interesting to note that when we disaggregate the results by intended vote, a majority
142
of those who are unsure of how they will cast thei r ballot on 23 r d June would typically miss most
existing EU citizenship rights at least to some extent, which seems to bring them closer to EU
supporters on the value of existing EU -related rights.
With the country divided on the issue of the whether to L eave or Remain in the EU, the
Referendum result would determine which side would be de facto victorious. However, the fact
that the debate had split the country along divisive lines, meant that there were explicit concerns
that whichever way the result would go, the implications of leaving the EU would be far -reaching
and affect every detail of d aily life. The next section looks at precisely this issue by asking
respondents about who they would perceive to be the expected winners and losers of the
Referendum
Perceived winners and losers of the Referendum
Table 1.6 shows that in terms of the lose rs and winners of the Referendum, quite unsurprisingly,
respondents tend to rationalise their predictions with their expected vote, so that the most pro Remain generational group, 18 -24 year old’s tend to think that everybody would lose out in the
case of a Brexit, whilst the most pro -Brexit demographic category, over 65 year old’s believe that
every category of British people would in fact be winners.
Table 1.6 about here
What is more paradoxical, however, is that when hierarchy between categories, the m ore
individual categories are seen by young voters as standing to lose from a Brexit outcome, the
more it is claimed that they would gain from it by elderly voters. In that sense, for 18 -24 year
old’s, the main losers would be – in that order – people like the respondent, young people, the
unemployed, and the middle class, and these categories, in the exact same order would actually
be the main beneficiaries of a Brexit vote according to 65 year old’s and over.
In summary, it was clear from the findings der ived from the surveys we conducted prior to the
referendum that citizens were fully aware of the importance of this vote and there was a sense
that nothing will be the same after the vote (whichever way the result went). This perceived
‘weight of responsibility’ was acutely reflected in the responses and underlines the fluidity and
intensity in the emotions, divisions, and future projections of the UK electorate.
The unexpected outcome
143
As we have seen from the above discussion, this Referendum was unique in its importance for
the future of Britain’s place not only within the European Union but also its standing on the global
stage. With polls predicting a result too close to call, the stakes were extremely high, and all eyes
were watching to see which way the result would swing. As a result, the atmosphere of Election
Day was electrifyingly tense with expectation and apprehension. The sense of the weight of
responsibility that most voters felt was almost tangible. The fractious campaign had split the
country into two opposed camps, and it was now time to see which side would be victorious.
The result was 52% vs 48% in favour of Leaving the European Union. The victory of the Leave
camp was largely unexpected, and reverberations of this shock were felt all a cross the world.
Turnout was particularly high at 72% illustrating that the nation fully acknowledged and
recognised the importance of this momentous occasion. On the whole, Leave won the majority of
votes in England and Wales, while every council in Scotl and saw Remain majorities. Striking
geographical divisions were illustrated by further analysis of the results. Many large urban cities
led the vote to Remain, whilst many suburban and rural areas preferred to vote Leave. London
exemplifies this trend. The capital was depicted as ‘an island of Euro -enthusiasm amid a south east that was mostly resolved to quit’ (the Guardian, 2017). The majorities for Remain in some
inner-London boroughs were overwhelming: for example, 75% of the vote in Camden and 78% in
Hackney. Outside of the city, to the south, Sutton voted 54% for Leave, as did Barking and
Dagenham, where 63% voted to Leave (the Guardian, 2017). In addition, in cities where
universities are dominant – Norwich, Bristol, Brighton, and especially Oxford and Cambridge, the
Remain vote was arch-dominant with votes often reaching over 70%. In the North of England, the
picture was less clear cut, several big cities – including Leeds, Manchester and Liverpool –voted
largely to Remain, while the Leave vote was sig nificantly dominant in smaller cities and towns
like Wigan, St Helens, Doncaster and Barnsley.
The tensions and strains that were experienced during the campaign followed through to
Election Day and the days that followed the vote. It was undoubtedly one of the most emotional
votes of recent memory. One of the most remarkable findings derived from o ur survey captured
this emotionality. We found that one third of Brits claimed they had tears in their eyes when they
discovered the result of the Referendum (Bruter and Harrison, 2020). We often presume as
political scientists that citizens do not care ab out elections and that many who do turnout on
election day are dutifully carrying out their civic responsibilities, but this result perhaps sheds
some substantial doubt on this assumption. People who don’t care don’t cry (Bruter and Harrison,
2017b). With this striking result in mind, we move on to the next section to discuss the
consequences that could be observed in the days and weeks after the result in order to better
understand the complexities of this historic vote.
144
The aftermath of the vote
Usually in elections, we observe a ‘honeymoon’ period after an election, when the various
groups that campaigned get together and there is a general sense of consensus that emerges
between winners and losers that the national interest should be served and that unity and cohesion
should be prioritised. Yet, in the case of the Brexit referendum, there has been no ‘healing’, no
coming together of the groups, the Leavers and Remainers are still distinct groups with very
different and opposed views on how the fu ture should be directed. The divisions remain and the
hostility expressed towards one another during the campaign strikingly, our findings show that
51% of respondents confessed to feeling anger towards people who had voted differently from
them, and 46% even expressed some disgust (Bruter and Harrison, 2020). This is obviously a
concern but also reinforces this perception of emotionality of the vote and how much people do
care about voting and political issues. Perhaps even more worryingly, is the fact tha t 12 months
after the vote, there is evidence that this polarisation within society is not subsiding (Van der Eijk
& Rose, 2017). These fracture lines are evident across generations (particularly the difference in
the way the young voted predominantly to R emain whilst the older generation voted to Leave) but
can also be seen across geographic locations too, with many large urban cities leading the vote to
Remain and many suburban and rural areas preferring to vote Leave. Whilst anti -elite sentiment
has been an almost constant theme within the campaigns of populist parties and this has often
filtered through into the discourse of citizens alike, it is perhaps a new and even alarming prospect
that these fractures and divisions have been translated into hostili ty against other citizens.
Moreover, these divisions within society were also observable across generations. This
generational divide was highlighted by a series of questions that we included in a survey that we
conducted in collaboration with Opinium tha t probed implicit and explicit associations with the
EU (Bruter and Harrison, 2017b). We found that when asked to compare the EU to an animal,
older Brits chose a representation of an elephant, whilst younger respondents preferred to
associate the EU with a lion. When asked to compare the EU to a painting, older Brits chose
Guernica and the young a Dance by Matisse. Similarly, when we asked for a human trait, the top
answer amongst the old was stupidity and amongst the young intelligence. The symbolism of t hese
contrasted visions should not be dismissed as they offer a real insight into the juxtaposed visions
that British citizens hold. These connotations of the EU shed some fascinating light upon the
divisions within British society and how different the yo unger and older generations perceive the
EU.
These generational differences were also explicit in the voting behaviour of younger and older
145
voters in the recent December 2019 UK General Election. An insight into the motivations of the
young voters has revealed that young citizens between the ages of 18 and 24 years old - were
significantly more motivated by a desire for change, a rejection of the vision of Brexit that the
Government was promoting, and frustration with the current political climate than the rest of the
voting population (Harrison, 2020a). Those differences have also given rise to broader senses of
electoral hostility between citizens (Bruter and Harrison, 2020), and also, ultimately of a growing
sense of democratic frustration amongst citizen s (Harrison, 2020b).
Implications of Brexit further afield: A message to heed?
For many years, various groups within our societies feel ‘left behind’ as they struggle to grasp
the volatile and unpredictable political, economic and social context. Withi n Europe, populist
parties and their politicians have won electoral gains due to their platforms that address these
concerns and have seen this a political opportunity to push their vision of socio -political
transformation. Indeed, many of those who voted for Brexit will be the first victims of inflation,
the first victims of disenfranchisement of the UK from EU law, and of the tax changes that
Brexiters are threatening to use in retaliation for what they call a ‘bad deal’ for the UK.
It is crucial that we now start to recognise that citizens feel more European than elites give
them credit for, but also that their very Europeanness is a major challenge for the EU because it
makes citizens far more critical, and also far more legitimate in their criticism. E uropeans –
especially young Europeans – do not feel European simply because it has ‘benefits’. They feel
European because they are, and because they feel a sense of belonging and ownership of the
project it represents. If you are German, Hungarian, or Port uguese, you can perfectly disagree
with – even be furiously critical – of the policies carried out by your Government without
questioning the nation they apply to. European citizens may have indeed reached a point where
precisely because they have appropri ated the EU political system, they also want the
accompanying right to be increasingly critical of the actions of those who lead the European Union.
Leaders, be they national or European, can no longer hide behind the fact that they protect
European integration to ask for a blank cheque to lead it the way they want any more. Citizens
are demanding more democratic accountability from the EU and it needs to respond if it is
restoring faith and trust in the project.
Perhaps, we may see that in the forthcoming years, Brexit may paradoxically provide an
opportunity to engage with the challenge and allow it to commit to such a reinvention. In fact, the
‘counter-revolutions’ witnessed in Austria, the Netherlands, and France, have reinforced the
appetite of citizens for a Europeanised and inclusive political reinvention rather than a national 146
populist one. French President Emmanuel Macron has clearly unequivocally staked out his
position and placed the EU at the heart of his political project, which has been endorse d by a large
majority of French voters both during the campaign and after his election with confirmation of
his vision in the legislative elections.
However, given the complexities of the series of economic, social, migration, and currently
the Covid-19 crises, that have confronted the EU, it is increasingly evident that the European
project is perhaps facing a critical test of solidarity. The fractures that have been evidenced in
British society throughout the Referendum campaign could also feature in oth er European nations
with equal strength and drama, posing a risk of isolating many people, not least young people and
those who live in large urban areas – to feel as forgotten as their counterparts who voted to leave
the EU. The challenge to simultaneousl y reassure both sides, whilst providing optimistic hope for
the future is overwhelming. The shockwaves that were triggered by Brexit will continue to
reverberate on the global stage as the uncertainty over how the process will be implemented has
not diminished but in fact in some respects has increased. The geopolitical consequences of Brexit
have been felt in countries from the US to Australia and everywhere in between. Meanwhile, the
Brexit saga continues to dominate political life and the continued volat ility that is now
characteristic of the British electoral system.
Table 1.1: The most important vote in a generation
The most important vote for our nation
Ranked top
In the top 3
The 2016 EU Referendum
54
81
The 2015 General Election
13
58
The 1975 EEC Referendum
12
50
The 2014 Scottish Independence Referendum
9
48
The 2016 Local Elections
7
31
The 2011 Referendum on the electoral system
5
31
Figure 1.2: Word clouds based on frequencies of references to Remain and Leave victories
147
Table 1.3: Electoral identity: referees or supporters?
OVERALL
BY AGE GROUP
18-39
40-64
65+
Referees*
15
20
12
12
Supporters*
42
35
44
49
Neither/Both*
43
45
44
39
Notes: Referees represent the total of “mostly” and “definitely” a referee, Supporters the total of
“mostly” and “definitely” a supporter and the Neither/Both total the total of those who answered
“neither” and “a bit of both”.
Table 1.4: Socio-tropic versus ego-centric evaluations
British
Children
people
Main
British
The
companies
poorest
Yourself
The
The
elderly
world
Europeans
73
68
61
59
55
48
41
33
27
32
39
41
45
52
59
67
concern/a
lot
A little/ not
at all
Table 1.5: Aspects of EU membership that UK citizens would miss in the case of a Leave victory
The right to live in another EU country
Being
able
to
bring
back
anything
when
18-24
25-39
40-54
86
78
56
45
44
84
77
61
52
50
travelling within the EU
148
55-64
65+
No mobile phone roaming surcharge across the
84
77
56
47
44
83
72
53
44
43
Benefitting from EU consumer protection
82
81
67
59
55
The right to medical treatment anywhere in the
80
84
68
65
66
The right to work or study in another EU country
77
78
51
39
36
Holding a European Union passport
77
72
44
35
32
Feeling part of a large human community
76
71
53
42
42
The ability to appeal to the European Court of
75
78
57
53
47
72
67
43
35
32
71
71
52
52
58
67
64
42
34
29
55
55
31
22
23
EU
The
possibility
to
make
large
purchases
anywhere in the EU
EU
Human Rights
The right to vote in local elections anywhere
you live in the EU
The presence of nurses and waiters from other
EU countries
The right to vote in European Parliament
elections
Symbols like the flag, anthem, etc
Table 1.6: Winners and losers in the case of a leave victory
18-24
25-39
40-54
55-64
65+
People like me
-26
-15
0
+3
+20
Young people
-26
-13
-1
+10
+16
Unemployed
-18
-7
+1
+3
+16
Middle class
-17
-10
0
+3
+12
UK Business
-14
-15
-8
-3
+7
Elderly
-11
-7
0
+1
+9
149
References
Bruter, M., & Harrison, S. (2017a). Understanding the emotional act of voting. Nature Human
Behaviour, 1(1) 1-3.
Bruter,
M.
and
Harrison,
S.
(2017b)
The
impact
of
Brexit
on
consumer
behaviour
http://opinium.co.uk/wpcontent/uploads/2016/08/the_impact_of_brexit_on_consumer_behaviour
_0.pdf
accessed 30/04/2020
Bruter, M., & Harrison, S. (2020). Inside the mind of a vote r: a new approach to electoral
psychology. Princeton University Press.
Harrison, S. (2020a) A vote of frustration? Young voters in the General Election 2019.
Parliamentary Affairs vol. 73.4
Harrison, S. (2020b) Democratic frustration: concept, dimensions and behavioural consequences.
Societies, 10(1), 19.
https://www.theguardian.com/politics/2016/jun/24/eu -voting-map-lays-bare-depth-of-divisionacross-britain accessed on 02/05/2020
Van der Eijk, C & Rose, C. (2017) Is the country coming together after the Brexit Referendum?
Available online at: http://nottspolitics.org/2017/04/25/is -the-country-coming-together-after-thebrexit-referendum/ accessed on 30/04/2020
150
II-4
European Governance after the Brexit and the COVID-19 Shocks:
A New Phase of Solidarity and Integration in the EU from the Japanese Perspective
Koji Fukuda
[ Abstract ]
Britain ’ s decision to withdraw from the EU and the
“ COVID-19 ”
has had a
Japan and the rest of the world.
considerable impact,
new coronavirus infection
not only on the EU itself, but also on
The purpose of this chapter it to sketch out the dynamic
between the EU and its member states in European Governance post-Brexit and after the global
public health crisis, that accompanies the explosive spread of new-type pneumonia, to clarify the
actual status of the EU. In response to COVID-19, the President of the European Commission,
Dr. Von der Leyen is advancing reforms based on the Green Deal policy and the “ Digital
Europe ” strategy will strongly promote. It is to be hoped that the EU ’ s capacity for
integration and the relationship of mutual trust between the organization and its citizens. It will
be fundamentally enhanced by the new framework of social solidarity. The current economic and
public health crisis can only be effectively addressed by coordinated democratic and scientific
solutions at global level in cooperation with citizens. Although the adoption of this range of
measures will present the EU with an opportunity to regain a sense of solidarity and to rediscover
its
“ raison-d ’ etre ” , it may also be one of the most arduous challenges that the
organization has faced since its foundation.
Introduction
The Brexit and the rapid spread of new coronavirus infection has had a considerable impact, not only
on the EU itself, but also in Japan and the rest of the world. They have emboldened Euro sceptics in each
of the union's member states, causing concerns of an anti-EU domino effect. European integration is a
social experiment at regional level that has created a shared framework for globalization. As election
results in various European member states have made clear, a split is developing between European
citizens who support the unity or the EU, thus embracing globalization, and those who put their own nation
first, anti-globalists who are opposed to European integration. In other words, in the EU forces promoting
integration and favoring solidarity coexist with forces of resistance. This situation stems from the diverse
nature of individual member states governments and domestic frameworks, which has created tension
between supporters of integration and fragmentation.
151
The purpose of this chapter is to sketch out the dynamics between the EU and its member states in
European governance post-Brexit and after the global public health crisis, that accompanies the explosive
spread of new-type pneumonia, to clarify the actual status of the EU. With regard to further integration and
consider the disparities and the poverty between nations and classes, caused by this social upheaval
divided my paper into three parts.
First, in order to analyze the political and economic impact of Brexit and the COVID-19 (New
Coronavirus Pandemic) on Europe, I will give a general outline of neoliberal globalization and European
Integration from a new political- economy perspective. Second, I will discuss the trickledown hypothesis,
labour market reforms, the issue of poverty, and the future of social solidarity in the EU, focusing on the
communality of entities such as families and small regional societies. This approach does not merely focus
on the relationship between national governments, shareholders, and employers, but includes multiple
stakeholders, bringing the distributive relationship between labor and management into the scope of
consideration. Third, I will analyze the disparities within the EU single market, treating them, as a bundle
of diverse frameworks, Finally I will recommend a direction for the reform of EU integrated governance,
including the adjustment and control of member states domestic frameworks, employment systems, social
security and public health policy systems.
1
Neoliberal Globalization and European Integration
A consideration of the referendum results in Britain, which led to Brexit 1 , and the results of the
Presidential and Parliamentary French elections, suggests that divisions among citizens, i.e. social
cleavages between generations, regions, and income/education brackets, are common to these member
states and are increasingly manifesting themselves, and that widening disparities and increasing poverty lie
behind the rise of populism and the increasing incidence of home-grown terrorism 2 . The multiple risks
facing the EU (the Eurozone crisis, the migration/refugee crisis, and the new coronavirus crisis, etc.)
should also be considered in the light of social exclusion.
The UK instituted a system of social welfare with the Elizabethan Poor Law as its starting point, and
provided a model for the world with its creation of a welfare state following World War II. However, after
Margaret Thatcher took power in 1979, she joined with other neoconservative political leaders, including
the US President Ronald Reagan and Japanese Prime Minister Yasuhiro Nakasone, in advancing a process
of neoliberal globalization. Seeking to realize “small government” in order to reduce government fiscal
responsibilities, within the G7 framework. These leaders implemented policy packages designed to
Clarke,Harold,D.,Goodwin M.,Whiteley,P.eds.,(2016) ,Brexit: Why Britain voted to leave the European
Union,
Cambridge University Press.
2
Koji Fukuda(2016), “European Governance after the “Brexit” Shock: from the Japanese perspective″
USJI Voice, Vol.18.
1
152
increase the international competitiveness of corporations, encompassing a number of structural reforms:
deregulation, privatization, the reduction of corporate taxes, labor market reforms, the implementation of
austerity budgets, and welfare cuts.
In 1985, Jacques Delors, President of the European Commission, published the White Paper
“Completing the Internal Market, encouraging the EU to proceed on its course of neoliberal globalization.
Appealing to “Social Europe,” Delors stressed that both economic policy and social policy were essential
to market unification, and that it would be necessary to realize a balance between the two
3
. However,
the actual EU integration process gave most weight to economic policy, resulting in the focus on social
values gradually receding. Against the background of intensifying neoliberalism, the EU and its member
states embraced a philosophy of market fundamentalism, and an American-style concept, the supremacy of
the shareholder, came to dominate the EU thinking.
2
The Failure of the Trickledown Hypothesis and Labor Market Reforms
With intensifying globalization under the regime of financial capitalism, there was minimal
consideration of societal benefit as a whole, or for the public good. Share price-linked incentives, such as
stock options which must be cashed within a fixed time period, spurred corporate managers to pursue
short-term profits. With globalization as the rallying cry, economic organizations, corporate managers, and
investors called on governments to reduce corporate taxes, shifted their production bases offshore, used tax
havens in order to avoid or reduce their tax burden to the greatest extent possible, and devoted themselves
to boosting share prices, reaping enormous profits in short periods. Placing its faith in the trickledown
effect, the concept that as the rich get richer, benefit will trickle down to the poorer social strata, the second
Abe administration also adopted a policy of supporting big companies and global investors. One of the
effects of the trickledown theory, a theory often asserted within the neoliberal framework, is to legitimize
the maintenance and expansion of the entrenched interests of the wealthy; however, there is no evidence to
support the existence of any trickledown effect. The Nobel Prize-winning economist Joseph Eugene
Stiglitz has strongly criticized the fact that under neoliberal policy, the US taxation and regulatory systems,
rather than increasing welfare throughout society as a whole, have been politically manipulated in a
manner that impoverishes 99% of US citizens. The fact that no trickledown effect has occurred in Japan, or
in the European member states which implemented neoliberal reforms, was demonstrated by a research
report based on a survey of the actual status of the OECD in December 2014 4 , making dear the theory’s
3
Koji Fukuda(2002) “ Institutional Reform and European Governance”, Koji Fukuda,et.al.eds European
Governance after Nice, Routledge,p.47.
Cross,Davis eds.(2017),The Politics of Crisis in Europe, Cambridge University Press.,pp.221-235..Koji
Fukuda (2014)“The global economic crisis and the future of labor market policy regime : implications for
economic governance in the European Union and Japan”,H.Magara ed. (2014), Economic Crises and Policy
Regimes:, E&E
4
153
failure
5
.
A consideration of the social reality of European member states shows that labor market reforms in
each country that emphasized “labor flexibility” and prioritized employer profits have not led to
employment creation and have resulted in a lack of social protection and safety-net. As a result, economic
growth has diminished, and unemployment has increased. Robert Boyer, an economist of the “regulation
school,” has pointed out that policies designed to increase labor market fluidity have been a total failure in
European member states with poor social protection
6
. European member states experiencing debt crises
applied severe fiscal austerity programs in exchange for the provision of fiscal support by the troika (the
EU, the IMF, and the ECB), but the expected fiscal reconstruction has not manifested itself, there is,
rather, concern that the economies will fall into a state of deflation , referred to as “Japanization” due to
Japan’s unsuccessful struggle with its deflationary economy since 1998. In Japan, around 40% of
university graduates' experience difficulty in finding regular and stable employment; unwillingly forced to
take irregular employment, their low incomes make it difficult to form life plans, including plans for to
marry and have children. The impoverishment of young workers is weakening the ability to secure funds
for social security, and is even generating fears regarding the collapse of the social security system itself.
The result of the implementation of common neoliberal policies in Japan, the US, and Europe against the
background of increasing globalization has been the magnification of social disparities. What this means is
that that while some of the wealthy with unearned income may have become wealthier, huge numbers of
workers have been laid off or experienced pay cuts. Working conditions have declined, and workers have
had no choice but to take low- wage work, contributing to social destabilization. Moreover, since 2016, a
number of papers with titles such as “The Death of Social Europe 7 ” have been published which requestion the rationale for the existence of the EU. Enabling us to understand this situation, the next section
will look at the problem of economic disparities in relation to fiscal expenditure in European member
states, via an international comparison based on OECD statistics.
3
Poverty Trends in EU Member states and the Movement towards a New Phase of EU
Integration, beyond Social cleavages after the Brexit and the New Coronavirus Pandemic
Following the collapse of Lehman Brothers in 2008, economic and financial crises intensified
globally, and the effects of the Eurozone crisis, originating in Greece, are still being felt. Furthermore, it is
feared that the new coronavirus crises after 2020 will cause economic damage that far exceeds the Lehman
5
Koji Fukuda (2016), “Growth, Employment and Social Security Governance in the EU and Japan”,
Policy Change under New Democratic Capitalism, Routledge, pp.121.
6
7
Ibid.
Ewing,D.Keith ( 2017 ) ,”The Death of Social Europe” Brirkinshaw,P.J. Biondi,Andrea(2017),Britain
Alone 、 Wolters Kluwer.pp.233-255.
154
shock and lead to the Great Depression. The negative effects of globalization have extended throughout
Europe, and as a result, economic growth has slowed, which together with declining birthrates and aging
populations, is making it fiscally difficult to continue to provide social security, medical and the other
social services even in the traditionally wealthier European member states. NPM reforms, which
reconsider the powers of administrative authorities, have been pushed through in many member states even
as the scope and provision of social services have been narrowed down. There has been a trend towards the
outsourcing and privatization of services, representing a change from public assistance to mutual
assistance, or even self-assistance. As a result, new-type pneumonia crises caused medical collapse in Italy
and France. The OECD researchers have analyzed the relationship between trends in the Gini coefficient,
macroeconomics, and government expenditure, and compared the percentage of GDP represented by fiscal
expenditure (by purpose) from the governments of the major EU member states and Japan (See: Figure 1,
Figure 2).
Figure 1
( Source )OECD(2014),FOCUS on Inequality and Growth ,OECD December
2014https://www.oecd.org/social/Focus-Inequality-and-Growth-2014.pdf
http://www.oecd.org/els/soc/Focus-Inequality-and-Growth-JPN-2014.pdf,Accessed.3
March , 2018 .
. The OECD indexed social security-related public and private expenditure under the category social
expenditure,” and conducted international comparisons(See: Figure 3 ).
What this data shows, first, is that there is no correlation between economic growth and the size of
government. If we focus next on factors related to social justice (economic disparities and poverty), a clear
correlation emerges. Neoliberalism stresses that if social security is made increasingly comprehensive and
governments become too large, this will lead to fiscal collapse. However, in the US and Japan, the Gini
coefficient (an index of inequality in disposable income) and the relative poverty rate are high, public debt
is becoming increasingly severe, and disparities are growing. Comparing Gini coefficients, the coefficients
for Japan, at 0.341, and Britain, at 0.349, are both considerably higher than the OECD average of 0.32, and
poverty among the elderly is immense ( See: Figure 2) .
Figure 2
Figure 3
( Source )GLOBAL NOTE,OECD Income Distribution Database(IDD):Gini ,poverty, income, Methods
and Concepts.https://www.globalnote.jp/post-12038.html, accessed on 6 June,2018
155
Not only is Japan's society aging, but the systems in place are extremely inefficient from the
perspective of preventing poverty. In northern and western European countries, such as Germany and
Sweden, which practice big government, Gini coefficients are generally low, with economic disparities and
poverty controlled. There are few deaths in Germany and recovered relatively quickly even in times of
New Coronavirus crises. The same was true in Estonia, Iceland, Lithuania, and Latvia (See:Figure.4.and
Figure.5). The management of poverty and economic disparities is dependent on whether or not a
government is able to display appropriate government functions. Factors related to disparities and poverty
are strongly correlated with small governments; under small government, both the Gini coefficient and the
relative poverty rate are high, indicating a tendency towards the impoverishment of citizens under
regimens of fiscal austerity. By contrast, big government is largely successful in controlling disparities and
poverty. In sum, we can assert that in countries with low Gini coefficients and countries with low
economic disparity, the poverty rate is low, with these countries resistant to divisions among citizens and
avoiding populism8 . In the United States as well as Italy, where economic disparities are large, there
were many victims of the New Coronavirus Pandemic.
The elections in Europe have largely been completed, signaling that the EU integration process is
entering a new phase and experiencing a demand for the strengthening of social policies and policies
promoting social cohesion in order to control economic disparities and poverty, and the implementation of
reforms in order to promote income redistribution at a regional level through public policy. It will be vital
to adjust, coordinate, and achieve cooperation between EU policy and domestic policy, realizing a policy
that controls disparities and division within the populace. What will be required in order to increase the
EU's ^integration ability^ will be the involvement of not only the first and second sectors, but also of the
third, civic sector, the European civil society, in the EU policy process. These three sectors need to create a
system that bolsters solidarity at the regional level and facilitates the implementation of fiscal policy,
increasing the income of the middle class. These measures will generate a dynamism that increases
consumption, creating a virtuous cycle with economic growth.
4.COVID-19 related policies and coordinated approach in the EU/Member-States for restoring
freedom of movement and lifting internal border controls
Since the novel coronavirus epidemic, later named COVID-19, was first reported in December 2019
in Wuhan, China, this new form of pneumonia has spread beyond national borders worldwide, posing a
significant threat to humanity. According to a study by John Hopkins University, as of June 3, 2020, there
were 6.4 million infected people worldwide and more than 380,000 dead. In mid-January 2020, the WHO
Ramswell,P.Q.(2018),Euroscepticism and the Rising Threat from the Left and Right,Lexington
Books,pp.39-74
8
156
stated that there was "no evidence of coronavirus transmission from person to person." However, it became
clear on March 12 that human-to-human transmission had indeed taken place, and the WHO DirectorGeneral Dr. Tedros Adhanom Ghebreyesus declared that the new corona infection was officially a
"pandemic".
The new-variant pneumonia has continued to rage across Europe since March 2020 and is having a
serious impact on society and the economy there. The UK Prime Minister Boris Johnson, who finalized
Brexit at the end of January 2020, was himself infected with the new corona virus in March. Fortunately,
after treatment, which included several days in an intensive care unit, he was discharged and able to
resume his duties.
The large-scale cross-border movement of people has become a reality since the creation of the
Schengen Area, which comprises 22 EU Member States and several EEA countries which are not EU
members. All these countries are bound by the Schengen Agreement, which abolishes immigration checks
to form one economic space. However, with the spread of the new corona infection, each Schengen
country was forced to strictly curtail such movement by introducing lockdowns, entry bans, and other
border blocking measures. Indeed, with the reinstatement of border inspections, the Schengen Agreement
is now only allowed to operate in the event of "exceptional circumstances". It can be said that the abovementioned measures present a serious threat to the idea of and the “raison d’etre” for European integration.
First, an overview of the legal basis of infectious disease control and public health policies in the EU is
necessary, starting with the Single European Act in July 1987 on Health (Article 100a). It is important to
consider Public health policy (Articles 3 and 129) as stipulated by the treaty on European Union
(Maastricht), “Disease prevention and elimination of health hazards” (Article 152) as described in the EU
(Amsterdam) Treaty in May 1999, and the role of the European Centre for Disease Prevention and Control
(ECDC), which was set up in May 2005. The impact of the EU (Lisbon) Treaty and that of the European
Charter of Fundamental Rights (Article 35), which came into force in December 2009, also need to be
assessed. The Lisbon Treaty is highly significant as it designated public health policy as a “shared power”
jurisdiction area between the EU and its Member States.
Second, the EU's first policy response to and measure against COVID-19, the activation of the "EU
Civil Protection Mechanism" in January 2020, needs to be discussed. During the coronavirus outbreak
which affected the occupants of the Diamond Princess cruise liner in Yokohama, Japan in February 2020,
the Directorate General for Civil Protection and Humanitarian Assistance (ECHO) became the core for
coordination among Member States including Italy, Germany, France, the UK and Ireland, resulting in 71
EU citizens being returned to European countries on February 21st.
Third, it should be noted that the EU has provided a valuable contribution to the international community
during the COVID-19 crisis. For example, via joint investment between the EU central authorities and the
Member States, it has provided relief supplies such as medical devices and personal protective equipment
to China. It has also provided financial assistance to the value of €114 million to the WHO, and €15
157
million to Africa.
Fourth, regarding the EU’s measures to support its Member States, The European Commission set up
the COVID-19 Headquarters on March 2nd. In the European Parliament in April, the President of the
European Commission, Dr. Ursula Gertrud Von der Leyen apologized on behalf of the EU to Italy, where
the spread of the infection had been particularly rapid, for failing to provide the necessary assistance.
Following that, the EU set aside €100 million to fund vaccine research and €37 billion for a "Corona
Corresponding Investment Initiative". In addition, the European Central Bank (ECB), in order to respond
to the profound risk to monetary union, provided €7500 billion for a new Pandemic Emergency Purchase
Program (PEPP). Furthermore, “the European Commission has pledged €300 million to Gavi, the Vaccine
Alliance, for the period 2021–2025.
9
” According to the EU, the total amount dedicated to emergency
economic stimulus measures is equivalent to 7.3% of Euro area GDP
Finally, let us compare the EU countries' COVID-19 policy responses. The number of Polymerase
Chain Reaction (PCR) tests vary from country to country, and the actual number of infected people cannot
be accurately determined. The cause of death has not been consistently identified in terms of a fatality rate
(the number of fatalities per 100,000 people), and it is not uncommon for pneumonia to be given as the
name of the disease. It is simply not possible to compare the number of deaths and the mortality rate per
100,000 population across the various Member States. However, the mortality rate can be estimated to
some extent and may serve as an indicator of medical exhaustion and medical collapse in each country. As
of May 27, 2020, fatality rates for selected European countries are as follows; Belgium 82.8, Spain 58.1,
England 57.7, Italy 55.2, France 42.9, Sweden 43.2, Germany 10.2, There is a particularly marked
difference between 5.1 in Estonia and 1.2 in Latvia
10
.
There are various causes of this mortality gap, including differences in political and medical systems,
differences in bioethics, differences in virus types (S type, K type, L type, etc.), differences in genetic
factors, and differences in lifestyle and habits. It may be beneficial at this point to investigate the factors
described by Professor Shinya Yamanaka, the Nobel Prize winning scientist and academic, as "Factor X".
Regarding Scandinavian countries, only Sweden experienced a high fatality rate due to differences in
bioethics, such as the attitude to euthanasia, and because the severe urban blockades set up in other
member countries were not introduced there. The fact that shops, elementary schools, and secondary
schools continued to function as normal might have had an adverse effect on the country’s infection rate.
As a background factor, it should be mentioned that in Nordic countries such as Finland and Estonia, egovernment, remote work and IT–based work are operating successfully, and both the infection rate and
9
Coronavirus Global Response:
https://ec.europa.eu/commission/presscorner/ detail/en/ip_20_989,3 June ,2020
ECDC(2020) COttps://www.eVID-19 situation update for the EU/EEA and the UK,as of 31 May
2020,https://www.ecdc.europa.eu/en/cases-2019-ncov-eueea,accessed on 3 June,2020
10
158
the fatality rate appear to be low
11
.
Figure.5
( Source )
European Centre for Disease prevention and Control (2020),COVID-19 situation update
for the EU/EEA and the UK,
as of 31 May 2020.
Conclusion
The EU mechanism is a hybrid system of government that fuses with, and functions in tandem with,
the government systems of member states. Its particular characteristic can be described as “multi-level
governance.” In order to resolve issues of poverty and economic disparity in EU member states, we can
point to the importance of maintaining and strengthening integration through network governance, via the
hybrid EU system, while maintaining economic systems based on market principles. Involving European
civil society in the process of integration, rebuilding the solidarity of the union based on the principle of
communality, of either a family or small region, is needed.
The discussion above has shown that countries with low levels of economic disparity (low Gini
coefficients) feature comprehensive social security systems, a high level of investment in education and
public investment, and low poverty rates. Compared to continental European countries, the US, Britain,
and Japan have high Gini coefficients despite the low unemployment rates, high poverty rates, and a high
degree of social inequality. Additionally, analysis of the relationship between trends in economic growth
rates and economic disparities has shown that it is precisely neoliberal reforms and policies based on
market fundamentalism that have worsened the fiscal problems in the considered countries. The facts are
that, as a result of neoliberal reforms, the US has become a debtor nation facing the possibility of fiscal
collapse and Japan’s tax revenues have been drastically reduced, its deflationary economy further
indicative of the fact that financial factors have a significant effect on economic disparity and poverty. As
Joseph E. Stiglitz has pointed out, the reduction of poverty and the elimination of disparities do not only
promote social stability; fair income distribution boosts people's desire to work and their desire to save,
spurring economic growth.
The High Representative of the Union for Foreign Affairs and Security Policy, Josep Bourrell observed
that “COVID-19 will reshape our world. We do not yet know the crisis will end. But we can be sure that by
the time it does, our world will look very different.
12
”
In response to COVID-19, the President of the European Commission, Dr. Von der Leyen is
advancing reforms based on the Green Deal policy and the “Digital Europe” strategy in line with UN
http://eueuropaeeas.fpfis.slb.ec.europa.eu:8084/headquarters/headquarters-homepage/76467/%e6, 3
June,2020.
12
Ibid.
11
159
SDGs. The aim is to promote a circular economy and secure a competitive advantage for European
industry through the global acceptance of EU regulations. She will strongly promote “a European Green
Deal” and “a Europe fit for the digital age”. It is to be hoped that the EU’s capacity for integration and the
relationship of mutual trust between the organization and its citizens will be fundamentally enhanced by
the new framework of social solidarity. It will be essential to redesign taxation and social security systems
to make economic growth and income redistribution possible, and, looking towards the dispersion of risk
through solidarity, the realization of sustainable and inclusive growth that benefits every member of
society.
Many EU institutions have launched measures to support Member States and European citizens,
including the "EEAS’s "COVID-19 Pandemic: European Regulatory Response", ECHO's Cyber Security,
the COVID-19 Hacker Countermeasures, and Europol's Corona Crisis-Related Crime Countermeasures 13 .
It is necessary to demonstrate the purpose of the existence of the EU by ensuring the objectivity of the
media, promptly publicizing the scientific facts related to COVID-19 objectively, all the while insisting on
accuracy and transparency. The current economic and public health crisis can only be effectively addressed
by coordinated democratic and scientific solutions at global level in cooperation with citizens. Although
the adoption of this range of measures will present the EU with an opportunity to regain a sense of
solidarity and to rediscover its “raison-d’etre”, it may also be one of the most arduous challenges that the
organization has faced since its foundation.
13
European External Action Service(2020),EU News 66/2020,23/03/2020Coronavirus Global Response:
https://ec.europaeas.fpfis./commission/presscorner/ detail/en/ip_20_989,3 June ,2020
160
Koji Fukuda, Figures
Figure 1
Figure 2
3
161
Figure 4
(Source)
, accessed on 6 June,2017
162
Figure 5
UK
163
Ⅱ―5 BREIIT: REASONS AND DOMESTIC CONSEUUENCES
Miguel Angel Vecino
[ Abstract ]
The World has finished an era dawned with the Humanism and Renaissance between the XIV and XV
centuries. From then on, the basis settled on these centuries developed into the civilization known as the
Western Civilization. Now, this time is dying away inevitably but no new paradigms have been created in
order to build up a new era in human evolution. We do not know what and how this era will be; we only
know what and how it will be not. Three of the columns of the ancient world have no more than few years
ahead, democracy, capitalism as it was the last 80 years, and the international scenario that emerged with
the creation of the modern state during the mentioned centuries. In the near future, democracy will be
transformed into an ochlocracy, plutocracy o aristocracy (in the original Greek meaning of this word). But
democracy as it has existed is breathing its last moments. Capitalism will return to its origins: the one who
has the financial power, has all the power, and the distribution of wealth for the sake of justice is over.
Finally, the financial and technological powers have imposed new actors in the international arena, new
rules, new concepts but no new scenario which still fuzzy. I have tried to briefly analyse these three areas.
For three years now, Europe has suffered the agonising separation of the United Kingdom from the
European Union (E.U.) which had entered, after strong opposition from France, 46 years ago. Neither
Europe nor the world are the same as in 1973, when with Ireland and Denmark, UK entered the then
European Community; the economy, the states themselves and the international scenario have changed.
But it seems that pro- Brexit British voters are still thinking as they did in 1973.
However, there is one aspect of BREXIT which has not received enough attention: the internal
consequences it will have; not only socially and economically speaking, but also for the very existence of
the United Kingdom. It is clear that the exit/departure will give rise to two immediate situations: the
rethinking of independence by Scotland and the question of the Good Friday agreements in Northern
Ireland. The first is latent in Scotland, but the second is much more serious because if the United Kingdom
leaves, the border between the Republic of Ireland and Ulster or Northern Ireland will have to be
reinstalled, and that border poses a very serious danger of rekindling the civil war.
164
1.- Background.
General De Gaulle was rightly opposed to the United Kingdom entering the European Community
because he considered that London was not sincerely pro-European, and that the British wished to prevent
the European Community from becoming a potential competitor to the United States.
There may be some
reason in President De Gaulle’s opposition, but it is no less true that London had its own interests, and the
European Economic Community (EEC) was opening a huge area of free trade, ideal for the British
economy. The U.K. had created in 1960, alongside eight other states which did not wish to be part of the
EEC, the EFTA (European Free Trade Association). It quickly became clear that EFTA could not cope with
the ambitious projects and successes of the EEC, meaning that, and as a consequence, in 1961, the United
Kingdom changed sides and requested, for the first time, its inclusion in the EEC, which was not possible
to negotiate until General De Gaulle left power in 1969.
The difference of opinion that separated London from Brussels since the beginning, was a
miscalculation from both sides, who did not foresee the obvious: the evolution of Europe. From the outset,
London fully agreed to be part of a large and promising free trade zone, but nothing more. London never
considered the possible deepening in the construction of a truly united Europe, and neither did the British
have a truly European conscience: the history of a people is not changed by signing a treaty. From the
moment London realized that the other members of the EEC really did believe and wanted a greater
integration, it understood that its mission would be to prevent this further integration of members, at all
costs.
With Mrs. Thatcher a double strategy was deployed: on the one hand, the opposition of anything that
was not simply true free trade and, on the other, to recover the competencies that the U. K. had given up
until then: on November 30, 1979, after a disastrous summit in Dublin, Mrs. Thatcher launched her famous
slogan: “I want my money back”. It became clear that London had become THE enemy of the EU inside in
the EU; those who were forced to work with the British in coordination meetings thereafter, understood the
magnitude of the danger posed to the future of the EU when one of its members continually dynamite, for
any reason, every common initiative. Either the UK would bend to the wishes of the he EU, or it would
leave.
Thus, at the initiative of Mrs. Thatcher, an anti-European movement in the United Kingdom began,
based more on a nostalgia for the Empire than on the reality of the moment; Mrs. Thatcher managed to
recover not only her money, but many of the competencies that had been transferred to Brussels. Mrs.
Thatcher wanted to return to the United Kingdom that had existed before World War II.
After the end of the bipolar world, the international scene began to change and the weight of the old
great powers vanished before the emergence of new states like China and India and the rebirth of what was
believed to be the moribund Russia. The economic world returned to pure capitalism and the division of
labor made, for example, the origins of the parts of a car as diverse as the states of the European Union.
165
London had to recognise that, despite its permanent frontal opposition to most European initiatives and its
self-marginalisation of major European projects, the EU would continue to move forward. The time had
come to be completely in or out, because the situation of being “in” or “out” à la carte, was already
unsustainable in Brussels, and in the United Kingdom.
I will not refer here to the campaign for or against Brexit, because it is known well enough and there
is even an excellent TV movie (“Brexit: the Uncivil war”, 2019, directed by Toby Haynes) that narrates,
with great authenticity, the manipulation of public opinion achieved by BREXIT supporters, such as Boris
Johnson and Nigel Farage, who, by the way, repeatedly announced the death of the European Union. Both
made totally false statements about the cost of the EU to the United Kingdom, as Farage himself
acknowledged, after the victory of the Referendum. But behind economic reasons, there is undoubtedly a
psychological longing for the long-awaited past.
2.- The yearning of the Empire
Of course, the very serious economic, social, and political crisis that plagues Europe (and the world)
affects the United Kingdom. As with other European countries, it is the population furthest from the urban
centres where the reactions have been the most radical. As always in history, a scapegoat must be found in
order to explain the negative situation, and in the United Kingdom, but more especially in England, it has
logically been “the foreigner”. But who is the foreigner in the UK? The answer will clarify the rejection of
the EU. The foreigner is not the immigrant of the Old Empire, the Indians, Pakistanis etc.… Because they
are all part of the Empire, still alive in the history and mentality of millions of English citizens. The
foreigner is the Pole, the Hungarian, the Bulgarian, the Romanian, etc… that is to say the immigrant from
Central East Europe and in a certain way, the immigrant from the West too, but to a much lesser extent,
those who have no historical roots in the UK.
Therefore, the reaction against immigrants is the reaction against part of Europe, not against all
“immigrants”. In the U.K. in general, and in England in particular, with the exception of the Irish of the
IRA and its armed confrontation with the United Kingdom, the relationship with the immigrants of the
Empire is not at all like that which exists in France with respect to immigrants of the old colonies. We must
give the British credit that among them there is no such absolute rejection of the natives of their colonies,
there is no such contempt, and if there is, they do not show it.
As I said, this is because the Empire is still alive in the minds of many English people, who still
dream of the Union Jack and God Save the Queen, which to them means something because they refer to a
story. Now, concerning the EU, it is difficult to create a patriotic spirit talking about the price of vegetables
or fishing zones, however important they may be. It is no less true that a large number of Britons, mainly
among the voters of the Labour Party and the Liberal Democrats, realise that the imperial chimera is gone
forever. Talking with the regional leaders of England, mainly from the industrial north, there is a striking
166
difference in how they see the present and the future between them is clearly, in no way negotiable. The
Conservatives, more so in predominantly agricultural regions, and the “Imperial” immigrants, are radically
against the EU.
Thus, for example, they consider it absurd (and to some extent it is) that a traveller from Canada, who
is part of the Commonwealth and has the same head of state, is more foreign to all intents and purposes
than a Bulgarian. The Imperial mentality, recognising that the UK is no longer the world superpower, being
convinced itself that leaving the EU will be a return to the Imperial past, as the old colonies and domains
will always be open to reviving this “special relationship”. It is a feeling similar to that existing in France,
with the “grandeur”: for many and despite the evidence, France remains a great power on the same level as
the greatest. If France has always lived under the glory of Louis XIV and Napoleon, the United Kingdom
remains blinded by the sun of Queen Victoria, which is only open to criticism when that glory or that sun,
prevents one seeing the reality of the moment. It is a return to a nationalism that in the United Kingdom
focuses on the rejection of the EU.
This does not deny that even among Eurosceptics, there is a recognition of what the EU has
actually contributed to the United Kingdom. Thus, for example, the rector of a very large university in the
north of England told me that he was for Brexit, but that he would be very sorry if he lost the U.E funds for
research in universities.
3.- Extremist nationalism
Both in Northern Ireland and in Scotland there is a great fear of the consequences of Brexit, although
for different reasons, but in both countries, the political class agrees for 90 percent (exception among the
Democratic Unionist Party - DUP- of Arlene Foster in Ulster, and a part of the conservatives in Scotland)
that London cares absolutely nothing about Ulster or Scotland. Moreover, political leaders from Northern
Ireland told me, more or less clearly, that London would be very happy if the Irish left the United Kingdom,
because for the English, the only thing that Ulster meant was the burden of transferring 12 billion pounds a
year to feed the country’s unsustainable economy. They did not think anything different in Scotland. In
both cases, the wish for independence proves to be a heavyweight in deciding their future.
Historically, Scotland has felt completely neglected by London, which has always ignored
Scottish interests, much more than those of Northern Ireland, and also has not complied with agreements to
return competencies to Scotland, a problem that will be aggravated with Brexit. Constitutionally
speaking Edinburgh is very aware that the London Government is not superior to the Scottish Government,
but only the Westminster parliament is superior to the Scottish parliament. In a first independence
referendum in Scotland, on September 18, 2014, the "no" to independence won precisely for the same
reason that now the "yes" would win: Scotland has a significant amount of immigration from Europe,
mainly Italians, Romanians, Poles, among others. Being a very sparsely populated country (just over 5
167
million), immigration is essential for physical survival; but it is no less true that the Scottish economy
revolves essentially around salmon, whisky and oil, the latter of increasingly low profitability. Closing the
door to its exports to the EU is equivalent to drowning its economy. For this reason, the Edinburgh
government is making a huge effort to develop business contacts between Scotland and other economic
centres in the West.
In Scotland, legal immigrants have the right to vote in a referendum and therefore, when
independence was proposed in 2014, supporters of staying in the United Kingdom argued that leaving
would mean leaving the EU, which was true, and that caused EU immigrants to vote against the idea.
Today this is quite the opposite: to remain in the United Kingdom is to leave the EU, and as there is also no
strong immigration from the former "Empire", unlike England, contrary to independence, it is foreseeable
that independence will prevail with around 60% of the votes.
However, the Scottish government has frequently repeated that, unlike the Catalan independence
movement, it will not do anything illegal and therefore will not unilaterally declare independence. Indeed,
doing so would mean starting off on the wrong foot in regard to the European scene, which would not
support unilateral declarations of independence. In this regard, the then Spanish Minister of Foreign Affairs,
Josep Borrell, currently in charge of the EU's External Relations, declared in November 2018 that Spain
would recognise an independent Scotland if independence were legally obtained, a statement that was
collected in numerous Spanish and European newspapers. London strongly protested the statement and
although the Spanish Minister did not repeat it, he never officially rectified it either. Certainly, some states
would welcome Scottish independence, because this would undoubtedly have an extremely debilitating
effect on the UK and rivalries in the EU are still latent because history is not erased simply by signing a
treaty. However, the States of the European Union do not encourage Scottish independence either, because
it is feared that an explicit and rapid recognition of the new State and its immediate entry into the European
Union would be a bad example for other irredentism on the continent, and especially in some Central
European States, in the Balkans and without a doubt in Spain with Catalonia as well as the Basque Country.
Thus, the scenario that may arise for Scotland could be a recognition of its legally obtained independence,
but without being immediately admitted to the European Union, because, in addition, Scotland is not a
country with strong economic resources and would be more of a burden for the E.U. budget. Scotland
could stay for a time in no man’s land, but not so much because of its economic weakness or because it had
to adapt its legislation to community rules, but because of the political consequences.
In Northern Ireland, the problem is completely different because it is not a matter of secession and
creation of a new independent State to join another equally constituted State. From the point of view of
International Law and the European Union, it would be a change of sovereignty that, in addition, would
only affect the Republic of Ireland since the United Kingdom would no longer be a member of the U.E.
Therefore, from an international point of view, the Irish case does not pose the same problems as the
Scottish one, which does not mean that it is not equally dangerous because other states may raise the same
168
issue. To take just one example, the Irish case could eventually be argued by the Transylvanian Hungarians,
under Romanian sovereignty after World War I, on ethnic and nationalistic grounds, at especially difficult
times for the relationship between Budapest and the U.E. for the attacks on democratic principles by the
Hungarian president. In Europe, irredentism is present in many areas and in many mentalities.
All political leaders in Northern Ireland, except Arlene Foster (president of the D.U.P.) are convinced
that the restoration of the border between the Republic of Ireland will ruin the Good Friday Agreement
(April 10, 1998) which ended the armed conflict in Ulster, making the return to violence inevitable.
Therefore, for all parties (except the D.U.P.) between the choice of separating from the UK and keeping the
peace or, separating from the EU and returning to a confrontational situation, they will undoubtedly choose
the former. It is a matter of survival: of not returning to the horror of bombs and murders. Still today there
are neighborhoods divided by walls, in which Catholics or Protestants cannot enter. Raising the border
again would restart the civil war, and even moderate unionists are not in favour of this alternative.
However, the solution is not at all clear. On the one hand, if there were a referendum in Northern
Ireland, it would not really be valid if the result were a consecration of the Catholic-Protestant divide, the
former voting massively for the separation from the United Kingdom and joining the Republic of Ireland,
and the Protestants unanimously voting against separating from the United Kingdom. Even if the results
were clear percentage-wise in one sense or another, the problem would not be solved, but rather would
reflect the extremely dangerous social divide between Catholics and Protestants. For the referendum not to
be the spark that set Ulster aflame again, the result would have to show that a share of no less than 30% of
the Protestant population supported reunification with the Republic of Ireland. However, that would not
mean at all that the transition would be made without violence, because according to all political forces
(except the D.U.P.), it is no longer the I.R.A. (Irish Republican Army, Catholic) but the order of Orange
(Protestant) which will not accept the separation from the U.K..
Although the Irish of the Republic voted overwhelmingly (over 90%) in favour of the Good Friday
agreements and another referendum would not be necessary in principle, reunification would impose a
heavy economic burden on the Republic, since the 12 billion pounds that the United Kingdom now
transfers to the Ulster economy, they would have to be, at least for a long period of time, contributed by
Dublin, which is a very significant sum for an economy that in 2019 had a GDP of 405 bn $ (1$= 0.96
euros), and currently, 1.2 billion euros are already planned in case of a Brexit without agreement.
Conclusion.
The immigration of Eastern Europe and the normative power of Brussels have become a problem
internal to Britain, in which the discussion is not about the future of the relationship with Brussels, but the
very existence of the UK. The Scottish and the Northern Irish do not share with the English the Imperial
idea and see the future with more realism. Brexit supporters remain convinced that the glory of the past
169
will return as England remains an indispensable pillar of the world and, above all, that it is the EU which
loses with Brexit: just before the agreement presented by Theresa May was voted on in Westminster, a
Tory deputy interviewed at the BBC said, “Nobody has to worry because in three weeks’ time we will have
the entire European Commission at the gates of Parliament begging us on their knees to stay”. It did not
happen. In April 2019 I asked Arlene Foster if they had reflected on the consequences of Brexit, to which
she replied: “Yes, and we are very worried about the future of EU, but if you decide to leave, do not expect
us to save you from sinking into misery”. From her point of view, it was an upside-down world: it was the
EU that separated from the UK and it was the European economy that would sink.
The truth is that most British people have never really felt deeply European. For them, the
continent, as in the imperial era, is still isolated by fog. But that time is over, and many English citizens
have not realised it.
Miguel Ángel Vecino.
Historian. Member of the Board of the CHIR.
(Translated by Anaïs Vecino. Warwick University. U.K.)
170
III. Brexit and After: Influence on other
Countries:
Oceania, China and India
171
Ⅲ―1 Shifting frames: images of Brexit in NZ and possible consequences
Serena Kelly, Franzisca Doser and Natalia Chaban
[Abstract]
Britain’s referendum decision (Brexit) to leave the European Union (EU) in June 2016 resulted in
political and economic uncertainty in Britain, Europe and around the world. The unprecedented scale of
the UK’s decision to leave the EU and uncertainty that followed the referendum meant that much of the
speculation was emotionally loaded. Adding to the emerging research field of tracing emotions in
international relations, our study of international reaction towards Brexit analyses the “emotive” reactions
while applying image, political psychology and communication theories in order to understand how the
UK’s decision to leave the EU has been framed and understood in one of Britain’s closest allies – New
Zealand. Working with five hypotheses, we find that New Zealand authors reported BREXIT from a more
emotional perspective than their British counterparts and that the election of Donald Trump served to
further entrench a negative emotionality towards Brexit by New Zealand journalists.
Britain’s referendum decision (Brexit) to leave the European Union (EU) in June 2016 resulted in
political and economic uncertainty in Britain, Europe and around the world. Resultantly, there has been a
great deal of speculation about the possible outcome of the Article 50 negotiations. The unprecedented
scale of the UK’s decision to leave the EU and uncertainty that followed the referendum meant that much
of the speculation was emotionally loaded. The terms “irrationality” and “emotion” have been used
extensively by commentators reflecting on the prolonged and painful period of exit negotiations, the
turbulent ride of the UK’s government since mid-2016 which witnessed three Prime Ministers, internal and
external reaction to the UK’s vote and its subsequent course of action. Our study of international reaction
towards Brexit analyses the “emotive” reactions while applying image, political psychology and
communication theories in order to understand how the UK’s decision to leave the EU has been framed
and understood in one of Britain’s closest allies – New Zealand. We add to the emerging tradition of
emotions in international relations (IR) 1 .
Theoretically, we position our inquiry on an interdisciplinary intersection of several conceptual
1
Ted Brader & George Emanuel Marcus, Emotions and political psychology, Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 2013.
172
frameworks through engaging with EU perceptions theorisations of spatial and temporal factors 2
; 3
and considering how global, regional, EU- and UK-specific, and local filters shape responses to short-term
and dramatic events. The resulting framing, intentional or not, “provides meaning to an unfolding strip of
events, weaving a connection among them”
4
and contributes to images of international partners in
cognitive and emotive terms. Our interest towards emotion invites links to the field of political
psychology which applies “what is known about human psychology to the study of politics”
“concerns the behaviour of individuals within a specific political system”
6
5
and
.
Our study focuses on so-called ‘top-down’ dynamics – when “powerful actors and institutions might
shape collective and individual emotional representations” 7 . We contribute to the debate on how to
empirically measure emotions in IR
8
, proposing a novel method for tracing emotionally-loaded
projections of international actors by domestic media. Our focus is on the New Zealand mainstream
media’s coverage immediately after, and the six months following, the UK’s referendum.
According to Duffy
9
, “We are more dependent on the media for information, that is, where our
personal experience is scant, what the media says on the subject has a greater influence on our
perceptions”. Yet, how the media influences the public and images is nuanced 10 , and tracing nuances
requires a robust methodology. Our operationalisation is informed by the Change Curve model – a model
Clarisse Didelon-Loiseau & Claude Grasland, Internal and External Perceptions of
2
Europe/the EU in the World through Mental Maps. In: Natalia Chaban & Martin Holland,
Communicating Europe in Times of Crisis. The European Union in International Affairs Series,
London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2014, pp. 64-95.
Natalia Chaban & Anatoliy Chaban, Communicating Europe Beyond ist Borders: Imaging the
3
EU in Ukraine Post-Maidan, Alphen aan den Rijn: Kluwer Law International, 2018.
William Gamson & Amedeo Modigliani, The changing culture of affirmative action,
4
Greenwich: Jai Press, 1987, p. 143.
Leonia Huddy et al., From group identity to political commitment and cohesion, New York:
5
Oxford University Press, 2013, p. 1
Leonia Huddy et al., From group identity to political commitment and cohesion, New York:
6
Oxford University Press, 2013, p. 3
Maéva Clément & Eric Sangar, Researching Emotions in International Relations:
7
Methodological Perspective on the Emotional Turn, London/New York: Palgrave Macmillan,
2017, p. 12
Maéva Clément & Eric Sangar, Researching Emotions in International Relations:
8
Methodological Perspective on the Emotional Turn, London/New York: Palgrave Macmillan,
2017.
9
10
Matt Duffy, 2018, p. 61.
Nicholas Valentino & Yioryos Nardis, Political communication: form and consequence of the
information environment, Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2013, p. 559
173
used in psychology to understand how humans deal with sudden major changes. We map the emotive
framing of Brexit in New Zealand media against the four stages of this model. Innovatively, we call
attention to a need to differentiate between sources of projection and recognise the emotional impact of
such sources. Although designed for psychological analysis, the Change Curve model provides useful
categories to compare how the Brexit vote, and its immediate aftermath, were framed by ‘local’ New
Zealand news sources vis-à-vis foreign (British) sources. We also tracked the journalistic attitudes – leave
or remain – according to the sources. We find major differences which we explain while engaging with
local, New Zealand-specific filters.
The New Zealand case study is special. We anticipate that New Zealand media-portrayals and images
of Brexit and the possible implications of changes are of high emotional value for New Zealanders. New
Zealand’s relationship with the UK has always been very close, with New Zealand established as the socalled ‘better Britain’ (During 1998) and traditionally understood as ‘the most British’ of all the former
British colonies. New Zealand suffered a seismic economic, political and identity crises when Britain
joined the EU’s precursor, the European Economic Community (EEC) in the 1970s. The prevailing
perception in New Zealand when the UK joined the EEC was that New Zealand had been betrayed.
Negative feelings have been reignited by European protectionist agricultural policies that were hurting
New Zealand agricultural producers who traded internationally for decades. Yet, the 21st century has
brought a different tenor to the New Zealand (NZ)-EU relations. It is characterised by a major turn to
positive and constructive interactions facilitated by a number of shared political positions, including
mutual respect of Western liberal norms and values, championship of free trade, and support for
multilateral world order. The British media coverage of the debate even suggested that Britain could reestablish stronger Commonwealth ties after its EU exit.
Respectively, we outline four leading hypotheses:
(H1): NZ’s influential media will frame BREXIT in emotive terms, yet the type of emotion will be
depending on the news sources (NZ vs. UK).
H2: UK sources are expected to frame Brexit in emotionally invested terms (due to the inherent drama
triggering a range of emotions – from fear and resignation to confusion or triumph – and the ensuing
uncertainty for the UK)
H3: NZ news sources are expected to frame Brexit in a more neutral way (due to its stable relations with
both the EU and the UK in any scenario; its geographical distance; as well as diverging historical paths
with the UK after the UK’s accession to the EEC in the 1970s).
H4: Common ground between New Zealand and the UK – two western democracies sharing a set of values
and historical ties – would result in framing the UK by NZ newsmakers from a positive-to-neutral
perspective, reflecting on the feeling of historical kinship
Importantly, our observation period embraced an event on the global stage which in turn impacted on
174
the emotive media framings of Brexit – the election of President Trump. Both events are arguably seen as
an affront to the multilateral world order and the victory of populism. Consequently, we employ a fifth and
final hypothesis: (H5) Trump’s victory in autumn 2016 will impact emotive framing of Brexit in NZ
media.
Empirically, we analyse the emotive framing of the Brexit referendum and its immediate
consequences in 715 published articles that referenced Brexit in three main New Zealand newspapers
between June 26 and December 31 2016: North Island’s leading paper The New Zealand Herald, South
Island’s press flagship The Press as well as the leading newspaper in the nation’s capital The Dominion
Post. Leading national newspapers remain the main feeders of news for other media (including social) and
other papers (regional and community). They also remain main sources of in-depth current information on
international affairs and foreign policy for educated audiences and elites. The geographical principle is
important as there is no one leading national daily in New Zealand.
The article proceeds as following. Firstly, we establish historical background of New Zealand’s
relations with the UK – over centuries and in the context of European integration. We then introduce our
theoretical frameworks and discuss methods of research. After that, we present our empirical findings
before concluding that the British decision to leave the EU was viewed emotively within a New Zealand
context. These highly negative emotions were compounded by the election of Donal Trump later in the
year.
BUILDING THE CONTEXT
New Zealand is a former British colony and a member of the Commonwealth. With its historic
reputation of “Britain in the Pacific”, New Zealand has experienced long and close relations
with its
metropole. Even as late as the 1950s, some New Zealand-born citizens still considered themselves as
British. This feeling of closeness provides some elucidation towards explaining why it was a shock when,
as early as the 1950s, Britain made it clear to New Zealand officials that they intended to join the
EEC 11 .
The UK’s accession to the EEC in 1973 was compared in New Zealand public discourses to the
‘cutting of apron strings’ – ‘mother Britain’ had left and the discourse of abandonment seized public
11
Natalia Chaban & Sarah Christie, Re-tracing Europe: Images and Perceptions of the EU in New
Zealand History. The 1950s – the Beginning of the Story, in Pascaline Winand, The External Relations of the
European Union: Historical and Contemporary Perspectives, Brussels, Bern, Berlin, Frankfurt/M, New York,
Oxford, Wien: Peter Lang, 2015, pp. 77-94.
175
imagination in New Zealand 12 . This discourse was magnified by New Zealand’s perceived economic loss.
Yet, some commentators have noted that the NZ-UK relationship prior to 1973 was not necessarily
altruistic with New Zealand exports to Britain “governed by British self-interest”
13
New Zealand’s total
percentage of exports to the UK had also been consistently decreasing, meaning that New Zealand’s trade
reliance on the UK was not as important as popular perception. 14 Importantly, the negative perception
felt in New Zealand of the UK the EEC has continually influenced perceptions and although trade disputes
have largely subsided, negative perceptions remain, particularly when it comes to European agriculture.
Concurrently, as Britain sought to access to the EEC, the British public and political debate resulted
in mixed perceptions about British entry to the ‘club’ when membership was granted in 1972. The result of
the incumbent Labour party manifesto was a nation-wide referendum in order to put to rest the debate
about British membership for good (at least in principle). Yet, British perceptions continued to be equated
with Euroscepticism, with Margaret Thatcher, often wrongly credited with being anti-Europe. British
Euroscepticism has arguably filtered through to New Zealand perceptions, for instance through the heavy
use of British sources in local print media 15 .
At the time of the Brexit vote in 2016, New Zealand-EU relations were arguably at an all-time high.
The first legally binding treaty, the Partnership Agreement on Relations and Cooperation (PARC) was in
the final processes of ratification. Perhaps more importantly, both sides had announced their intention to
pursue negotiations on a comprehensive free trade agreement. These two developments may serve to
explain why the New Zealand media commentators were surprised, and somewhat dismayed, by the
outcome of the UK referendum as shown in our results section.
It is not surprising that most of the current literature on Brexit addresses the issue from an internal
perspective considering either consequences for the UK or the EU, as well as European reactions to the
developments around Brexit 16 . Adler-Nissen et al.
12
17
that made an important contribution to the
Jessica Bain, Natalia Chaban & Sarah Christie, Cutting Apron Strings? New Zealand’s Reflections on the
UK EEC Accession (case of New Zealand political cartoons, 1970-73), Journal of European Integration History,
18(2), 2012, pp. 245-268.
13
Jim McAloon, It was not all sweetness and light, Wellington: Victoria University, 2016.
https://www.victoria.ac.nz/news/2016/07/it-wasnt-all-sweetness-and-light. Accessed 10 May 2020.
14
Gibbons
15
Serena Kelly, Clutching at the apron strings? New Zealand’s relationship with the EU and the
possible consequences for ASEM, Asia-Europe Journal, 2010.
16
Daniel Wincott et al., Brexit dilemmas: new opportunities and tough choices in unsettled
times, Cardiff: British Journal of Politics and International Relations, 2017.
17
Rebecca Adler-Nissen et al., Performing Brexit: How a post-Brexit world is imagined outside
the United Kingdom, Birmingham: University of Birmingham, 2017.
176
potential global impact of Brexit. Another exception is a multi-country study of the perceptions of the
EU and UK in the period of uncertainty following the “yes” vote
18
. While New Zealand case is a part of
the latter research 19 , their case has not dealt with emotive side of New Zealand’s reaction exclusively.
Our study addresses this gap.
THEORETICAL FRAMEWORKS: CONCEPTUAL SYNERGIES
EU perceptions framework of temporal and spatial filters
Understanding images is important in order to comprehend how people construct reality 20 . Studies
of external images and perceptions are traditionally part of IR scholarship, albeit somewhat peripheral.
Image theory (developed since the 1950s in the context of the Cold War) has experienced a revival after
the collapse of the USSR (in reflection to new global dimension to threats (e.g. global terrorism) and
moving beyond state-specific conceptualisations (refs)). Arguably, the second resurgent wave is taking
place post annexation of the Crimean peninsula by Russia, post Brexit, and post-Trump election, all
pointing to a potential collapse of the multilateral world order, and in this context raise of populism,
nativism and far right. Our study contributes to this scholarly tradition. It shares one of the basic
premises of the theory – images in IR are complex constellations of meanings21 .
We position our inquiry within a strand of studies that study images and perceptions in IR in the
context of the EU and its external action
18
22
, 23
, 24
, 25
, 26
. This field argues the relational nature
Natalia Chaban et al., Perceptions of the EU in Ukraine after “Brexit” referendum: Images of
capabilities and opportunities, Routledge, 2020.
19
20
Kelly and Mochan 2020
Richard Herrmann, Perceptions and Image Theory in International Relations, Oxford: Oxford
University, 2013, p. 335.
21
22
23
Richard Herrmann et al., 1997
Sonia Lucarelli, Gender and the European Union, Firenze: Firenze University Press, 2014.
Natalia Chaban & Martin Holland, Theorising and Framing ‘Normative Power Europe’: Asian
Journalists’ Comparative Perspecctives, Asia-Europe Journal, 2015
24
Natalia Chaban & Martin Holland, Shaping the EU Global Strategy: Partners and Perceptions,
Cham: Palgrave Macmillan, 2018.
25
Ole Elgström & Natalia Chaban, Studying External Perceptions of the EU: Conceptual and
Methodological Approaches, London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2015
26
Natalia Chaban & Ole Elgström, Perceptions of EU mediation and mediation effectiveness:
Comparing perspectives from Ukraine and the EU, SAGE Publications, 2019
177
of perceptions of the EU
27
; 28
. Works in the field argue that EU external perceptions vary – they are
location-, issue-, time- and cohort/discourse-specific 29 . Literature in the field also invites scholars to
explore how perceptions may differ between systemic, country- and individual-specific levels 30 . Adding
to these conceptualisations, we also relate images of Brexit to the sense of time and distance. Here we
build on Chaban and Chaban 31 and Chaban et al. 32 on EU external images and perceptions, who inform
their research by works by Didelon-Loiseau and Grasland
on cognitive mapping and Braudel
33
34
on conceptualisations of spatial and temporal mental models).
In an attempt to explain the variation in external perceptions of Brexit, relevant literature argues that
images and perceptions of Others are shaped by a set of factors on systemic, country-specific and
individual-specific levels. Factors of systemic character mean that images and perceptions of Brexit, in
cognitive and emotive terms, will inevitably relate to understandings of and emotional reactions to global
trends, geopolitical contexts and economic interdependencies.
35
Country-specific factors combine
reflections of reality and self-visions of the country’s political system, as well as its history and culture,
norms and values, media system, and linguistic patterns. Here, we expect that NZ’s historical ties to the
UK, memories of the UK’s accession to the EEC and current successful relations with the EU will matter.
We also expect that peculiarities of the New Zealand media system will affect the framing of Brexit – NZ
news media belongs Western Liberal type 36 that is characterised by open attitudes to sourcing news
27
28
Chaban et al., 2018
Natalia Chaban & Anatoliy Chaban, Communicating Europe Beyond ist Borders: Imaging the
EU in Ukraine Post-Maidan, Alphen aan den Rijn: Kluwer Law International, 2018.
29
Natalia Chaban, Ole Elgström, Serena Kelly, Lai Suet Yi, Images of the EU beyond its Borders: Issue-
specific and Regional Perceptions of EU Power and Leadership, 51(3) Journal of Common Market Studies,
2013, pp. 433–451.
30
Natalia Chaban, Alister Miskimmon, Ben O’Loughlin, The EU’s Peace and Security Narrative: Views from
EU Strategic Partners in Asia, 55(6) Journal of Common Market Studies, 2017, pp. 1273–1289.
31
Natalia Chaban & Anatoliy Chaban, Communicating Europe Beyond ist Borders: Imaging the
EU in Ukraine Post-Maidan, Alphen aan den Rijn: Kluwer Law International, 2018.
32
33
Chaban et al., 2018
Clarisse Didelon-Loiseau & Claude Grasland, Internal and External Perceptions of
Europe/the EU in the World through Mental Maps. In: Natalia Chaban & Martin Holland,
Communicating Europe in Times of Crisis. The European Union in International Affairs Series.
London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2014, pp. 64-95.
34
35
Fernand Braudel, On History, London: Weidenfeld and Nicolson, 1980.
PPMI, NCRE & NFG, Analysis of the perception of the EU and EU’s policies abroad, 2015,
supra n. 34.
36
Daniel Hallin & Paolo Mancini, Comparing Media Systems: Three Models of Media and
178
internationally, from trusted reputable agencies (a cost-saving strategy in news production). With images
and perceptions residing in the minds of individuals, individual-specific (or demographic) features of the
perceivers will also play a central role. Among those are age, gender, region, education, income, personal
contacts with the EU (direct and mediated by colleagues/friends/relatives), and interpersonal
communication about the Other. According to Keuleers, the individual-level factors are found to be among
the most powerful in shaping the general public’s external perceptions of an IR factor.37 In this light, we
conceptualise the projection of emotions through media framing as an attempt of the news producers to
reach to an individual reader while stirring certain emotive responses. Importantly, these three groups of
factors do not act separately from each other – they interact with each other, with many unique
combinations. Our study considers these explanatory factors when tracking the emotive framing of Brexit
in NZ media. We expect media framing reflect the relational nature of EU external perceptions.
Our theorisation of the relational character of EU external perceptions includes consideration of the
temporal and spatial distances in imagining Brexit. In the spatial dimension, following Chaban and
Chaban 38
, 39
, we expect emotive framing of Brexit to depend on location-specific (NZ-specific) factors
( ‘endogenous’ factors), 40
; 41
region-specific factors (NZ is located in the Asia-Pacific geopolitical
region, with its own priorities and leading actors), EU- and UK- specific factors (exogenous 42 factors
which are typically beyond the control or influence of the 3rd country, NZ in our case), and finally global
factors 43 (the ones beyond the control of the EU/UK and NZ). In the temporal dimension, three
temporal planes are expected to influence the emotive framing of Brexit: short-term history (dramatic
Politics, Camebridge: Camebridge University Press, 2014.
37
Floor Keuleers, Explaining External Perceptions: The EU and China in African Public
Opinion, 53 (4) Journal of Common Market Studies, 2015, pp. 803-821, supra n. 86.
38
Natalia Chaban & Anatoliy Chaban, Communicating Europe Beyond ist Borders: Imaging the
EU in Ukraine Post-Maidan, Alphen aan den Rijn: Kluwer Law International, 2018
39
Natalia Chaban & Michèle Knodt, Perceptions of the EU in Ukraine after “Brexit”
referendum: Images of capabilities and opportunities. In: Natalia Chaban, Arne Niemann &
Johanna Speyer, Changing perceptions of the EU at times of Brexit: Global Perspectives,
Routledge, forthcoming, 2020.
40
Natalia Chaban & Ana-Maria Magdalena, External perceptions of the EU during the Eurozone Sovereign Debt
Crisis, European Foreign Affairs Review, 2014, pp. 195-220.
41
Michito Tsuruoka, How External Perspectives of the European Union are Shaped: Endogenous and Exogenous
Sources, Fukuoka: paper at the 20th IPSA World Congress, 2006.
42
Michito Tsuruoka, “Expectations Deficit” in EU-Japan Relations: Why EU-Japan Partnership
Cannot Flourish, London: Nova Science Publishers, 2008, supra n. 83.
43
Natalia Chaban & Ana-Maria Magdalena, External perceptions of the EU during the Eurozone Sovereign Debt
Crisis, European Foreign Affairs Review, 2014, supra n. 95.
179
changes due to revolutionary, major events), mid-term history (between quarter to half of a century), and
long-term history (centuries of changes)44
, 45
, 46
. Emotive framing of Brexit in New Zealand is
arguably impacted by the three temporalities. The “yes” vote marked a shocking major change and
signalled an immediate departure into uncharted policy territory for the UK, the EU and New Zealand as
their close partner. The memory of the UK’s uneasy accession to the EU in the 1970s – and its
consequences for New Zealand – are still a factor. Finally, New Zealand’s centuries-long history has a
strong UK link and these long-term historical views remain powerful contributors.
Political Psychology Frameworks
This focus on emotions leads many IR scholars to political psychology. Underlining the relational
nature of EU external images and perceptions, Chaban et al.
47
argued that the factors listed above “do
not act separately from each other – they interact with each other, with many unique combinations”. The
nature of Brexit which triggered major uncertainties of existential nature – suggests that a short-term
temporal plane is of special importance for our conceptualisations. This is not lastly due to the strong
emotive charge attached to the information about Brexit. As such, we turn to the field of political
psychology to understand the emotive framing of Brexit. It has to be said that emotions have been on the
periphery of IR scholarship. In the past, emotions, according to Brader and Marcus, were seen as
“mysterious or elusive and, hence, not amenable to scientific inquiry” and “declining force as the growth
of and reliance on scientific knowledge … would enable reason to take up the central role in politics”.
However, the last two decades witnessed a steady growth of interest towards emotions in the scholarship of
politics 48 . Behind this “emotive turn” is a realisation that any model of social actions and interactions
must factor the ‘irrational’ level of emotions.
To chart New Zealand media’s employment of the use of emotions in Brexit coverage over the second
half of 2016, we employ a model well-known in psychology: the ‘Change Curve’. It is an abbreviated
44
Clarisse Didelon-Loiseau & Claude Grasland, Internal and External Perceptions of
Europe/the EU in the World through Mental Maps. In: Natalia Chaban & Martin Holland,
Communicating Europe in Times of Crisis. The European Union in International Affairs Series.
London: Palgrave Macmillan, 2014, pp. 64-95.
45
Fernand Braudel, On History, London: Weidenfeld and Nicolson, 1980.
46
Natalia Chaban & Anatoliy Chaban, Communicating Europe Beyond ist Borders: Imaging the
EU in Ukraine Post-Maidan, Alphen aan den Rijn: Kluwer Law International, 2018.
47
48
Chaban et al. 2018
Ted Brader & George Emanuel Marcus, Emotions and political psychology, Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 2013.
180
version of the Kübler-Ross ‘Grief Model’ 49 . The Change Curve condenses the Kubler-Ross’ Grief Model
into three comprehensive stages of emotions which are expressed over time when dealing with change and
is commonly used to predict collective morale and competence whilst processing change (see Figure 1).
The first stage is shock and denial, which starts off as unobservable behaviour but eventually descents into
a negative attitude. The second stage is anger and fear, even depression. These emotions make
themselves noticeable through negative effects and an obvious rejection of the change that occurred. The
third stage is when the feeling of understanding emerges slowly; it includes the exploration of what the
new change entails, and a gained sense of competence regarding said change. This in turn leads to
acceptance, and a level of morale which is similar to before.
We use the three stages to track and map the emotive framing of Brexit by New Zealand media in the
first six months following the UK’s “Yes” vote. The next section details the method of our inquiry.
Figure 1
50
Methodology
The focus of this chapter is on media discourses on Brexit in New Zealand’s leading press. As
Herrmann notes, “The pictures people have of other countries become central building blocks in their
identification of the threats and opportunities their country faces”
51
and thus have important
consequences for policy decisions and future relationships. In this light, framing by the media has the
potential to be hugely influential in how the public views an issue 52 .
We observed three high-circulation reputable dailies in New Zealand – the New Zealand Herald, The
Press and The Dominion Post. North Island’s most circulated paper The New Zealand Herald has a current
49
50
51
Elisabeth Kübler-Ross, On Death and Dying, Oxfordshire: Taylor & Francis, 1973.
Marc Wright, Gower Handbook of Internal Communication, London: Taylor & Francis Group, 2009.
Richard Herrmann, Perceptions and Image Theory in International Relations, Oxford: Oxford
University, 2013, p. 337.
52
Adam Berinsky & Donald Kinder, Making Sense of Issues Through Media Frames:
Understanding the Kosovo Crisis, Ann Arbor: University of Michigan, 2006.
181
weekly readership of 785 000,
000. 54
53
South Island’s leading papers The Press has weekly readership of 278
Leading newspaper in the nation’s capital The Dominion Post has weekly readership of 306
000. 55 These outlets are seen as high-quality professional credible media sources. This is significant –
Valentino and Nardis 56 argue that the credibility of the source is one of the important elements which
impacts reception. 57
Our team considered the framing of Brexit in New Zealand’s leading newspapers over six months –
between June 24th (the day after the referendum) until December 31st, 2016. Articles were drawn from
two e-databases – Press Reader and Factiva. The articles qualified as relevant data if they contained the
term ‘Brexit’ at least once in a news article.
58
The sample of articles in this study is 714.
Adding to the debate on how to research emotions in IR, we approach the study of emotions through
the study of language “as a key through which we gain access to emotions and their constitutive social
function” 59 . In order to quantify and compare the sentiments projected by the newspaper, we measured
the prevalence of strong emotive terms – or the lack thereof – over time. We employed a heuristic approach
and derived emotive terms from the key emotions included in the Curve Change model discussed above.
The key words (and their derivatives) included: change (changes, changing, changed), shock (shocks,
shocking, shocked), anger (angry, angered), fear (fears, feared), uncertainty (uncertainties, uncertain),
inequality (inequalities, unequal), and panic (panicking, panicked). We used our PDF reader’s search
function to scan each of the news articles for the aforementioned key words, and quantified their
occurrences in the table below (Table 1).
The articles were also analysed in terms of the news sources – New Zealand sources vis-à-vis
international sources (and UK sources in particular) and according to their sentiment towards Brexit: proremain, pro-leave or neutral. Deductions about whether articles expressed an overall pro-remain, pro-leave
or neutral attitude were made empirically, and influenced by factors such as the tone of writing, the
opinions expressed by the author, the messages conveyed by the heading and imagery, as well as any
figures of speech within the text. Finally, we made a note of whether (and how) the 2016 US elections
were mentioned in the same article.
53
“NZ Herald’s readership continues to grow”, The New Zealand Herald, 22/6/2017.
http://www.nzherald.co.nz/business/news/article.cfm?c_id=3&objectid=11880473
54
http://www.newsworksnz.co.nz/titles-rates-specs/the-press-fairfax/.
55
http://www.newsworksnz.co.nz/titles-rates-specs/the-dominion-post-fairfax/.
56
Nicholas Valentino & Yioryos Nardis, Political communication: form and consequence of the
information environment, Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2013, p. 561.
57
The others being the type of media, organisation of the argument, quality and systematic
biases.
58
59
Quotations and readers’ letters were omitted from analysis.
Heller, 2017, p. 75.
182
Findings
General Visibility
We observed a voluminous coverage of the British referendum and its aftermath by the three selected
newspapers in New Zealand – a remote, yet historically connected to the UK small state. In the week
following the June referendum alone, the number of articles was an astonishing 126 in the three canvassed
publications. Rather predictably, the number has decreased over time. In July there were 175 articles and in
48 in August. What was perhaps surprising was the spike in Brexit topic visibility in the lead up to the US
election 2016: 64 articles in September, followed by 44 in October and 139 in November. This intensity
continued into December, when 103 articles referencing Brexit were published. Typically, when
unexpected dramatic events occur, the intensity in visibility occurs at the beginning of the event and
decreases over time. In this instance, the visibility had a different pattern.
Importantly, we witnessed not only an abnormal trend in visibility of Brexit, but also an evolution of
framing of the British referendum over time. At first, Brexit was portrayed in the New Zealand media as
having an impact on either Britain, Europe or New Zealand. Then in November, when Donald Trump was
elected as the 45th President of the United States, the New Zealand media started to make connections
between the two events on a different – global – scale.
Figure 2 summarises the journalistic attitude of the articles referencing Brexit – whether the articles
displayed a pro-leave, remain or neutral attitude towards Brexit. Overall, and irrespective of the news
sources, the articles were overwhelmingly more pro-remain than leave. Yet, in the months before the
election of Donald Trump, pro-leave sentiments were also visible. A spike in articles presenting a negative
attitude towards Brexit coincided with the news about US election.
Figure 2: Number of articles depicting Brexit in positive, negative and neutral terms (N=714)
Emotive framing: general observations
Our analysis demonstrates that overwhelming number of articles that mentioned Brexit did so through an
emotional lens (see Table 1 for the summary of the emotive key terms). A high number of articles on Brexit
183
incorporated emotional words (and analysed in light of the Change Curve model) such as fear, uncertainty,
anger, change, shock, panic and inequality. The use of these terms occurred in 462 out of 714 articles
(65%) in the period under consideration. The most frequent word observed in the articles was change (192
times), followed by uncertainty (109 times). Mentions of anger (30) and panic (22) also featured but not as
prominently. 60
Some articles featured more than one emotively charged word (Table 1).
Table 1: Number of emotional terms used
NZ Herald
Total
NZ
81
51
109
UK (A-S)
The Dominion
Total
NZ
UK (A-S)
Total
NZ
UK (A-S) 61
5 (18)
32
26
6 (0)
41
27
12 (2)
88
5 (15)
50
47
2 (1)
34
25
0 (0)
30
17
4 (6)
25
23
2 (1)
26
7
2 (0)
192
165
13 (13)
130
116
10 (4)
142
112
80
58
5 (13)
38
35
1 (2)
35
31
2 (2)
52
51
0 (1)
31
26
0 (5)
22
27
0 (5)
22
16
3 (3)
9
9
0 (0)
10
10
0 (0)
564
446
35 (69)
313
282
21 (13)
310
239
38 (17)
35062
266
33 (43)
175
138
189
141
38 (10)
Fear(s); feared
Uncertain; uncertainty /
The Press
uncertainties
Angry; anger; angered
Change(s); changing;
22 (8)
changed
Shock(s); shocking;
shocked
Inequality / inequalities;
unequal
Panic; panicking;
panicked
Total count
Amount of overall
29 (8)
articles
Emotive framing: Factoring News Sources
60
This number includes all the key terms in total, some of the terms were more common in some
articles than others.
61
A-S: Anglo- Saxon sources = (USA and AUS)
Table shows the amount of times various emotion-related key terms were mentioned in the respective article
collection (24th June – 31st December).
For the readers’ reference, the total amount of articles considered in this analysis can be found in the last column
of the chart.
62
The ‘total’ column includes publications from French sources (8 articles in the NZ Herald),
which are left out in the closer examination of the New Zealand, UK and Anglo- Saxon (US and
AUS) articles.
184
As discussed above, a former British colony and English-speaking country, New Zealand has heavily
relied on British news sources in order to be informed about Europe and the EU 63 . Our next level of
analysis stems addressed our first three hypotheses – that British news sources would be more emotionally
invested on issues of Brexit than geographically distanced New Zealand authors would.
Over the period examined, 100 articles referencing BREXIT were sourced from UK sources vis-à-vis
547 articles written by New Zealand sources. Figure 3 charts the level of emotivity of the news items in the
New Zealand media from the UK sources, with attitudes of 0 (negative and including a high level of
emotive terms); 1 (neutral with only little linguistic emotivity) and 2 (positive towards Brexit and only
very limited use of emotional terminology). We discovered that during the first months following the vote,
the attitude conveyed in the British media sources was mainly negative; however, over time news coming
from the UK sources projected a message of accepting Brexit, as the attitudes started averaging and
eventually surpassing 1 (neutral). The analysis of the texts, in consideration of the key emotive terms
indicated in the UK-sourced news over time, showed that the situation was presented as though the public
was moving past earlier stages of ‘grief’ – as predicted by the Change Curve model. Such a reaction could
be attributed to the British culture of having a ‘stiff upper lip’, but we suggest that there is more at play.
Arguably, British journalists also were pragmatic in projecting the messages of a fast move beyond the
grief stages. More reasons are outlined below.
Figure 3 Attitudes towards Brexit from British Media sources
British media sources
2.5
Attitude
2
1.5
1
0.5
0
23/06/2016 24/07/2016 24/08/2016 24/09/2016 25/10/2016 25/11/2016 26/12/2016
Date
Figure 4 demonstrates the distribution of emotive messages in the news items written by local, New
Zealand authors. In contrast to the trend identified in Figure 3, we identified that New Zealand authors
63
Serena Kelly, Clutching at the apron strings? New Zealands’s relationship with the EU and the
possible consequences for ASEM. Asia Europe Journal 8 (2), 2010.
185
were less likely to be moving past the initial grief stages onto acceptance. As pictured below, the negative
sentiments and emotivity of the evaluated articles were so prevalent that the average attitude never even
came close to 1 (neutral). Put in context with the Change Curve, this indicates that New Zealand media
appeared communicate a sense of being ‘stuck’ in the earlier stages of grief (shock, denial, fear and anger)
for a much longer time than their British counterparts. This is in some ways a surprising finding, given that
Brexit occurred halfway across the world and New Zealand’s ties to ‘mother Britain’ are much less than
they used to be.
Figure 4: Attitudes towards Brexit in NZ authored sources
NZ authored
2.5
Attitude
2
1.5
1
0.5
0
23.06.2016 24.07.2016 24.08.2016 24.09.2016 25.10.2016 25.11.2016 26.12.2016
Date
Why did NZ-sourced news feature a different emotive pattern, more resistant to positivity and
optimism about the change imposed by Brexit? This study proposes several explanations. Firstly, in the
New Zealand coverage, Brexit was often associated with negative phenomena such as the rise of populism,
xenophobia and racism. New Zealand media commentators used the Brexit example to demonstrate that
New Zealand was, and New Zealanders are, different than Britain and above such issues. For instance, the
New Zealand Herald printed an article on Brexit which stated, “Politically and economically, New Zealand
remains an island of stability in an uncertain world”
64
. This feeling of superiority was echoed by a
commentator at The Press, who discussed the results of the referendum resulting in an increase in British
migrants wanting to leave the UK and move to New Zealand: “In the days following the shock BREXIT
vote, Immigration New Zealand and local medical recruitment agencies registered a huge upswing in
interest from doctors, nurses and allied health staff wanting to sling their hooks and stethoscopes Down
64
„Editorial: Poll gives John Key every chance of a fourth term“, The New Zealand Herald,
14/9/2016.
https://www.nzherald.co.nz/opinion/news/article.cfm?c_id=466&objectid=11708934
186
Under” 65 .
This feeling of being removed, and even superior to Britons who voted to leave the EU was evident
throughout the observed reportage. For instance, one article stated: “In Britain, our other English-speaking
cousins are wondering about the wisdom of BREXIT. Of course, every British slum-dweller hates a
bureaucrat, especially one from Brussels. But when they found out that Brussels gives them money and
won’t keep on giving it after BREXIT, some felt betrayed” 66 . Of special interest is article’s definition of
the British public as New Zealand ‘cousins’, presumably indicating that the ‘mother-child’ relationship of
the 1970s is well and truly over. Secondly, it implied that the UK’s voting members of the public were
misinformed about what they were voting for.
Another reason to the negative emotive framing is connected to the election of Trump – a political
development on the global stage that signified the advancement of protectionist policies and a potential end
to the multilateral world order. For instance, one NZ commentator noted, “In this increasingly hostile
environment, how should purist free-trading New Zealand play its hand?” 67 . Smellie was concerned that
New Zealand’s record as one of the most trade liberal countries in the world would need to start to
seriously consider how it operates in a new global system which is perceived as more protectionist. An
article published only two days later cited prominent New Zealand economist, Shamubeel Eaqub, who
claimed that Brexit and Trump “had significant implications for globalisation and […] the world was
heading toward ‘a much darker age’ that was more insular and protectionist, which will affect a number of
Kiwi businesses” 68 . Both of these articles relied on making international events more relevant for local
audiences through the use of ‘local hooks’.
Importantly, with the course of time, the framing of Brexit changed in NZ leading newspapers – from
an internal British and European issue following the “Yes” vote to a showcase of the worldwide trend
towards populism following the election of Trump. It is at this moment when the New Zealand media
began to once again reference Brexit with a higher intensity than in the preceding months. This time the
event of Brexit, linked to the outcomes of the US election, was used to project a particular narrative about
New Zealand. In this narrative, New Zealand has become a beacon of hope in a world dominated by
racism and protectionism. For instance, the commentator Whittle announced that “In the wider world of
BREXIT, Trump and the worrying resurgence of nationalism, the ability to distinguish the sensible from
the unconscionable is urgently needed” 69 .
Although unrelated to the Change Curve Model, one finding from our research was particularly
65
66
„Desperately seeking what we’ve already got“, The Press, 22/6/2016.
„Boxing day second thoughts“, Dominion Post, 26/12/2016.
67
„Politics of trade just got trickier“, Dominion Post, 27/10/2016.
68
The New Zealand Herald, 29/10/2016.
69
„Why schools should teach philosophy“, The Press, 30/11/2016.
187
important in conveying New Zealand’s self-identity: An article published in The Press stated: “The
BREXIT vote earlier this year and the election of Trump are social phenomena that demonstrate now is the
time to get deadly serious about addressing inequality” 70 . This quote mirrors the sentiments conveyed in
a publication from three months earlier, which pointed out that “There has been much written overseas
about the factors driving the BREXIT / Trump phenomenon but if there is one finding that may resonate
with New Zealand voters it is that much of it is driven by people's fears their children will have fewer
opportunities than they did”
71
. In other words, Brexit and the US election, events which were
geographically removed from New Zealand were an opportunity for New Zealand media to redress its
country’s own inequality issues, over the course of several months. A change of government in New
Zealand to the Labour government may be tentatively linked to the feelings conveyed in the local media –
that we are different from these two events but that we can, and should, also learn from them.
As already demonstrated, New Zealand authors linked Brexit and Trump to populism and suggested
that New Zealand was above such a trend. Furthermore, many authors assumed that the uncertainty
emerging in the affected countries would lead to large numbers of wealthy people immigrating to New
Zealand, putting pressure on an already stretched housing market. This theme was illustrated by several
articles.
In June, the NZ Herald released an economic commentary article which included the following
statement: “Put simply, the economic reality is that New Zealand right now is a place where a large
number of people would love to come and live. That is challenging on many levels, not least housing
supply, but it is also valuable. We have to make some big and careful calls about immigration in the next
few years”
72
. Five months later, an article by Edmunds for the Dominion Post included a similar
outlook to the future of New Zealand housing: “Carmen Vicelich, of property data website MyValocity,
said the Trump win combined with existing uncertainty as a result of BREXIT would have an effect on
New Zealand. She said more people wanting to move to New Zealand, combined with expat New
Zealanders coming home, would add to the pool of buyers looking for properties” 73 . The insecurity
about the impact of immigration resulting from recent world events indicates that New Zealand media does
have the potential to experience protectionist sentiments, which implies a paradox in emotion. On one hand,
New Zealand condemns protectionism, but on the other hand, it fears that immigrants fleeing this exact
reality may create inequalities on the local housing market.
70
„Inequality has bred contempt“, The Press, 11/11/2016.
71
„2017: Popularity, predicatability, Peters“, The Dominion Post, 20/8/2016.
72
„Liam Dann: Reserve Bank well placed for Brexit fallout“, The New Zealand Herald,
26/6/2016. https://www.nzherald.co.nz/business/news/article.cfm?c_id=3&objectid=11663837
73
„Election could lead to pricey Mortgages“, The Dominion Post, 12/11/2016.
188
DISCUSSION
Returning to our hypotheses, H1 predicted that NZ’s influential media would frame BREXIT in
emotive terms, depending on its sources. We find this overarching hypothesis is supported, yet in an
unanticipated way. Our second hypothesis expected that UK authors would report BREXIT news in a more
emotionally invested (negative) position than New Zealand authors (H2). We anticipated that New
Zealand authors would present a more ‘watered-down’ framing of BREXIT in emotive terms, not least due
to the geographical distance as well as diverging historical paths after the UK’s accession to the EEC in the
1970s (H3).
Our findings in fact pointed to a reverse dynamic. The news published in New Zealand newspapers
which originated from the UK appeared to present a more refrained emotive framing of BREXIT over the
time period analysed. By contrast, New Zealand authors reported BREXIT from a much more emotional
perspective, with lots of negative emotions. These negative emotions were able to be clearly mapped
against the “grief model”. A more refrained emotional profile rendered by the UK sourced news could be
explained by the newsmaking process and the phenomenon of the commodification of news. In order to be
sellable globally, many UK sources may choose to de-emotivise their reportages, to appeal to a broader
market. A more engaged, partisan reportage risks limiting the potential buyers of news around the world.
In the case of news articles with New Zealand authors, we suggest that for New Zealand, the
referendum result meant that once again New Zealand “lost” the UK – a familiar constellation was once
again shattered. The first time was in the 1970s, when there was a perception that the UK abandoned New
Zealand by severing old Commonwealth allegiances and links in order to join the European Economic
Community. This time, in 2016, the perception is that the UK abandoned the EU, denting the European
integration project. The irony about this decision was that it happened at a time when EU-New Zealand
relations were at an all-time high – trade tensions had been largely ironed out (particularly through the
GATT and later WTO arrangements). Further, the EU-New Zealand PARC Agreement had recently been
finalised and the announcement had been made about the intention to pursue a Free Trade agreement.
We stress that our attention to the words “fear”, “anger” and “uncertainty” point that, for New
Zealand news authors, BREXIT presents a ground to render the highly emotions of “uncertainty” – the
changing world order signified by Brexit in the context of Trump’s election makes them ask the question
“what it means for NZ’s economy?” and “if NZ is going to be hurt again?”. This emotion relates to the
emotion of “fear”.
Regarding our fourth hypothesis, we expected that normative common grounds between New
Zealand and the UK – two western democracies sharing a set of values – would result in framing the UK
by NZ newsmakers from a positive-to-neutral perspective, reflecting on the feeling of historical kinship
(H4). Our analysis did not support this hypothesis. In fact, New Zealand’s values were often contrasted
189
with Britain’s. This is another important finding of our study as Nelson et al. 74 state “Judgements about
the relevance, applicability, and importance of competing values are matters of perception and
interpretation – precisely the sort of responses targeted by framing”. In our case, BREXIT was used to
frame the UK as a “normative Other” to New Zealand – a place where populism, xenophobia, racism and
intolerance went wild, with New Zealand presented as a very different place – a place on the higher
moral/normative grounds 75
, 76
. In this instance, the UK was labelled a “cousin” by New Zealand
newsmakers, rather than a “mother”, as it was in the 1960s or early 1970s coverage of the UK’s accession
to the EEC.
Finally, our fifth hypothesis was supported. Trump’s victory did influence the framing of BREXIT in
NZ media. Firstly, it triggered a shift in the cognitive ‘filling’ of the BREXIT frame. The frame has shifted
– from framing BREXT as a regional story of the troubled EU and the shaken architecture of the European
Integration, to a different mental schema, with a more global flavour to it – “negative populist
development”, “together with Trump’s victory, it is the end of the order we knew”. In this context, it
intensified negative feelings attached to it.
The findings in this chapter have more than theoretical implications. Firstly, by remaining stuck in the
early stages of grief New Zealand newspaper readers, including officials, may also find it difficult to move
on and react appropriately to the evolving situation. As the EU and UK combined represents New
Zealand’s third largest trading partner, New Zealand’s economic livelihood is potentially threatened with
the outcome of the BREXIT negotiations. Therefore, it is important that New Zealand’s trade officials are
proactive in dealing with the developing political situation.
Politically, New Zealand has now a huge task ahead – to forge new relationships with Europe, while
pulling away from the UK which, 60 years ago was viewed as a parent to our young nation and has always
been looked on favourably. For instance, diplomatic resources, which were pulled from Europe towards
Asia around 10 years ago are now moving back to Europe – new New Zealand embassies were opened in
Ireland and Sweden in 2018.
Peffley and Hurwitz 77 have looked at the “consequences and causes” of image change in the case of
74
Thomas Nelson et al., Value Poaching: Framing the Same Values for Competing Political
Ends, 2015, p. 2882.
75
Natalia Chaban & B. Greenland, To the question of Cultural Filters and Cognitive Priors:
Shaping reception of the NPE among external norm-takers, 2014.
76
Natalia Chaban and Sharon Pardo, Understanding EU External Perceptions: Theorising Local ‘Cultural
Filters’ in the Normative Power Approach (case-study of textbooks), Australian and New Zealand Journal of
European Studies, 10 (1), 2018, pp. 64-78.
77
Mark Peffley & Jon Hurwitz, International Events and Foreign Policy Beliefs: Public Response
to Changing Soviet-U.S. Relations, Austin: University of Texas Press, 1992, pp. 435, 442.
190
an enemy (the Soviet Union). They found that foreign policy images are generally quite stable and difficult
to change. Moreover, these images have important, measurable consequences – being filtered foreign
policy
78
. In our case, Britain (and to a lesser extent the US) has traditionally been looked upon as a
like-minded country with shared values. Resultantly, the UK and the US, through Brexit and Trump, have
been viewed from a rather negative perspective, potentially denting their images in the minds of the public.
While we do not argue that these images mean that the two states have changed their images to a dramatic
image of an ‘enemy’, but both have been certainly framed as the ‘not us’ and as having values somewhat
differing from New Zealand values.
Our study has analysed the potential impact of the New Zealand media’s portrayal of the British
referendum and its aftermath. While the media has been credited with having some influence over
perceptions, this is not the complete story 79 . Future studies may analyse the impact of the media
messages onto New Zealand elites and public. Future research may also analyse EU-specific publications
(e.g. EU Observer) or EU member states’ media and their mapping of BREXIT against the Curve Change
analytical model.
78
Richard Herrmann, The Power of Perceptions in Foreign-Policy Decision Making: Do Views
of the Soviet Union Determine the Policy Choices of American Leaders? American Journal of
political science, 1986, p. 869.
79
Nicholas Valentino & Yioryos Nardis, Political communication: form and consequence of the
information environment, Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2013.
191
Ⅲ-2
The Dynamics of China’s Trade Ties after a Brexit Announcement, UK and EU
Judy Yo-Ming Wu,
[Abstract]
The biggest challenge posted by Brexit comes from the uncertain future of the British
economy. As researchers suggested, Brexit will also harm the European economy by a long turn
dipping in an instability consequence. In 2019, the trade volume b etween the U.K. and China
reached US$86.2billion, making Britain China's second largest trade partner in Europe, behind
Germany. Brexit would undoubtedly pose challenges for the trade ties between China and UK.
Analyzing the dynamics of China's trade ties with a post-Brexit U.K. and EU, this paper
focuses on the China – U.K empirical involvement to establish the “Golden Era” declared by two
counterparts in September 2016 and the implementations of the China – EU partnerships base on
the New EU Trade and Investment Strategy. This paper will also examine if the Brexit casts a
shadow on China’s prospects of economic cooperation with Britain. This paper will also cover the
EU’s efforts to enhance its trade crucial role by seizing opportunities through part nerships with
China, which leads to foster the engagements of the new issues concerning the China -led “Silk
Road Economic Belt” initiative. And the decision in late January 2020 of both the EU and UK be
willing to accept China’s 5G telecommunications company, Huawei, which the US described as an
arm of the Chinese state giving its security design.
Index terms: Post-Brexit, China's Trade Ties, U.K., EU
I.
INTRODUCTION
The biggest challenge posed by Brexit comes from the uncertain future of the Briti sh economy.
If the world’s fifth largest economy goes into recession as a result of the Brexit process, the
ramifications for the world economy will be significant, casting a shadow on China’s prospects of
economic cooperation with Britain. Originally, Brexit means that the U.K. will leave the EU bloc,
a unified single market. This will raise U.K.’s import tariffs and the price of exports to the EU, and
increase non-tariff barriers for trade between the U.K. and EU member states, thus raising trade
commodity prices and dealing a heavy blow to Britain’s international trade. Given the high
economic interdependence of Britain and the EU, the two sides need to exercise prudence in future
192
negotiations on issues related to market treatment.
In 2015, the trade volume between the U.K. and China reached US$78.5 billion, following the
referendum held in June 2016,when 17.4 million people opted for Brexit, the trade volume between
the U.K. and China reached US$86.2billion in 2019, continuously making Britain China's second
largest trade partner in Europe, behind Germany. Brexit would undoubtedly pose challenges for the
Trade Ties between China and UK. The UK formally left the EU on 31 January 2020, but there is
still a lot to talk about and months of negotiation to come. If a new trade tie between UK and EU
cannot be agreed in time, which already been tested as being quite possible, given that the Covid 19 outbreak has postponed the negotiation, then the UK faces the prospect of having to trade with
no deal in place. That would mean tariffs (taxes) on UK goods travelling to the EU and other trade
barriers. From a UK perspective, it is crucial that the trade tie with China be further enhanced to
reduce the impact of Brexit.
The EU is China’s biggest trading partner, while China is the EU’s second -biggest trading
partner behind the United States. Based on clearly defined interests and principles, the EU should
deepen its engagement with China to promote common interests at a global level. The EU and China
launched negotiations on the CAI (EU-China Comprehensive Agreement on Investment, CAI) in
2014. The European Commission conducted an impact assessment in 2013 . A Sustainability Impact
Assessment was carried out between 2015 and 2018 to assess the potential economic, social and
environmental impacts of the agreement. With the EU-China (CAI), the EU seeks to create new
investment opportunities for European companies by opening China’s market and eliminating
discriminatory laws and practices that prevent them from competing in the Chinese market on an
equal basis with Chinese companies and companies from other third countries. The EU's key
objective is to significantly improve EU investors’ access to the Chinese market, in particular by
eliminating quantitative restrictions, equity caps or joint venture requirements. 1 According to the
“EU-China: A Strategic Outlook”, signed after the EU-China summit in Brussels on April 9.2019,
EU and China agreed to strengthen their trade relationship, cooperate on WTO reform, widen
market access, and not force businesses to hand over their intellectual property — the last a
longstanding complaint of foreign investors in China. 2 Nevertheless, the challenges for both sides
to achieve the consensus toward the conclusion of an ambitious agreement in 2020 are still rigorous.
II.
Dynamics of China’s Trade Tie with a Brexit announcement, U.K.
The notion of a Golden Era in U.K.-China relations was originated by the government under
1
Source: European Commission, News archive, 27 April 2020
2
Source: “EU, China agree to deepen trade ties” The Atlantic Council,Apr 9,2019
193
former Prime Minister David Cameron, to promote Chinese President Xi Jinping’ UK visit in
2015. The two countries were to form a “global comprehensive strategic partnership,” with the
U.K. representing China’s “best partner in the West.”In December 2017, at the time of the ninth
EFD(U.K.-China Economic and Financial Dialogue), the British government announced a “new
phase” in its so-called Golden Era of relations with China, with agreements to cooperate more
closely in such arenas as financial services, trade, and investment 3 .
Brexit has obviously drastically changed the picture of Golden Era. China established its first
overseas sovereign RMB bond in London, viewing the UK as a gateway to the EU market.
Unexpectedly, after a Brexit announcement of U.K., the decoupling of the EU-UK in trade policy
generated potential closer trade ties with China in a post-Brexit U.K. Just days after the 2016
referendum, the Brexit secretary, David Davis, declared that “trade deals with the US and China
alone will give UK a trade area almost twice the size of the EU”.
4
However, The UK is scanty of
obvious sector that China sees as of compelling benefit to its own interests, so an ambitious deal is
unlikely to be agreed speedy.
In terms of the UK’s relative performance at attracting Chinese investment, the UK appears to
perform well when compared to its EU partners. The Rhodium Group reports that over the years
2003-2011, the UK has received the second-most amount of Chinese FDI out of the EU27 (in terms
of the total dollar value of investment deals recorded), behind only France. The well -known
Britain’s unclear plant Hinkley Point C project, notably the first new nuclear plant, is 33.5%
financed by China CGN(China General Nuclear Power Corp).Furthermore, The first Chinesedesigned atomic reactor scheduled to be build in Britain has passed three out of four assessment
stages of the unclear green light of Britain’s Nuclear Regulation office in Feb,2020. 5 The approval
of energy sector from UK hints a policy keen to China. This approach from UK has even allowed
Huawei a supporting role in Britain’s fledgling 5G infrastructure. Without concerning the
contradictions in 5 Eye’s alliance which would evoke the wrath of Donald Trump, the British
government approved a restricted role for Huawei in building the country’s 5G network announced
on Jan 28,2020.
The COVID-19 crisis, however, may prove to be a turning point for the UK’s political
rebalancing act between US and China. The development of lockdown restrictions, with an
3
Source: “The Golden Era of UK-China Relations Meets Brexit”, The diplomat, by Oliver
Turner, December 18, 2018
4
Source: “With Brexit imminent, what are the chances of a UK trade deal with China?”,
The Guardian, by Rana Mitter, Jan 19,2020
5
Source: “Update 1-China-designed UK nuclear reactor moves a step closer”, Reuters,
Feb 13,2020
194
unprecedented health emergency, pushes London’s desire to accommodate Beijing’s market power
to the breaking point. However, as this confrontational approach is met by hawkish retorts to simply
amount to a war of words, the UK would not afford to jeopardize its two important market in China
and the US. 6
III. Dynamics of China’s Trade Tie with a Brexit announcement EU
III-I The EU-China Comprehensive Strategic Partnership
The EU’s China strategy is based on a belief that China,
under the influence of European engagement, will liberalize its economy toward the direction of
sustainable growth, improve the rule of law and democratize its politics. The EU-China Strategic
Partnership, based on the 1985 trade and cooperation agreement, has grown to include a multitude
of activities in areas such as creating opportunities for both sides’ businesses, international security,
environment protection and academic exchange. After three decades of extraordinary economic
development, China is shifting to a slower and more sustainable growth path. From the EU’s
perspective, the priority is to seize the opportunities through the partnerships with China who
commits to a more sustainable growth in which to foster a clean industry and reduce emission.
China sees Europe as a source of technology, lifestyle goods like fashion garments, wine, cheese,
and olive oil for its rising middle class and a market for its high -end products.
III-II The EU’s engagement with China’s "Belt and Road" initiative
At the beginning of China's "Belt and Road" initiative, the EU originally took advantage of the
situation in November 2014 to propose a scale of 315 billion euros in infrastructure investment plan
(Juncker Plan) to connect with China's "Belt and Road" (the Executive Committee launched the
Eurasian platform in late 2015 ), and has also launched the Trans-European Transportation Network
(TEN-T) policy. Moreover, EU’s acting members like Germany, France and Italy have joined the
membership of the Asian Infrastructure Investment Bank (AIIB).
However, as China's "Belt and Road" process has caused a lot of controversy, and the United States
has proposed the "Indo-Pacific Strategy" to counter China's "Belt and Road", and has repeatedly
appealed and questioned in the international arena that China will use the "Belt and Road"
Investment, allowing the landlord’s debt to rise, leading to doubts such as the transfer of sovereignty
6
Source: “COVID-19: A ‘Reckoning’ for UK-China Relations? by Niall Gray, The
Diplomat, April29,2020
195
to China, has also raised criticism within the EU, mainly focusing on the lack of transparency in
the public procurement process that criticizes China’s “Belt and Road” investment, and the
government’s support for companies behind it, which causes unfair competition M & A in
technology-sensitive sectors. In addition, China is planning to lay a 350-kilometer high-speed
railway between Greece and Central Europe in the "Belt and Road" project connecting Europe and
Asia, connecting Serbia and the capital of Hungary, and benefiting Chinese companie s to trade
directly with Europe. The EU obstructed the case, accusing Hungary of violating the EU ’s exclusive
powers on the common trade policy and the EU ’s rules on national procurement.
III-III The EU’s greenlight to Huawei 5G
In 2020, it will move beyond strategic tech sectors like semiconductors, cloud computing, and
5G into broader economic activity. Aiming to participate the trend of 5G, in which affect not just
the $5 trillion global tech sector, but other industries and institutions, EU gave its greenlight to
Huawei following the approval of UK. Before the approval announcement, EU member states have
different practices in terms of joining the US in blocking Huawei’s infrastructure, giving the move
could benefit the States in its trade bargain with China. Considering Huawei is already the largest
global provider of telecoms equipment and the company is gearing up to roll out 5G network
infrastructure across the globe, certain EU member states hesitate in blocking Huawei’s
infrastructure. According the EU Commission decision on March 26, 2019, EU member states will
be required to share data on 5G cybersecurity risks and produce measures to tackle them by the end
of 2019. Austria, Belgium, Czech Republic, France, Germany, Greece, Hungary, Ireland, th e
Netherlands, Lithuania and Portugal are all preparing to auction 5G licenses in 2020.
Globally, Huawei is a leading 5G technology vendor, enjoying an edge over Sweden's Ericsson and
Finland's Nokia in offering high-tech, low-cost gears to telecommunications operators such as
Vodafone. Huawei has decided to set up manufacturing bases of 5G equipment in Europe, in order
to have "5G for Europe made in Europe announced in the early Feb,2020.
IV. Conclusion in trade tendency
The EU’s retaining too many of its former favorable terms with Britain would likely fuel
Euroscepticism. Being overly stringent with the U.K., however, will harm the European economy,
which is still struggling to recover. Therefore, the two sides should seek a way to gain maximum
benefits for both sides.
Brexit will nevertheless inhibit the U.K.’s access to gains by virtue of the unified EU market.
Whatever the proposed plans, investors’ confidence in the prospects for the U.K. economy has been
196
shaken, exerting negative impact on economic development. Britain has still not put forward any
plan for discussion. Uncertainty will be a big feature of the Brexit process over the next few years.
Currently, China-U.K. trade considers competitive lower trade volume, so Britain’s economic
recession will not hugely affect China’s economy. However, the impact of Brexit uncertainty on the
recovery of the world economy will definitely influence China’s economy under the “new normal.”
Confronting the crisis of the Covid-19, global growth will turn sharply negative in 2020, as
World Economic Outlook predicted. In fact, we anticipate the worst economic fallout since the Great
Depression. Given the necessary containment measures to slow the spread of the virus, the world
economy is taking a substantial hit.
Brexit will also likely deal a heavy blow to the British financial industry, as financial
institutions in London face the risk of losing service permits from the other 27 EU member states.
In addition, according to EU financial regulations, if a financia l institution set up in the U.K. is
regarded as a third party when entering the EU market, it must satisfy all supervision requirements
set by its home country – Britain – as well as the EU country, which will significantly hike
supervision costs. In the post-Brexit era, whether the European Central Bank will allow London to
be a euro trading center remains to be seen. London’s position as a financial center, therefore, could
be seriously impaired. All these factors cast gloom on the prospects of China -U.K. financial
cooperation.
China Values Bilateral Relations for China, keeping bilateral relations with Britain “golden” is
both economically and politically important. From China’s perspective, as UK depending more and
more in China in the future, this will present a new opportunity for trade. Furthermore, China sees
the UK as a political partner and a leading voice for granting China market economy status.
As a country with the world’s largest population and fastest growing consumer market due to
increasing disposable income, China represents a key market for British exports. Trade volume has
been rising at a steady pace, if there is a trade agreement reached between the two countries in the
future, this growth is sure to continue.
The UK exports a myriad of products to China, representing a cross-section of British industry
and services. Looking at trade in goods only, the UK exported £18.0 billion to China in 2018, a
record high, up from £17.4 billion in 2017. UK imports of goods from China were £43.0 billi on, up
slightly from 2017, resulting in a trade deficit of -£25.0 billion in trade in goods. The UK had a
surplus of £2.9 billion on trade in services with China in 2018, exporting a record high of £4.6
billion of services and importing £1.7 billion. The UK has now recorded an overall trade deficit
with China every year. 7 The UK’s share of the Chinese market has fallen, and the reason the UK
7
Source :« Statistics on UK trade with China » House of Commons library, Number 7379,
5 November 2019
197
underperforms in regard to export performance in China is that its more successful exports are not
in line with China’s current demand. Other EU countries have stronger trade relationships with
China, and competition in the Chinese market is very tough.
The sectors that provide the greatest income include machinery, fuels, metals, transportation
services, business services, and travel services. However, the volume of UK exports to China is not
exactly aligned with the rate of China’s market growth. As China’s economy transitions from heavy
manufacturing to a service driven economy, the balance of demand acr oss the varying industries
will shift. With services coming to the forefront of demand, the UK’s greatest goods exports in
terms of value to China (such as machinery, electronic products, precision instruments, and metals)
will be less in demand. These shifts in China’s calibration should be monitored by UK-based
businesses in order to align offerings with China’s demands, especially as the UK already excels in
its service sector.
With the EU-China (CAI), the EU seeks to create new investment opportunities for European
companies by opening China’s market and eliminating discriminatory laws and practices that
prevent them from competing in the Chinese market on an equal basis with Chinese companies. The
engagement of EU-China (CAI) would be weighted more crucial after Covid-19 crisis.
Overall, the technical debate over securing 5G networks centers on claims the security from
US. However, a commentary from the technical director of the U.K.’s National Cyber Security
Centre (NCSC) describes this proposition as “untrue.” He asserts the continued feasibility in 5G of
separating high-risk vendors from sensitive data and functions despite the blockaded policy fixed
in Trump ministration. Nevertheless, China’s One Road One Belt initiative would be the target to
criticize from both US and EU.
In conclusion, for both the EU and UK, an ambitious engagement trade tie with China would
be the main theme to generate an “uptick” for the following years as China looks to further widely
open in response to the trade negotiations with the US. China’s trade ties after a Brexit
announcement UK and EU would be tighten in line with launching up to more international
investment by China.
198
Ⅲ-3
BREIIT and India: Challenges and Opportunities
Pradeep S. Chauhan
[Abstract]
BREXIT provides opportunities and also poses challenges to India. India -UK relations are both
wide ranging and robust, encompassing a broad vision for the future supported by a concrete and
comprehensive road map for bilateral and global engagement. High l evel visits on both sides in
recent times have provided an opportunity to further cement the partnership.
While the EU is among India’s largest trading partners, accounting for around 13% of
India’s global trade in goods, the UK is ranked 17th in the lis t of India’s top 25 trading
partners with India’s merchandise trade with the UK in 2017-18 estimated at US$14.5 billion
with an additional US$ 7 billion trade in services. India enjoys a favourable balance of trade
with UK. When it comes to investments, UK is ranked as the fourth largest inward investor in
India, after Mauritius, Singapore and Japan, with a cumulative equity investment of US$26 billion
since April 2000, accounting for around 6% of all foreign direct investment into India. India also
is a major investor in the UK (4th largest). Around 800 Indian companies, with a total consolidated
revenue of GBP 47.5 billion, have created over 105,000 jobs in the UK. The technology and telecom
sector account for 31% of these revenues, with the pharmaceuticals and chemical sector accounting
for 24%.
This study found that the Brexit would have not only impacted UK’s trade and investments
with the EU but also its other trading and investment partners. Indian companies, many of
which have invested heavily in the UK are likely to be quite severely impacted by a no-deal
Brexit, particularly those companies that use the UK as a gateway to the European Union and
Europe. Even companies that did not had a significant exposure to the EU felt the impact as a no deal Brexit lead to a perceptible economic downturn in the UK. Major investors like the TATA
group was already hedging their bets and exploring alternatives.
The study revealed that Irrespective of a hard or a soft Brexit, UK has clearly identified India
as a major partner, particularly in the post-Brexit era. The focus on India by successive regimes and
UK different ministries was a testimony to the value attached to India as a major trading and
investment partner.
The present study reviewed and found that the UK and India share much in common and long
and sometimes painful history has brought the two countries together through language, culture,
and legal systems. How these factors, along with close ties in investment and education, and the
199
presence of 1.45 million people of Indian heritage in the UK, revealed that the countries have a
deep connection. The post-BREXIT era had opened many gates of opportunities. This era has
created an atmosphere where both the countries have come closer and working closely in the area
of trade, investment and movement of people, global governance, and security and defense.
The United Kingdom ceased to be a member of the EU from February 1,2020 and is no longer
part of the bloc's institutions. Its departure took effect under the terms o f the revised divorce
agreement struck by London and Brussels in October 2019.The deal consists of a Withdrawal
Agreement on the terms of departure, accompanied by a Political Declaration on future ties. The
divorce terms in the Withdrawal Agreement cover matters such as the UK's financial settlement,
provisions for Northern Ireland, and safeguards for the rights of EU citizens living in the UK, and
Britons living on the continent. Under the divorce deal, a transition period came into effect upon
the UK’s departure and will run until December 31, 2020. During this period, many existing
arrangements will remain in place.
The United Kingdom left the European Union now an economic and political partnership of 27
countries on January 31, 2020, “bringing to an end 47 years of British membership of the EU and
the institutions that preceded it”. Attention has since turned to negotiating the future EU -UK
relationship beyond a stand-still transition period that ends on December 31, 2020 heralding abrupt
and major changes unless there is an agreement. Meeting this tight deadline was a huge challenge,
even before the onslaught of the coronavirus pandemic which has overwhelmed both sides. But the
British government has rejected calls to extend the transition.
"Brexit" — “the term used to describe Britain's EU departure represents the most important
constitutional shake-up the UK has known since it joined the six-nation European Economic
Community in 1973. It is also the first time the European institution has lost a member first time”.
Review of Literatures
In the context of consequences of Brexit, “very few studies have been performed. Oehler, Horn
and Wendt (2017) conduct event analysis study analysis to determine short-term abnormal stock
returns
following
the
Brexit
referendum.
They
also
examined
whether
firm -level
internationalization helps in explaining abnormal returns. The study found that stock with higher
proportions of domestic sales realized more negative abnormal returns than s tocks of firms with
more sales abroad”. Irwin G. (2015) “seeks to assess the evidence on the impact of Brexit on the
both UK and the rest of Europe. He analysed the different channels such as Trade with Europe, FDI,
liberalization and regulation, Industrial policy, Immigration, Financial services, Trade policy,
International influence, Budget and Uncertainty. This report concluded that the biggest impact
would be on the UK as compared to EU”. Dhingra, Ottaviano, Sampson, and Reenen (n.d.)
200
concluded that “economic consequences of leaving EU will depend on what policies the UK adopts
following Brexit. They also revealed that Brexit will lower trade with EU and this cost to UK
economy will far more than gain from lower contributions to the EU budget”. Reenen (2016)
predicted that “leaving the EU would reduce FDI inflows by around twenty two per cent and Brexit
is likely to have the effect of significantly lowering FDI coming to UK”. In another study of Reenen
(2016), he evaluated “the long rung economic effects of the UK’s decision to leave the EU. He
concluded that trade cost will arise with the rest of Europe resulted from some combination of tariff
and non-tariff barriers. This study used standard multi country, multi sector, computable general
equilibrium model which shows the welfare losses of 1.3 to 2.6 percent where dynamic models
revealed the incorporate productivity effects suggests that these could rise to 6.3 to 9.5 percent”.
Miller (2016) “discussed in his briefing paper various consequences in the different areas of Brexit
such as Trade relations, economic impact, employment, agriculture, environment, Fisheries policy,
energy and climate change, transport, Immigration, Human right and socia l security. He concluded
that Brexit is favourable from the point of view of social security, freedom in policy making,
employment but there will be negative consequences of Brexit in the form of Trade, inflows of
foreign direct investment, communication and mutual international development”.
The Scope of this Study
From the earlier studies, “it was found that so many studies have been done to evaluate the
consequences of Brexit on UK and EU but very few studies are carried out to evaluate the impact
of Indian economy especially in the context of trade, investment, defence and security sector. This
study tries to fill the gap in the existing literature”.
This study found that the Brexit would have not only impacted UK’s trade and investments with
the EU but also its other trading and investment partners. Indian companies, many of which have
invested heavily in the UK are likely to be quite severely impacted by a no -deal Brexit, particularly
those companies that use the UK as a gateway to the European Union and Europe. Even companies
that did not had a significant exposure to the EU felt the impact as a no -deal Brexit lead to a
perceptible economic downturn in the UK. Major investors like the TATA group was already
hedging their bets and exploring alternatives.
The study revealed that “Irrespective of a hard or a soft Brexit, UK has clearly identified India
as a major partner, particularly in the post-Brexit era”. The focus on India by successive regimes
and UK different ministries was a testimony to the value attached to India as a major trading and
investment partner.
The present study reviewed and found that the UK and India share much in common and long
and sometimes painful history has brought the two countries together through language, culture,
201
and legal systems. How these factors, along with close ties in investment and education, and the
presence of 1.45 million people of Indian heritage in the UK, revealed that the countries have a
deep connection. The post-BREXIT era had opened many gates of opportunities. This era has
created an atmosphere where both the countries have come closer and working closely in the area
of trade, investment and movement of people, global governance, and security and defence.
Background
While there has been a surfeit of reporting and analyses, on the reasons behind BREXIT, it may
be useful to briefly touch upon the European project itself and the traditional British ambivalence
towards it. With its genesis in the aftermath of the Second World War, the European project was
born out of a widely held belief that a more united Europe would not again fall prey to the large
scale destruction and devastation that visited the continent in the wake of the two calamitous world
wars of the 20th Century. However, the UK has always portrayed itself, at least domestically, as a
reluctant member of the EU. You may recall that it declined to accept an invitation to join the
European Coal and Steel Community, founded in 1951 by the Treaty of Paris. Subsequently with
the formation in 1957 of “the European Atomic Energy Community (Euratom) and European
Economic Community (EEC) set up under the Treaty of Rome the potential benefits of cooperation
became apparent”. This coupled with the post-war recovery in Germany and France led to a rethink
across the channel.
Notwithstanding two failed attempts in 1963 and 1967, UK did succeed in its third attempt in
1973 to join the EEC. By that time European cooperation had progressed to a customs union,
eliminating all custom duties amongst member states. Within a year of EEC membership, UK started
asking for major changes to agricultural and farm policies of the EEC that were more beneficial for
countries like France. At this point it may be useful to recall that the Norwegians had through a
referendum in September 1972 scuttled Norway’s application for membership of the EEC. Hence
the precedent of a referendum already existed. This influenced Prime Minister Harold Wilson to
hold UK’s first referendum on EU membership on June 5, 1975 and even though the British public
supported continued membership of the EU with 67per cent voting to stay and 33per cent voting
for exiting the EU, within two years of entering the EEC, Britain was already exploring exit options.
During the course of its membership of the EU, it often sought opt outs over issues like single
currency, charter of human rights, justice and home affairs legislation etc.
Impact of Brexit
The extent of impact of Brexit on the UK and indeed the EU will depend on whether UK exits
202
with or without a deal. A no deal Brexit would mean that there would be no transition period after
the UK leaves, and EU laws would stop applying to the UK immediate ly. Unless countervailing
measures are taken, this could have disastrous consequences for the UK, while EU would not remain
entirely unscathed.
There have been various doomsday scenarios envisaged, including in official documents in the
UK, about such an eventuality. It was predicted that Dover port would close down in a few days
and there would be disruption in freight traffic links; pharmacies in Scotland would run out of
essential life-saving drugs in three days; food prices, especially of fresh vegetab les and fruits would
increase and there could be empty shelves and higher prices in supermarkets; air travel between the
island nation and the continent would be disrupted in the absence of an enabling agreement; “UK
students studying in the EU and EU students studying in the UK would face a period of uncertainty”;
immigration controls at entry points into the UK would need to be strengthened immediately, with
the current long queues at immigration counters in airports like Heathrow increasing manifold and
so on. This is not an exhaustive listing of the severe impact that a no deal Brexit would entail but,
just an indication of the disruption and chaos that could ensue. No business can plan ahead when
there is so much uncertainty surrounding a nation. Brexit without a deal could plunge the UK into
chaos and even a recession. The voices of concern of the Bank of England and others cannot be
ignored. World leaders also have been cautioning against a hard Brexit.
Hundreds of multi-national companies, especially from India, Korea, Japan and China have
invested in UK because of free access to Europe. They are looking at relocating in order to secure
their future business and growth in Europe. Some already have. “According to a Bloomberg report
earlier this year, 350 British companies were in advanced talks with the Dutch Government to move
their businesses to Holland in the event of a no-deal Brexit. Some Japanese, German, French and
even British Banks were planning to move to Frankfurt. Sony and Panasonic have mov ed their
headquarters to Netherlands”. All the rhetoric of business with Europe under WTO rules does not
take into account the additional duties that would accrue on British exports.
Impact on India: Challenges and Opportunities
BREXIT provides opportunities and also poses challenges to India. India-UK relations are both
wide ranging and robust, encompassing a broad vision for the future supported by a concrete and
comprehensive road map for bilateral and global engagement. High level visits on both sides in
recent times have provided an opportunity to further cement our partnership.
203
Trade, investment and movement of people
While the EU is among India’s largest trading partners, accounting for around 13 per cent of
India’s global trade in goods, the UK is ranked 17th in the list of India’s top 25 trading partners
with India’s merchandise trade with the UK in 2018-19 estimated at US$14.5 billion with an
additional US$ 7 billion trade in services. India enjoys a favourable balance of trade with UK.
When it comes to investments, UK is ranked as the fourth largest inward investor in India, after
Mauritius, Singapore and Japan, with a cumulative equity investment of US$26 billion since April
2000, accounting for around 6 per cent of all foreign direct investm ent into India. India also is a
major investor in the UK (4th largest). Around 800 Indian companies, with a total consolidated
revenue of GBP 47.5 billion, have created over 105,000 jobs in the UK. The technology and telecom
sector account for 31 per cent of these revenues, with the pharmaceuticals and chemical sector
accounting for 24 per cent. The trade ties can be resumed to the extent when India was one of the
three highest trade partners in 2000, now it is at 17 th rank( Table 1).
Table 1
Source : House of Common , UK Parliament Report
Brexit will not only impact UK’s trade and investments with the EU but also its other trading
and investment partners. Indian companies, many of which have invested heavily in the UK are
204
likely to be quite severely impacted by a no-deal Brexit, particularly those companies that use the
UK as a gateway to the European Union and Europe. Even companies that do not have a significant
exposure to the EU will feel the impact as a no-deal Brexit will lead to a perceptible economic
downturn in the UK. Major investors like the TATA group are already hedging their bets and
exploring alternatives.
Both economies rely substantially on their service sectors and while both countries will focus
on enhanced market access for their products and services, for India the importance of greater and
easier access for skilled professionals, as well as students, would be important. The recent decision
by the UK to revert to a two-year post study work visa for international students is a welcome
development. However, much more needs to be done particularly with respect to easier access for
Indian professionals such as doctors, engineers, those in the ICT sector etc. India will continue to
insist on Mode IV access in negotiating an FTA with the UK. This would not be easy given UK’s
priorities.
Key opportunities for Indian companies post-Brexit could arise in the food and agro products
sector since the UK is a net importer of food and food products from the EU. It produces about
25per cent of fruits and vegetables for domestic consumption. While 30per cent of its fruit
consumption comes from Europe, around 80per cent of vegetables consumed in the UK is imported
from Europe. Indian exporters would need to comply with the regulatory framework and
accompanying phytosanitary requirements, depending naturally on what framework the UK adopts
While London is undoubtedly one of the leading global financial centres and Brexit is unlikely
to change that, it will face a huge challenge in case there is a flight of capital after Brexit. A number
of Indian companies, particularly PSUs, have raised rupee-denominated bonds, popularly called
masala bonds, in the London Stock Exchange. UK’s credit rating has been cut and given that most
buyers of the bonds are from the EU, there is nervousness around these bond issuances.
India businesses have “presence in a wide array of sectors in the UK which include automobiles,
auto components, pharmaceuticals, gems and jewellery, education and IT enabled services. Most of
these sectors will be vulnerable to changes in demand and curre ncy values”.
Britain’s exit from EU in 2019 could destabilize the steel industry which has enjoyed the protection
of EU labour law and safety standards, as well as barriers to unfair completion from other countries.
If a hard Brexit comes to fruition, those protections will no longer apply.
The trend of Gross Domestic Product(GDP) showed that the Indian economy will supersede UK
GDP very soon (Table 2).
205
Table 2
Source : House of Common , UK Parliament Report
While there are numerous challenges there are also huge opportunities for Indian companies. A
study carried out by the Commonwealth Secretariat after the Brexit vote has identified 13 new
products which India can export to the UK. It has estimated market access of around $2 billion for
these products. A well negotiated bilateral trade arrangement between the UK and India has the
potential to increase bilateral trade by 26 per cent. In fact, the report says that “the UK and India
can secure a far-reaching deal which will see the value of British exports to India rise from GBP
4.2 billion to GBP 6.3 billion, an increase of GBP 2.1 billion, or 33per cent. Imports from India by
the UK will rise by around GBP 1 billion”. UK’s balance of trade could improve even though it
may still be in favour of India.
Movement of People
Limits on the movement of people are a major constraint on UK -India ties. “Many Indian
nationals come to the UK, and nine in every 10 Indian visa applications to the UK are granted.
However, skilled workers, students, and tourists find the system unwelcomi ng, expensive, and
difficult to navigate. This has hit key UK export sectors such as education and tourism, and Indian
export sectors such as IT services”. The trend of students movement needed attention and there is
a lot of potential to increase it.
206
Table 3.
Source : House of Common , UK Parliament Report
Security and defence
The Indian Ocean :Despite these shared interests, the UK and India have sometimes diverged
in their position towards China’s role in the Indian Ocean. “India is concerned about China’s
growing influence in the region, including its investments in ports through the Belt and Road
infrastructure initiative (BRI). New Delhi has called for connectivity initiatives to maintain
standards of transparency, good governance, and respect for sovereignty”.
It is developing alternative initiatives “to meet the region’s infrastructure needs, including a joint
proposal with Japan for an Asia-Africa Growth Corridor, and forging a deeper-
relationship with
neighbours”. India has joined Japan, Australia, and the US in a revival of the Quadrilateral Security
Dialogue, or “Quad, an informal grouping that aims to defend a free and open Indo -Pacific—widely
seen as a response to growing Chinese influence”.
In conclusion, it can be emphasized that Brexit does provide an opportunity to expand India’s
trade and economic relations with the UK. Much will depend on the fine print of Brexit and the
ensuing negotiations. The challenges that Brexit throws up have to be squarely addressed before an
India-UK FTA becomes a reality. Even though the Indian economy may be in better shape than a
post-Brexit UK, we will need to leverage our strengths so that the complementarities in our
economies are harnessed. We need to work towards a win-win situation for both countries so that
207
we are able to translate adversity into an opportunity for mutual prosperity.
The unfolding saga of Brexit will determine not only the contours of o future economic engagement
of both the nations but also its pace and content.
References
Dhingra S., Ottaviano G., Sampson T., and Reenen J. V. (n.d.). The consequences of Brexit for UK
trade and living standards. Centre for economic performance. London school of Economics and
Political Science (LSE).
Dhingra S.,Ottaviano G., Sampson T., & Reenen J.V. (n.d.). The consequences of Brexit for UK
trade and living standards.
Fama E., Fisher L., Jensen M. and Roll R. (1969). The adjustment of stock prices to new
information. International Economic Review, 10, 1-21.
FICCI.
(2016).
BREXIT-
Views
and
suggestions
from
Indian
Inc.
Retrieved
from
ficci.in/Sedocument/20369/BREXIT-July-2016.PDF
Irwin G. (2015). Brexit: The impact on the UK and the EU. Global Counsel, 1-44
Miller V. (2016). Brexit: Impact across policy areas. House of Commons Library (Briefing Paper),
Retrieved from www.parliament.uk/commons-library | intranet.parliament.uk/commons-library
NSE.
(2017).
NSE
Indexogram.
Retrieved
from
https://www.nseindia.com/
content/indices/ind_nifty_it.pdf as on June 06, 2020.
Oehler A., Horn M., & Wendt S. (2017). Brexit: Short-term stock prices effects and the impact of
firm-level
internationalization.
Finance
Research
Letters,
1-7,
Retrieved
form
http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.frl.2016.12.024
Reenen J. V. (2016). Brexit 2016: Policy analysis. Centre for Economic Performance. London
school of Economics and Political Science (LSE).
Reenen J. V. (2016). Brexit’s Long Run effects on the UK economy. Brookings Papers on Economic
Activity, 367- 89.
House of Commons ,Foreign Affairs Committee “Building Bridges: Reawakening UK India ties”
Eighteenth Report of Session 2017–19
208
Ⅲ-4
The Influence of Brexit on the UK's Arms Trade Policy and Arms Embargo on
China
Yongshu Li
[Abstract]
The UK banned the overall arms trade with China after 1989 Tiananmen Incident; however,
when the EU published its arms control regime in 1998, the UK immediately left the arms control
responsibility to the EU, and restarted arms trade with China. Such UK’s effort at bypassing arms
control regulation is understandable in the context that the EU's arms embargo on China has been
haunting not only the UK, but the ties between every EU member state and China for 30 years.
Economies in the EU, such as France, Spain, Poland etc., either benefited from favouring lifting
the embargo, or suffered from disfavouring lifting the embargo. A policy like such, caused a great
debate about it within the EU from 2003 to 2005, and the UK was the most vital swing member
states in the discussion to lift the EU's arms embargo on China.
As the UK restarted arms trade with China when the EU arms control regime entered into power,
how will the arms trade change as the UK officially left the regime in February 2020 due to Brexit?
The rationales behind the UK's restart of arms sales in the 90s and swinging attitude in the 2000s,
and the UK’s relation with China after the Brexit referendum, are critical for projecting the UK's
arms trade with China after Brexit. This paper proposes a case-study into the UK's arms trade
history with China, and an effort to clarify the influential factors and actors in the view of the Brexit.
Exploring A Possible Correlation
The UK banned the overall arms trade with China after 1989 Tiananmen Incident; however
when
the EU published its arms control regime in 1998, the UK immediately left the arms control
responsibility to the EU, and restarted arms trade with China. Such UK’s effort at bypassing arms
control regulation is understandable in the context that the EU's arms embargo on China has been
haunting not only the UK, but the ties between every EU member state and China for 30 years.
Economies in the EU, such as France, Spain, Poland etc., either benefited from favouring lifting
the embargo, or suffered from disfavouring lifting the embargo. A policy like such, caused a great
debate about it within the EU from 2003 to 2005, and the UK was the most vital swing member
states in the discussion to lift the EU's arms embargo on China.
The UK banned its arms trade with China after the 1989 Tiananmen Incident; however, when
209
the EU published its arms control regime in 1998, the UK immediately left the arms control
responsibility to the EU, and restarted its arms trade with China. The UK’s overt attemp t to bypass
arms control regulation is understandable in the context that the EU's arms embargo on China has
been haunting not only the UK, but the ties between every EU member state and China for 30 years.
Economies in the EU, such as France, Spain, Poland etc., either benefited or suffered from lifting
the embargo. The policy to lift the embargo on China caused great debate within the EU from 2003
to 2005, with the UK being the most vital of the swing member states in the discussion.
The UK restarted its arms trade with China when the EU arms control regime entered into
effect, but how will the arms trade change as the UK officially left the regime in February 2020 due
to Brexit? The rationales behind the UK's restart of arms sales in the 90s and swinging attitude in
the 2000s, and the UK’s relations with China after the Brexit referendum, are critical for projecting
the UK's arms trade with China after Brexit. This paper proposes a case -study into the UK's arms
trade history with China, and an effort to clarify the influential factors and actors in light of Brexit.
The UK’s Limited Concerns
Many countries adopted specific policies and sanctions against the Chinese government for its
crackdown during the 1989 Tiananmen Incident. On 6 June 1989, the twelve member states of the
European Community (EC) made the following brief statement on the Tiananmen Incident:
“The Twelve, deeply shocked by the tragic developments in China, strongly condemn the violent
repression used against peaceful demonstrators, which has resulted in widespread loss of life there.
They note that serious unrest continues.
The Twelve urge the Chinese authorities to stop the use of force against unarmed civilian
population in Peking and elsewhere.
The Twelve appeal to the Chinese leadership to engage without delay in the search for a
peaceful solution to the present conflict. Such a solution cannot be attained without political
dialogue.
Continuing repressive actions, in violation of universally recognised human rights principles,
will greatly prejudice China’s international standing and compromise the reform and open -door
policies which the European Community and its member states have actively supported.
The European Community and member states have already taken a number of measures, incl uding
suspension of high contacts, and will continue to keep developments in China under urgent
review.” 1
1
European Council, 6 June, 1989, Statement by the Twelve on China, FEC 014/3, File C,
Madrid
210
Most of the EC member states took reaction individually on the Tiananmen Incident. The
Government of the UK decided to take actions as below, reported by Geoffrey Howe, then-Secretary
of State for Foreign and Commonwealth Affairs to the House of Commons:
“- all scheduled ministerial exchanges between Britain and China have been suspended. The visit
of the Chinese Minister of Justice, who was due to arrive here tomorrow, has been cancelled. My
Rt Hon Friend, the Minister of Agriculture, Fisheries and Food, has also cancelled his
forthcoming visit to China.
- the proposed visit of Their Royal Highnesses the Prince and Princess of Wales to China in
November clearly cannot take place so long as those responsible for the atrocities over the past
weekend remain in control of the Chinese Government;
- all high-level military contacts with China have been suspended;
- all arms sales to China have been banned.” 2
It was the first appearance of the UK’s arms embargo, which was even earlier than the EC’s
ban. At the European Political Cooperation meeting on 12 June 1989, the foreign ministers of the
EC member states believed that positions should be taken, if not already taken by a member state;
further statements could be made on the basis of the 6 June statement; ho wever, it appeared not
necessary to do so. 3 On 21 June, the Far Eastern Department of the British Foreign and
Commonwealth Office (FCO) suggested to the British Government that it was important to maintain
communication with China rather than to sever it, as it would highly benefit the Chinese
population. 4 On 22 June, the French and Dutch Governments separately contacted the British
Government regarding the forthcoming Madrid European Council Summit. France urged for the
condemnation of the crackdown to end, and proposed that a unified package of specific measures
could be considered while the Netherlands suggested that there should be common measures taken
by the Twelve. 5
Consequently, on 26 and 27 June, the European Council of Ministers of EC held the s ummit
in Madrid, and declared the following sanctions policies against China:
“- raising the issue of human rights in China in the appropriate international fora; asking for the
2
Geoffrey Howe, 6 th June, 1989, FEC 014/3, Statement on Events in China and Their
Implications for Hong Kong, House of Commons
3
European Political Cooperation: Ministerial Meeting, 12 June, 1989, Briefing No.5: China,
FEC 014/3, Luxembourg
4
Far Eastern Department of the UK Foreign and Commonwealth Office, 21 June, 1989,
Anglo/Chinese Relations, FEC 020/7
5
Secretary of State of the UK Government, 22 June, 1989, Anglo-Chinese Relations, FEC
020/7
211
admittance of independent observers to attend the trials and to visit the pris ons;
- Interruption by the Member States of the Community of military cooperation and an embargo on
trade in arms with China;
- Suspension of bilateral ministerial and high-level contacts;
- Postponement by the Community and its Member States of new cooper ation projects;
- Reduction of programs of cultural, scientific and technical cooperation to only those activities
that might maintain a meaning in the present circumstances;
- Prolongation by the Member States of visas to the Chinese students who wish it.
Taking into account the climate of uncertainty created in the economic field by the present policy
of the Chinese authorities, the European Council advocates the postponement of the examination
of new requests for credit insurance and the postponement of the examination of new credits of the
World Bank.” 6
As shown above, the UK imposed an arms embargo on China in the very beginning, but did
not consider it as worthwhile to further strengthen the sanctions. As a matter of fact, in the years
following 1989, most of the sanction policies were lifted except for the arms embargo. The existing
arms embargo itself has many critical weaknesses. It was a political declaration by the European
Council. The member states reached a consensus on the issue and published the sanctions. There
was no legal instrument bound to the sanctions. Moreover, there was no unified definition of an
arms embargo in the EC at the time. Such a situation left a loophole on the arms embargo for
member states, especially the UK, to manoeuvre.
For the Emerging Partnership
The late 90s were significant as during that time a number of historical events in UK -China
relations took place, many of which could have influenced the UK’s arms exports to China, namely,
the UK’s handover of Hong Kong to China in July 1997, cleared one of major barriers of the UK China relations. In 1997, the EU member states also stopped supporting a resolution condemning
China’s human rights at the UNCHR and the first UK-China Human Rights Dialogue was held in
September. In 1998, the comprehensive partnership between the EU and China was launched and,
most significantly, the Code of Conduct on Arms Export of the EU was published. 7 The following
analysis will focus on human rights issues and the Code of Conduct, as these still majorly impact
the UK’s policy towards China today.
6
European Council, 1989, ‘Declaration of European Council, Madrid, 27/6/1989’
7
The United Nation Commission of Human Rights (UNCHR) was replaced by the United
Nation Human Rights Council (UNHRC) in 2006.
212
In the sanctions published by the EC, member states were required to raise human rights issues
at international fora. Consequently, the EU, along with the United States, condemned China by
making resolutions at the UNCHR until 1996. However, several issues stopped the EU’s
condemnation of China and divided the EU from within. In July 1995, in the hopes of pro moting
EU–China relations, the EU published “A long-term policy for China–Europe relations” and
launched a human rights dialogue with China. In 1996, there was a sign from the Asia –Europe
Meeting (ASEM) that the EU was willing to suspend human rights criti cism in exchange for
stronger economic ties with Asian countries. 8 At the ASEM meeting, France tried to squeeze out
concessions from China by promising to drop criticism of China at the UNCHR. 9
In 1997, the UNCHR held its sessions in Geneva from 10 March to 18 April, and Denmark
drafted a resolution to censure China on the occasion. In Beijing on 8 April, Chinese President
Zemin Jiang promised the French Defense Minister Millon that China would join the International
Covenant on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights and sign treaties as well. 10 China also praised
the French approach to human rights and criticized the EU and the United States for the UNCHR
resolution issue. France took the chance, immediately declined the co -sponsorship of the resolution
at the UNCHR, and signed the “Joint Declaration for a Global Partnership” between France and
China in May. 11
The UK soon followed suit and raised proposals to China to see if there were any alternative
ways to address the human rights issues, such as a dialogue. In June, the Chinese Vice Minister
Yingfan Wang replied to the UK with the following:
“Both sides envisaged a new start, including the expansion and deepening of exchanges in all fields.
There were differences of view between us on human rights. It w as important to find ways of
handling differences. [……] Both sides should adopt a long-term perspective.”
8
“European leaders went into last weekend’s Bangkok summit conference hoping they
could tiptoe around human rights, promote exports to Asia and enhance their presence in
the region,” Alan Friedman, 5 th March, 1996, ‘After Pledges at Asia Summit, Europe Faces
Cost’, nytimes.com , http://www.nytimes.com/1996/03/05/news/05iht-summit.t_3.html,
accessed 4 th May, 2020
9
Human Rights Watch, March 1, 1997, C903, Chinese Diplomacy, Western Hypocrisy and
the U.N. Human Rights Commission
10
China aims to deflect criticism on rights, deseretnews.com , 8 th April, 1997,
http://www.deseretnews.com/article/553761/China-aims-to-deflect-criticism-onrights.html, accessed 4 th May, 2020
11
At the time, Germany, Italy, Spain, and Greece also dropped sponsoring resolutions condemning China; this
group of EU member states is particularly focusing on economic ties with China and therefore gained the
nickname of the “Airbus Club,” named after the fact that the French Government often focuses on promoting
the Airbus Company.
213
To which the UK replied:
“we wanted a forward looking discussion, without preconditions.” 12
The discussion about holding the human rights dialogue between the UK and China went on
for several months. In September, Yongxiang Shen, the Chinese Division Director in the
International Organisations Department finally accepted the UK’s proposal for a human rights
dialogue in September, with a commentary saying that “the UK was the only big country in the EU
which insisted on the ‘anti-China’ resolution at UNCHR in Geneva”, and he hoped “the situation
would change” and that the dialogue would play a role in the development of the UK’s policy. 13 As
the EU incoming Presidency in 1998, the UK was keen to see the constructive and substantive
development of relations with China, and therefore complied with the request.
Thereafter, the EU member states started to focus on their bilateral human rights dialogue with
China rather than criticism at the UNCHR. In February 1998, the General Affairs Council of the
EU officially announced that “neither the Presidency nor member states should table or co -sponsor
a draft Resolution at the next UN Commission on Human Rights.” 14 Immediately afterwards, in
March, the Commission published a communication on “Building a Comprehensive Partnership
with China.” 15
On the other hand, as an effort to fix the void of an arms control regime, the EU adopted the
Code of Conduct on Arms Exports in 1998, which better regulated the arms trade of the EU. 16 As
previously stated, it could be said that the EC did not even know what “arms” they were referring
to when they decided on the arms embargo on China. As argued by Caruso, it was not a unified
policy but a sum of similar policies. 17 It was a publication of the very similar and ambiguous
declarations of many states, at the same time. The consequence of the Code’s characteristics was
that the involved countries could adopt any interpretation of th e policy they wished. For example,
the UK interpretation was:
“Lethal weapons, such as machine guns, large caliber weapons, bombs, torpedoes, rockets and
missiles;
12
Foreign and Commonwealth Office, June 1997, SUBJECT: MEETING WIT HWANG
YINGFAN, 26 JUNE: HUMAN RIGHTS, 073271 MDHIAN 5667
13
Foreign and Commonwealth Office, September 1997, SUBJECT: CHINA: HUMAN
RIGHTS DIALOGUE: NEXT STEPS, 076553 MDHIAN 2218
14
15
16
17
The General Affairs Council of the EU, 23 rd February, 1998, Press: 44 Nr:6060/98, consilium.europa.eu,
http://www.consilium.europa.eu/uedocs/cms_data/docs/pressdata/en/gena/6060EN8.htm, accessed 25 th April,
2020
The European Commission, 25 th March, 1998, COM (1998) 181 final, Building a Comprehensive Partners hip
with China, accessed 25 th April, 2020
The Council of European Union, 5 June, 1998, European Union Code of Conduct on Arms Exports, 8675/2/98,
Rev 2, Brussels
Raul Caruso, 2005, ‘To Lift or not to Lift? A Few Notes on the Lifting of the European Arm s Embargo on
China’, Crossroads, Vol.5, pp. 8-9
214
Specially designed components of the above and ammunition;
Military aircraft and helicopters, vessels of war, armored fighting vehicles and other such weapons
platforms;
Any equipment which might be used for internal repression;
See our guide on the UK Military List. The Military End Use Control does not apply to China.” 18
In comparison, the French never offered a clear interpretation; France only mentioned
technology through its Minister of Defense Charles Millon, on 8 April 1997 in Beijing:
“With the Chinese leaders, we discussed reinforcing cooperation in three areas:
- Very high level strategic dialogue;
- The exchange of information and training;
- Cooperation in the technical, technological and infrastructure fields.
...
This technological and industrial cooperation will be conducted within the framework of our
European and international commitments.” 19
Having no detailed definition of the key items, it is plausible to sidestep such an ambiguous
arms embargo. As in the UK’s statement, the Military End Use Control does not apply to China;
however, the Military End Use Control is the UK’s domestic arms control regime. The UK’s
interpretation is a clear statement saying that the arms embargo on China only applies at the EU
level but not at the UK’s domestic level. Not to mention, France never clarified its arms embargo
regime in China. Moreover, the United States is particularly unsatisfied with the ambiguity of the
terms in the arms embargo and has been urging the EU to revise and strengthen it.
It should be further noted that the implication of the arms embargo has beco me more
complicated over time, which causes difficulties in lifting it. Though the sanction came into force
only as the EC’s condemnation of the Chinese Government’s behaviour in the Tiananmen Incident,
the embargo soon attracted the attention of international human rights groups. It was no longer
about the Tiananmen Incident, but about any violation to human rights in any part of China at any
level, even if the human rights situation is better than what it was before 1989. The very existence
of the embargo has been directly connected to the EU member states’ attitude to human rights
violation.
Also, after the end of the Cold War, the embargo emerged with strategic implications. Its
18
19
‘Arms
embargo
on
China’,
businesslink.gov.uk,
http://www.businesslink.gov.uk/bdotg/action/detail?itemId=1084113496&type=RESOURCES, accessed 15 th
January, 2020
Source: Paris Agence France Presse (in French) 8 April 1997, cited by SIPRI in ‘French statement on
interpretation
of
EU
arms
embargo
against
China’,
sipri.org,
http://www.sipri.org/databases/embargoes/eu_arms_embargoes/china/french, accessed 29 th January, 2020.
There is also an English version of this piece of news, provided by the Agence France Presse, available from
the Factiva Database.
215
existence could contain China’s influence on the regional military balance, such as concerning the
security of the Taiwan Strait and China and Japan’s potential collision over the Diaoyu/Senkaku
Islands. The United States, Taiwan, Japan, and many other countries and regions have become
concerned about the arms embargo, since lifting the embargo might lead to the enhancement of
China’s military rise.
The Atlantic Rift
By the end of 2002, France, Germany, the UK, and Italy started consulting each other on the
possibility of lifting the embargo, though it was still too early to be ar any result. 20 On 10 September
2003, the Commission announced its “A Maturing Partnership—shared interests and challenges in
EU–China relations” policy paper. The policy paper reaffirmed the continuing will for science and
technology cooperation, and suggested the impending negotiations on a future nuclear research
cooperation agreement. 21 Having felt the heating-up of EU–China relations, on 20 September,
France, the UK, and Germany had a mini-summit and once again discussed the possibility of lifting
the EU’s embargo on China. 22
And the first clear signal of lifting the EU’s arms embargo on China was on 12 December 2003.
During the summit of the European Council, the French President Jacques Chirac led the lobbying
campaign to the European states. The campaign was quite successful; even the traditional ally—
who promoted the Iraq War with the United States—the British Prime Minister Tony Blair was
persuaded and agreed to review the embargo, without any realization of the future reaction from
Washington. 23
On 2 April 2004, the EU Political and Security Committee discussed issues related to lifting
the arms embargo on China. France led the pro-lifting campaign and Denmark stood the firmest on
20
May-Britt U. Stumbaum, 2009, The European Union and China: decision-making in EU
foreign and security policy towards the People’s Republic of China : Baden-Baden: Nomos,
p. 177
21
Commission of the European Communities, 10 September, 2003, COM (2003) 533 final,
Commission Policy Paper for Transmission to the Council and the European Parliament:
A maturing partnership-shared interests and challenges in EU-China relations
22
May-Britt U. Stumbaum, 2009, The European Union and China: decision-making in EU
foreign and security policy towards the People’s Republic of China : Baden-Baden: Nomos,
p. 177
23
Ewen MacAskill and Jonathan Watts, 2 nd August, 2004, ‘Blair caught in middle over China
arms ban’, guardian.co.uk , http://www.guardian.co.uk/world/2004/aug/02/china.eu,
accessed 4 May, 2020
216
the human rights ground. Other member states were somewhere in between with preferences. France
insisted that (1) the embargo should go without conditions; (2) consequently there was no reason
to strengthen the Code of Conduct or legally bind it; (3) the embargo and lifting it should be political,
and a decision should be made rather than sending it to working groups. The UK favoured a working
groups’ review of China’s human rights, regional influence, and the Code; however, fundamentally
the UK was pro-France, arguing that the Code should not be legally binding. 24
Parallel to discussion developments within the EU, the US strengthened its lobbying against
lifting the arms embargo. In October 2004, the UK’s support to the lift changed, as US President
Bush put pressure on the UK the British Foreign Minister Straw told the pub lic that they were not
“in any sense against lifting the embargo, but it has got to be done in a proper and sensible
manner.” 25 Eventually the EU gave up lifting the embargo in 2005 as China passed the Anti Secession Law. Nonetheless, the EU’s 2-year discussion on lifting the arms embargo showed that
the UK could turn to be supportive to arms sales to China given the right conditions.
The UK’s Exit Plan and Reality
As a result of the 23 June 2016 UK referendum, the UK was set to leave the EU. The first human
rights dialogue between the UK and China after the Brexit decision took place in Beijing on 27 -28
June 2017, and it served as the first weather vane for the direction of UK -China relations:
“The Dialogue provides a valuable channel to get into the detail of our human rights concerns and
to raise specific cases. The fact the Chinese side responded comprehensively underlines that they
do pay attention. It also gives us scope to strengthen our hand in other dialogues by covering issues
that have read across, e.g. the death penalty which is relevant both to our MOU on modern slavery
and human trafficking (a crime punishable in theory by the death penalty in China) and extradition
– both priority topics under the Security Dialogue.
Yet there is increasing criticism from some in the NGO community that human rights dialogues are
at best going through the motions and at worst serving as a fig leaf for both sides to avoid raising
difficult issues at Ministerial level. However, we judge that it is worth co ntinuing with the dialogue
(only a few others still have one, including the EU, Switzerland and the Netherlands) provided it is
24
‘Subject: China Arms Embargo: April 2 PSC Debate and Next Steps for US ’, The US
Diplomatic Cable, Reference No.04BRUSSELS1510, created 7 th April, 2004, from the US
Embassy, Brussels, Belgium
25
Graham Bowley, 13 th October, 2004, ‘Ministers disagree on ending China ban: European
Union
lifts
arms
embargo
on
Libya’,
nytimes.com ,
http://www.nytimes.com/2004/10/13/news/13iht-t3_33.html, accessed 16 April, 2020
217
not as an alternative to senior Ministerial engagement on human rights issues. And we should be
confident in pushing back on criticism of this approach.” 26
Human rights concerns have often been said to be the major reason for keeping the arms
embargo on China; nevertheless, it can be seen from the above that the UK Government official
was satisfied with the progress made with China and that the government was “confident in pushing
back on criticism” from the NGO community. Specifically, on the arms embargo itself, upon an
information disclosure request to the FCO, the following answer was given concerning how the UK
interprets the arms embargo on China post-Brexit:
“I can confirm that the Foreign and Commonwealth Office (FCO) does hold information relevant
to your request.
The information has been withheld using section 27 (international relations) and section 35
(formulation of government policy).
The information you request is exempt under Section 35(1)(a) of the Act which also requires the
application of a public interest test. It is recognised that there is public interest in the greater
transparency in the decision making process to ensure accountability within public authorities.
However, officials need to be able to conduct rigorous and candid risk assessments of their policies
and programmes including considerations of pros and cons without there being a risk of premature
disclosure which might close off better options and inhibit the free and frank discussion of all policy
options. For these reasons we consider that the public interest in maintaining this exemption
outweighs the public interest in disclosing it.
The information is also exempt under Section 27(1)(a) of the FOIA. This section recognises the
need to protect information that would be likely to prejudice relations between the United Kingdom
and other states if it was disclosed. In this case, the premature release of information relating to the
formulation of government policy could harm our relations with China.
We hope you find it helpful to know, though, that the Government has introduced to Parliament a
Sanctions and Anti-Money Laundering Bill to ensure the UK has the legal powers to maintain
sanctions after we leave the EU, where required. The design of specific sanctions regimes will be
determined in due course, including where required through secondary legislation. We have a legal
obligation to implement UN sanctions. Our approach to non-UN sanctions is under consideration.” 27
The Sanctions and Anti-Money Laundering Bill mentioned above, is “An Act to make
provision enabling sanctions to be imposed where appropriate for the purposes of compliance with
26
Interlocutor at the FCO, 19 March 2018
27
East Asia Department of the UK Foreign and Commonwealth Office, FREEDOM OF
INFORMATION ACT 2000 REQUEST REF: 1235-17, email received on 5 March 2018
218
United Nations obligations or other international obligations”, as described in the Act itself. 28 The
Act does not further define or enforce anything in the preexisting arms control regime in the UK;
its function is to enable further legislative options. In other words, so far nothing changed.
The UK’s Deal
Since 2016, the UK government has barely voiced its view on its arms trade with China. There are
two reasons to be considered as the cause for the silence: first, the UK government has been pulling
its strength together to push forward a soft Brexit, in which progress could barely be seen. There i s
simply no time or will to put arms trade with China in the spotlight. Another reason is that Trump
has been very vocal about his attitude about China during his election campaign, and it has not
changed since he won the election. The UK had already learned its lesson about going against the
US for China during the 2003-2005 debate about lifting the arms embargo, and thus knew that it
would be wiser to remain silent.
Although there has not been much discussion or change policy wise, the most recent
developments are enlightening. Reports by the UK’s Department for International Trade have given
a clear recent record of the UK arms trade with China:
SIELs - Permanent and Temporary (excluding Incorporation and Transhipment) Issued
Types of goods on licence
No. of licences Value
Military
Non-military
Both Military and Non-military
Total
60
£6,087,275
759
£204,178,278
3
£4,762,496
822
£215,028,049
Chart 1) The UK’s Export Licensing Decision on China, 2016 29
SIELs - Permanent and Temporary (excluding Incorporation and Transhipment) Issued
Types of goods on licence
No. of licences Value
Military
Non-military
Both Military and Non-military
Total
28
65
£11,672,708
907
£366,322,070
1
£29,360
973
£378,024,137
The UK Parliament, Sanctions and Anti-Money Laundering Act 2018, available at
http://www.legislation.gov.uk/ukpga/2018/13, accessed on 13 April, 2020
29
Department for International Trade of the UK Government, October 2019, Strategic
Export Controls: Country Pivot Report 1st January 2016 - 31st December 2016, pp. 140141
219
Chart 2) The UK’s Export Licensing Decision on China, 2017 30
SIELs - Permanent and Temporary (excluding Incorporation and Transhipment) Issued
Types of goods on licence
No. of licences
Military
Non-military
Both Military and Non-military
Total
Value
67
£7,624,331
899
£472,977,428
3
£884,211
969
£481,485,970
Chart 3) The UK’s Export Licensing Decision on China, 2018 31
The Standard Individual Export Licences (SIELs) from 2016 to 2018 show a steady rise in the
UK’s arms trade with China from 215 million pounds to 481 million pounds worth of trade. The
most recent SIEL, released in April 2020, indicated that the following trade took place between the
UK and China during 2019:
“……
SIELs - Permanent and Temporary (excluding Incorporation and Transhipment) Is sued
Types of goods on licence
No. of licences
Military
Value
42
£43,765,271
Non-military
1004
£481,762,688
Total
1046
£525,527,960
The SIELs issued were granted for goods with the following 'Control Entries' (for permanent export
except where the case summary description is preceded by a T, which indicates a Temporary Export).
Please note that more than one 'Control Entry' can apply to goods on an individual licence and each
'Control Entry' is counted only once per individual licence (regardless of the number of goods that
have been rated with that 'Control Entry'):
Military
Control Entry
30
No. of licences with goods
rated using Control Entry
Value
ML1
1
£280
ML2
2
£8,000
ML4
4
£225,982
ML5
1
£500,000
ML9
6
£42,562,538
Department for International Trade of the UK Government, April 2020, Strategic Export
Controls: Country Pivot Report 1st January 2017 - 31st December 2017, pp. 183-184
31
Department for International Trade of the UK Government, April 2020, Strategic Export
Controls: Country Pivot Report 1st January 2018 - 31st December 2018, pp. 131-132
220
ML10
4
£104,088
ML11
11
£112,443
ML15
1
£0
ML17
1
£216,833
ML18
1
£3,327
ML21
7
£4,278
ML22
14
£27,501
… 32
Refused
Count
Military
2
Non-military
67
Total
69
The SIELs refused were not granted for goods with the following 'Control Entries' (for
permanent export except where the case summary description is preceded by a T, which indicates a
Temporary Export). Please note that more than one 'Control Entry' can apply to goods on an
individual licence and each 'Control Entry' is counted only once per individual licen ce (regardless
of the number of goods that have been rated with that 'Control Entry'):
Military
Control Entry No. of licences with goods
rated using Control Entry
ML15
1
ML22
2
military infrared/thermal imaging equipment.
technology for military aero-engines.
technology for military infrared/thermal imaging equipment.” 33
It can be seen from the above data that just one SIELs category allowed 42 licences of exports
of military goods, amounting to £43,765,271 worth of products, covering ballistic test equipment,
components/technologies for combat aircraft, naval vessels, aux iliary vessels, etc.. And it merely
accounts for a fraction of the UK’s exports of similar nature in 2019.
32
See appendix 1 for the details of the trades.
33
Department for International Trade of the UK Government, April 2020, Strategic Export
Controls: Country Pivot Report 1st January 2019 - 31st December 2019, pp. 122-131
221
Conclusion
As the discussion in each section has showed, the UK has been quite pragmatic and consistent at
addressing both the human rights issue and arms exports with China. Immediately after the 1989
Tiananmen Incident, the UK imposed sanctions like other EC member states, however, its interest
in embargoing China was very limited. In 1998, the UK was eager to improve its overall relationship
with China, and was willing to drop the UNCHR censure on the human rights situation of China.
In the same year that the EU published its arms control regime, the UK restarted arms exports to
China. During the 2003-2005 EU internal great debate regarding lifting the arms embargo, Tony
Blair first agreed to revisit the arms embargo issue, which marked the start of the arms embargo
debate. During the whole debate, the UK mostly supported lifting the arms embargo, though
eventually reserved its opinion in consideration of its U.S. alliance.
After the Brexit referendum, evidence showed that the UK was positive about the UK -China
Human Rights Dialogue, and intended to push back at criticism of the dialogue. As to the arms
export between the UK and China, data since 2016 has further showed that the UK has licenced a
huge amount of military-related exports, which is a trend that is very likely to continue in the future.
Appendix 1 List of SIELs Military Trade Items
This is a detailed list of trade items of military nature, licensed as SIELs by the UK government,
and they were granted permission to be traded to either Chinese government and military, or any
counterpart of similar nature within China. The related footnotes were also extracted as they were
in the document, and listed following the item list. 34
ballistic test equipment (8 licences).
components for ballistic test equipment (2 licences).
components for combat aircraft [See footnote 111].
components for combat naval vessels (2 licences) [See footnote 53].
components for military auxiliary/support vessels.
components for military guidance/navigation equipment [See footnote 105].
34
Department for International Trade of the UK Government, April 2020, Strategic Export
Controls: Country Pivot Report 1st January 2019 - 31st December 2019, pp. 122-131
222
components for military infrared/thermal imaging equipment.
T
components for military support aircraft.
components for rangefinding equipment.
equipment for the production of military aero-engines [See footnote 9].
equipment for the use of ballistic test equipment (4 licences).
general military aircraft components [See footnote 1].
general naval vessel components (2 licences).
military aircrew safety equipment.
military auxiliary/support vessels [See footnote 55].
military communications equipment.
military diving apparatus.
munitions/ordnance detection/disposal equipment (4 licences) [See footnotes 104, 12, 92].
projectile launchers (2 licences).
software for ballistic test equipment (7 licences).
technology for air defence systems.
technology for ballistic test equipment (3 licences).
technology for combat aircraft (2 licences) [See footnote 39].
technology for combat naval vessels (2 licences).
technology for general naval vessel components.
technology for military aircraft head-up/down displays.
technology for military combat vehicles.
technology for military diving apparatus [See footnote 48].
technology for military electronic equipment [See footnote 45].
technology for military guidance/navigation equipment.
technology for military infrared/thermal imaging equipment.
technology for military patrol/assault craft (3 licences).
technology for targeting equipment.
technology for weapon night sights.
technology for weapon sights.
T
weapon sights [See footnote 40].
…
Country Footnotes
1. A declaration by the Madrid European Council on 27 June 1989 established an arms embargo on
China. The UK interpretation of this embargo applies to: lethal weapons such as machine guns,
large calibre weapons, bombs, torpedoes, rockets and missiles; spec ially designed components of
these items and ammunition; military aircraft and helicopters, vessels of war, armoured fighting
223
vehicles and other such weapons platforms; any equipment which might be used for internal
repression. All exports for this destination were approved in accordance with the sanctions in place.
Case & goods Footnotes
1. Licence granted for civilian / commercial end use.
…
9. Licence granted for commercial end use.
…
12. Licence granted for explosive detection / disposal purposes. Law enforcement agency end use.
…
39. Licence granted for marketing and promotional purposes, including demonstration to potential
customers, temporary exhibitions.
40. Licence granted for goods which will be returned to the UK. Commercial end use.
…
45. Licence granted for manufacturing purposes.
…
48. Licence granted for manufacturing purposes. Commercial end use.
…
53. Licence granted for components / accessories / spare parts. End use by the (Military) Navy.
…
55. Licence granted for disaster / emergency response purposes.
…
92. Licence granted for explosive detection / disposal purposes. Law enforcement agency end use.
…
104.Licence granted for explosive detection / disposal purposes.
105.Licence granted for components / accessories / spare parts.
…
111.Licence granted for academic / civilian end users.
224
Biography
Haba, Kumiko
is a Jean Monnet Chair, a Professor at Aoyama Gakuin University, former President of the EUSA
Asia Pacific 2017, past Vice President of International Studies Association ( ISA:2016-17), Vice
President of ISA Asia Pacific (2017 -21). She is a Director of the Institute for Global Int ernational
Relations, Member and Associate Member of the Science Council of Japan. She has been a Visiting
Scholar at Harvard University (2011 -12), European University Institute (2007), Sorbonne
University (2004), University of London (1996-97), and the Hungarian Academy of Science (199596, 2002). Her Specialty is International Relations, Comparative Studies between the EU and Asian
Region, immigrant issues, and building peace and prosperity in conflict regions.
She has written
68 books (including as editor, and co-writer), 14 English books (including Proceedings), and 170
articles. Her major books are: K. Haba, European Division and Integration, European Nationalism
and Borders, Inclusion or Exclusion, Chuokoron Shinsha, Tokyo, 2016, K. Haba (Ed.),
International Society in Great Transition era, Low and Culture Publishers, Tokyo, 2019.
S.
Rosefielde, Kuboniwa and K. Haba (Eds.), The Unwinding of the Globalist Dream ー EU, Russia
and China, World Science, London, New Jersey and Singapore, 2017. K. Haba, Asian Regional
Cooperation in the Global Era, Iwanami Publishers, 2012. (Chinese translation, Beijing, 2013),
K. Haba (Ed.), Considering Asian Regional Integration, To Avoid Wars, Akashi Publishers, 2017.
Holland, Martin
holds a Jean Monnet Chair ad personam, is Director of both the National Centre for Research on
Europe at the University of Canterbury and of European Union Centres Network in New Zealand.
He is the current Secretary-General of the EU studies Association of the Asia-Pacific and the leader
of the “EXPECT” Jean Monnet perceptions project (2019 -2022). He is the author of twenty -five
authored or edited books and internationally recognised for his work on EU Development Policy,
Common Foreign and Security Policy and as well as Perceptions of the EU. He has received a
number of notable awards including: a European University Institute Jean Monnet Fellowship;
Alexander von Humboldt Fellowship; Rockerfeller Bellagio Fellowship; and a Bene Merito award
from the Polish Foreign Ministry.
225
Chaban, Natalia
is Professor and Jean Monnet Chair at the Department of Media and Communication at University
of Canterbury, New Zealand. She is the President of Ukrainian Studies Association of Australia
and NZ, co-editor of the Australian and New Zealand Journal of Euro pean Studies (since its
inception in 2009) and leader of several transnational research projects supported by the European
Commission. Natalia focuses her interdisciplinary research on cognitive and semiotic aspects of
political and media discourses, image and perceptions studies within the EU and IR contexts, and
public diplomacy and political communication. Natalia widely publishes including articles in high
impact journals such as the Journal of Common Market Studies, Journal of European Integration,
Cooperation and Conflict, Foreign Policy Analysis, Mobilities, Comparative European Politics .
Most recently, she co-edited Special Issue of European Security “Understanding the scope and
limits of EU diplomacy - Connecting strategic narrative to EU external p erceptions research” (with
A. Miskimmon and B. O’Loughlin, 2019) and Changing perceptions of the EU at times of Brexit:
Global Perspectives (with A. Niemann and J. Speyer, Routledge, 2020).
Chauhan, Pradeep S.
is a well-known political economist. He has been visiting Professor to many world-renowned
intuitions and University including University of Oxford, Paris School of Economics, University
of California, Berkeley, USA, Aoyama Gakuin University, Tokyo etc. He is M.Phil. (Gold
Medalist) and Doctorate in Economics.
His illustrious academic career also includes a
prestigious French Government Fellowship from the Government of France for which he pursued
his
research and teaching at Paris School of Economics, Paris. He has been Agatha Harrison
Memorial Fellow at St.
Antony’s College, University of Oxford for some years (2007 -2010). Dr.
Chauhan has already published 15 books. He is an expert in the development economics and
Economics of Climate Change and the world economy. Dr. Chauhan has completed many research
projects and has authored many quality research publications. He is a member of many national
and international academic bodies. He has presented papers in many national and international
conferences. He is currently Director Associated Research for France and South Asia Fellow at
FMSH. He has completed many major and sponsored research projects. He has been honored with
many national and international awards for excellence in academic resear ch. He has been a Visitor
(President of India) nominee to (Highest Governing Body) Executive Council of Central University
of Haryana and member of Executive Council of Kurukshetra University, Kurukshetra. He is the
Chancellor ’s Nominee to many Universities for selection committees and academic bodies. He has
226
been a visiting Professor at University of California, Berkeley, California, USA. Recently, there
is an Indo-Japan joint research collaboration, he is the Lead collaborator of this joint project. He
has been appeared on national and international TV channels for debates and panel discussions.
He wrote many articles in national newspaper and magazines. He has organized many national and
international conferences.
Dallago, Bruno PhD
is Professor of Economics at the Department of Economics and Management, University of Trento,
Italy. He was visiting professor at various universities, including the University of California at
Berkeley, USA, the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill, Hitotsubashi University, Zhejiang
University, Kyoto University, University of Pécs, Tshwane University of Technology, Corvinus
University of Budapest, Zhejiang University. He was the president of the European Association
for Comparative Economic Studies (1995-1996) and is a member of the International Advisory
Board of the Institute of Economics of the Hungarian Academy of Sciences. His research interests
include the European Union, comparative economics, the transforming economies of Central and
East Europe, SMEs and entrepreneurship, local development. He is the author and editor of several
scholarly books and journal articles
Day, Stephen
is Professor of Comparative politics and EU Studies at the Faculty of Economics, University of
Oita. His primary research interests include the evolution of political parties at the national and
transnational level and the on-going debate about the future of the European Union in the wake of
Brexit. He has also written about the issue of income inequality, identity and citizenshi p. Since
2012 he has been an Honorary Visiting Fellow at the University of Exeter. He is currently working
on a research project about the role and significance of the European political parties (Europarties)
which is being funded by the Japan Society for the Promotion of Science (JSPS, Kiban C, Project
No. 17K03544). Recent publications include: 1) ‘Facing the Spectre of Permanent Opposition? A
Case Study of the Japanese Parliamentary Opposition 2013 -2019’, Oita University Economic
Review, Vol. 72. No.1, 2020, pp.1-29. Co-written with Ian Neary. 2) ‘The Surprising Longevity of
Kawasaki’s Representative Assembly for Foreign Residents: An Institutionalist Account’, Social
Science Japan Journal, Volume 21, Issue 1, 2018. 3) ‘Global Party Internationals: “Tackling the
Dilemma of Indifference”, in S. Van Hecke et al. (2018), Reconnecting European Political Parties
with EU Citizens. International IDEA Discussion Paper 6/2018. Office of International IDEA to
227
the European Union, Brussels, pp.39-43.
Doser, Franzisca
has recently graduated with a master ’s degree in European Union Studies. She was a student at the
National Centre for Research on Europe, based at the University of Canterbury in Christchurch.
Franzisca was raised in small-town Germany; her move to New Zealand enabled her to get an
outside perspective of the European Union's significance in the world. During her time at the
National Centre for Research on Europe, Franzisca had the privilege of undertaking an internship
at the Asia-Europe Foundation, where she learnt the value of international diplomacy. Having also
studied education and psychology, her research interests include integration, identity, and cultural
connectivity. Currently, Franzisca is employed in New Zeal and's public sector.
Fukuda, Koji
is Professor of International Public Administration at the School of Political Science and
Economics, Waseda University in Japan. He is also Director of the Waseda Institute for European
Union Studies ,President of Japan Association of Global Governance
and former President of
EUSA Japan. He received a Ph.D. in Political Science at Doshisha University. He served Research
Fellow at the College of Europe in Bruge s. He co-edited the European Governance After
Nice(Routledge,2003) His is the author of many books
including Envisioning Reform: Enhancing
UN Accountability in the Twenty-first Century (UNU Press,2009), The European Union and
Japan(Ashgate,2015),Economic Crises and Policy Regimes(E&E,2016),Policy Change under New
Democratic Capitalism
(Routledge,
2019).
Harrison, Sarah
is an Assistant Professorial Research Fellow in the Department of Government at the LSE, and the
Deputy-Director of the Electoral Psychology Observatory. Her recent publications include ‘I nside
the Mind of a Voter’ (2020, Princeton University Press with Michael Bruter), several articles in
Comparative Political Studies, American Behavioural Scientist and Parliamentary Affairs, and she
was guest editor of a special issue of Societies on Elec toral Psychology. Her research has received
prestigious awards and honourable mentions from the Economic and Social Research Council, the
Michael Young Award, and the political psychology section of the American Political Science
Association. She has also advised multiple Electoral Commissions worldwide and worked as an
expert or authored reports for multiple prestigious international organisations including the
228
European Commission, Council of Europe, the Committee of the Regions, the British Council, and
the All Parties Parliamentary Group on the Vote at 16 in the British Parliament.
Kampmark, Binoy
was a Commonwealth Scholar at Selwyn College, Cambridge. He is a Senior Lecturer at RMIT
University, Melbourne and is a contributing editor to Counterpunch Magazine. He is also an
associate of the Nautilus Institute of Security and Sustainability (San Francisco) and a member of
the human securities program at Royal Roads University, Canada. Email:
[email protected]
Kelly, Serena
is a lecturer in European and European Union Studies, Deputy Director of the National Centre for
Research on Europe, University of Canterbury, and chair of the New Zealand Institute of
International Affairs, Christchurch branch, New Zealand. Serena has been a project leader of, and
contributor to, a number of external EU perceptions research projects, including on perceptions of
the EU in the Asia-Pacific. These projects examine Elite, Media, and public opinion perceptions
of the EU. Her current research examines the impact of BREXIT on New Zealand and the proposed
EU-NZ Free Trade Agreement. Serena’s findings have been published in esteemed journals and is
a regular contributor to local New Zealand media outlets on EU issues. Her research interests
include: European diplomacy, international political communication and Europe’s relations,
presence, impact in and, with the Asia Pacific.
Kimura, Hitomi
is an Associate Professor in international and domestic environmental law at Otsuma Women’s
University, Tokyo. Her research areas include climate change law and policy, the international and
regional law making, the national implementation, and its interaction of international
environmental law. She also worked in the what is now Mitsubishi UFJ Research and Consulting,
as a researcher, the Institute for Global Environmental Strategies as a researcher/fellow, taught
foreign students at the University of Tokyo’s Graduate School of Arts and Sciences, as part -time
Lecturer, stayed at Aix-Marseille University (CERIC) and the University of Sydney Law School,
as short Visiting and the Institute of Comparative Law of Waseda University, as Adjunct
Researcher. She currently serves as Chair of Outreach Committee of the Japa n Chapter of the Asian
Society of International Law and the Secretary of Kanto Subcommittee of the European Union
Studies Association-Japan. She holds a B.A. (Sophia), an M.A. (Nagoya), an LL.M. (Temple), and
229
a Ph.D. (Waseda).; Her major publications inclu de; “Environmental Government Networks with
Asian Examples” In Cullen et al. (eds.) Experts, Networks and International Law (Cambridge
University Press, 2017); “EU and UK Law Issues on Brexit(2) -The Second Stage of the Negotiation”
Review of European Law, Vol. 5 (2018).
Kurecic, Petar
Associate Professor of Political Science and Geography at the University North, Croatia. He has
studied geography and political science at the University of Zagreb, Croatia, and holds MA and
PhD titles in geography. Dr. Kurecic is the author of one book and the author or co -author of 20
WoS/Scopus/CC papers in indexed journals, 22 WoS indexed conference papers and numerous
other papers. His research interests are small state and small economy problematic, multipolarity,
Sustainable Development Goals (SDGs), security aspects of migration, and challenges to the
European integration in the Western Balkans and in Wider Europe. He currently coordinates the
work of the international research group “Small States in the Multi -Polar World”. Dr. Kurecic
received several international mobility grants (DAAD, ERASMUS+, CEEPUS) and is currently
coordinating Jean Monnet Module: 599900 -EPP-1-2018-1-HR-EPPJMO-MODULE, Internal
Market and Migration as Catalysts for Regional Integration in SEE.
Li, Yongshu
graduated from the Ocean University of China with a B.A. in English in 2007. Immediately after
graduation, he was enrolled into the East Asian Studies Program in the Centre for East Asian
Studies at the University of Bristol. Upon receiving his M.Sc. in 20 09, he entered the Political
Science Program at the Meiji University Graduate School of Political Science and Economics, and
pursued studies mainly on the theme of arms trade between the European Union (EU) and China.
He received his Ph.D. in Political Science in 2013 and has since been conducting research in areas
including EU policy on high-tech export, lobbying activities in the EU, military cooperation
between Ukraine and China, and Brexit. After serving as Research Associate and Lecturer at the
Meiji University School of Political Science and Economics, he assumed his current position in
2018 as the Assistant Professor.
230
Park, Sang Chul
has received PhD degrees in political science in Aug. 1993 in Germany and economics in Feb.
1997 in Sweden. His dissertations discussed Technopolises in Japan. He also passed a habilitation
examination (full professorship) in political science in Nov. 2002 in Germany as well as a docent
evaluation (Swedish habilitation) in economics in Sep. 2004 in Sweden. He is curren tly a Full
Professor at Graduate School of Knowledge based Technology and Energy, Korea Polytechnic
University. He was an Adjunct Professor at Center for Science -based Entrepreneurship, Korea
Advanced Institute of Science and Technology (KAIST), and a Visi ting Professor at Seoul National
University, South Korea. He was also a Private Dozent at Justus Liebig University in Giessen,
Germany and Visiting Full Professor at Gothenburg University, Sweden. He served as Associate
Professor at Gothenburg University, Sweden from 2001 to 2003 and as Associate Professor at
Okayama University, Japan from 2003 to 2006. He also stayed as Visiting Professor at Fudan
University, China in Sep. 2014 and as Visiting Scholar at Asian Development Bank Institute, Japan
in Oct. 2014. His research interests concern industrial policy and regional development and studies
on innovation systems and on science parks and innovative clusters in particular. Currently his
research areas are expanded toward energy policy, sustainable developmen t strategy, high
technology ventures and international business and trade. Since 2016, he has also served as a
visiting professor at Maria Currie Skldowska University, Poland, and at Chiang Mai National
University in Thailand since 2019.
In addition, he was a member of editorial advisory board for Korea Observer (SSCI Journal)
as well as a member of editorial review board for Journal of Small Business Management (JSBM)
(SSCI Journal). In 2013, he became the editor of Asia Pacific Journal of EU Studies (APJE US). In
2014 he also became a member of editorial board in International Journal of Innovation and
Regional Development (IJIRD). In 2016 he serves as associate editor for International Journal of
Management and Enterprise Development (IMED) (SCOPUS Journal ) and a member of Managing
Editorial Board in Australian & New Zealand Journal of European Studies. In practice, he has
served as a member of many government committees in Seoul Metropolitan government and the
national government particularly in the Minist ry of Industry, Trade, and Energy. Currently, he is
an advisory member of Presidential Committee on New Southern Policy since Sep. 2018 and
Director of Center for Global Hidden Champion Companies at KPU. He wrote five textbooks and
over 50 articles in academic journals of SSCI and SCOPUS, and over 60 reports to the government,
national research institutes, and public and private companies.
231
Rosefielde, Steven
is Professor of Economics at the University of North Carolina, Chapel Hill. He received his Ph.D.
in Economics from the Harvard University and is a member of the Russian Academy of Natural
Sciences (RAEN). He has taught in Russia, China, Japan and Thailand.
His most recent publications include the following: S. Rosefielde, Democracy and Its Elected
Enemies: The West’s Paralysis, Crisis and Decline (Cambridge University Press, 2013); S.
Rosefielde and R. W. Pfouts, Inclusive Economic Theory (World Scientific Publishers, 2014);
S. Rosefielde and Q. Mills, Global Economic Turmoil and the Public Good (World Scientific
Publishers, 2015); S. Rosefielde and B. Dallago, Transformation and Crisis in Central and Eastern
Europe: Challenges and Prospects (Routledge, 2016); S. Rosefielde, Kremlin Strikes Back: Russia
and the West after Crimea’s Annexation (Camb ridge University Press, 2017); S. Rosefielde and Q.
Mills, The Trump Phenomenon and Future of US Foreign Policy (World Scientific Publishers,
2016); S. Rosefielde, Trump’s Populist America (World Scientific Publishers, 2017); S. Rosefielde
and J. Leightner, China’s Market Communism: Challenges, Dilemmas, Solutions (Routledge,
2017); S. Rosefielde and Q. Mills, Populists and Progressives: The New Forces in American
Politics (World Scientific Publishers, 2020); S. Rosefielde, ed, Putin’s Russia: Economy, Defe nse
and Foreign Policy
(World Scientific Publishers, 2020);
Vecino, Miguel Ángel
studied five years of Law in the University Complutense (Madrid, Spain) and other five years
studying History of International Relations (prof Bruno Neveu) in the École Prat ique d’Hautes
Études
IV section. Sorbonne (Paris, France). After, he had two masters, one in constitutional
history and a second one in constitutional theory, both by the Centre for Constitutional Studies of
the Spanish Senate. he was one the three candidates selected among 3.500, for a post in the
Secretary of Ministers of the European Union. he passed the exams for the Spanish Diplomatic
Corps.
He has published more than 300 articles in the Spanish press and specialised reviews, and
participate in round tables, conferences and seminars, always on European subjects. He has been
preparing since 2001 a History of the Balance of Power (XV-XX siècles) and a book on the
Intellectual Origin of Soviet Foreign Policy . Married, two children.
232
Wu, Judy, Yo-Ming
Assistant professor of the Department of International Business at C hung Yuan Christian
University, Taiwan
E-Mail:
[email protected]
Education
Postdoctoral Research, Sciences Po, France
PHD of the Department of European Study of Tamkang University 2010
M.A. Graduate Institute of Public Policy, Duke University, NC, U.S.A. 2001
Research Publication
1. “The GMO ERA” book published by National Taiwan University, 2017
2. A Case Study on Reengineering the Trade Flow for the Cross -strait Tax Plans of Taiwanese
Companies (Dr. Yi- Chun Kuo & Yo-Ming Wu) International Journal of Bu siness and
Management, Vol.11, No.11,2016. (ISSN 1833-3850, November ,2016)
3. The Dynamics of China's Trade Ties with a Post -Brexit U.K. and EU (European Union Studies
Association Asia Pacific Annual Conference, 1 -2 July 2017, Japan
4. The EU’s Influence in Balancing the Global Community by Engaging in Strategic Partnerships:
Focusing on Empirical Involvements with the US and China (European Union Studies
Association Asia Pacific Annual Conference, 1 -3 July 2016, Hong Kong
Qualification of Language
English – TOEIC Gold certificate
French -- B2 of DELF
Working Experience
The Assistant professor of Global political Economy at Tamkang University
September 2015- now The Assistant professor of the Department of International Business at
Chung Yuan Christian University
233